《Alpha's Regretthe Luna is Secret Heiress by Sylvia》 Whisper 1 Chapter 1: Just a Substitute Chapter 1: Just a Substitute (Olivia¡¯s POV) When I arrived at the dinner party to pick up my future mate Ethan Grey, I heard voices inside and paused in my steps. The door was slightly ajar, allowing snippets of conversation to drift out. Ethan was the Alpha heir of the Grey pack, one of the most powerful pack in Harbor City. When I came to Harbor City three years ago, our wolves recognized each other as the the destined mate. We have been in love for three years. ¡°Ethan, Cassandra is back in town. What about Olivia?¡± someone asked. Ethan¡¯s voice was indifferent. ¡°What about her?¡± I froze, my hand hovering over the doorknob. Something in his tone made my heart stutter. Behind the half¨Copen door, I could see a haze of cigarette smoke enveloping Ethan¡¯s expression as he quietly admitted, ¡°I don¡¯t know. I don¡¯t want to hurt Olivia, but I can¡¯t let go of Cassandra.¡± His friends sighed collectively. One of them leaned forward, his face partially visible through the gap. ¡°I don¡¯t understand you, man. You¡¯ve been with Olivia for three years. Three years! And you¡¯re still hesitating?¡± Another voice chimed in, blunt and cutting. ¡°It¡¯s because she¡¯s nothing but a substitute. You found her because she looks like Cassandra.¡± My breath caught in my throat. The words hit me like a physical blow. Ethan took a long drag of his cigarette, not denying it. ¡°I was drawn to the faint resemnce, yes. All these years, I¡¯ve been searching for Cassandra¡¯s shadow in her.¡± ¡°So she¡¯s just a stand¨Cin,¡± someone sighed. ¡°When will you break up with her?¡± another asked. Ethan flicked his ash, looking reluctant. ¡°Not yet. Olivia is obedient and sensible. I¡¯m actually < Chapter 1: Just a Substitute reluctant to lose her.¡± His friend pped his shoulder. ¡°You can¡¯t have your cake and eat it too, think carefully.¡± +25 Puntos ¡°Hey, what¡¯s the big deal? Just keep dating each other.¡± Another friend said nonchntly, ¡°If you feel sorry for Olivia, just buy her more gifts to coax her. She¨Cwolves are easy to coax.¡± But Ethan scoffed, ¡°I¡¯m not that promiscuous.¡± Outside the door, my lips curved with bitter self¨Cmockery. Three years of love, reduced to ¡°obedient and sensible.¡± Three years of devotion, and I was nothing but a ceholder. Without a word, I turned and left, swallowed by the night. Stepping out from the restaurant, the chilly river wind tangled my hair while tears slipped silently down my cheeks. The realization was devastating for three years, I believed in a love that was mutual and genuine. Only now did I realize I was merely a shadow of his first love, a substitute to fill Cassandra¡¯s absence. Standing by the riverside, with the bustling city on one side and the endless dark river on the other, I finally made a decision. My wolf, Cora, whimpered inside me, sensing my distress but agreeing with what needed to be done. I took out my phone and called my father. The phone rang three times before he answered. ¡°Olivia?¡± His voice was gruff but held a note of surprise. We hadn¡¯t spoken in months. ¡°Hello, Dad. I agree toe home and ept the arranged marriage.¡± There was a pause on the other end. ¡°What happened?¡± Under the dim glow of the streemp, I said quietly, ¡°Nothing happened. I¡¯m just tired of ying around. I want to settle down and get married.¡± My voice was calm, but my heart trembled as I admitted, ¡°I was wrong back then, childish and rebellious. I shouldn¡¯t have argued and run away from home. I¡¯ve thought it through.¡± ¡°Olivia¡­¡± My father¡¯s voice softened slightly. ¡°I¡¯ll return to Riverdale once I tie up things in Harbor City,¡± I promised. Actually, I am the daughter of the Alpha of Winters pack, one of the oldest werewolf bloodlines in Riverdale. Three years ago, my father asked me to ept the arranged mating with Connor Rivers, my 215 < Chapter 1 Just a Substitute childhood friend and the most powerful Alpha. Because I didn¡¯t want to ept the marriage, I secretly escaped from Winters pack and settled in Grey pack under a hidden identity. That¡¯s when my wolf found out that Ethan Grey was my mate. +25 Puntos > After hanging up, I wandered alone in the night untilte. The streets of Harbor City blurred around me as I walked aimlessly, my mind reying those cruel words over and over. When I returned to Moonlight Manor past ten o¡¯clock, Martha Jenkins greeted me warmly. The beta werewolf had been with the Grey household for years and always had a soft spot for me. ¡°Miss Winters, you¡¯re back,¡± she said, handing me a bowl. ¡°This is the healing broth you made for Mr. Grey. I reheated it since it had gone cold. I was about to bring it up. Would you like to take it instead?¡± Silently, I took the Healing Broth, carrying it upstairs to Ethan¡¯s room. The bedroom was empty save for a glowingputer screen, the sound of running watering from the bathroom. I realized he was showering early tonight, likely to leave soon. I set down the broth and noticed incessant message alerts on hisputer. Curiosity and dread drove me to move the mouse. On the messaging app, Cassandra¡¯s messages shed before my eyes. ¡°Ethan, I¡¯m back. My flightnds at 11:30 tonight at Harbor City Regional Airport. Will you ¡°During these years apart, I never stopped thinking about you. I regret leaving for my career.¡± ¡°We were both too proud, unable to bow our heads. But I know you still have me in your heart, right?¡± ¡°I dated other men, but nonested long. I always felt something missing. It was you. I realized I never stopped loving you.¡± ¡°I was afraid to return, afraid you¡¯d hate me, afraid to see you with someone else, afraid you no longer loved me.¡± ¡°I was wrong, Ethan. Can you forgive me?¡± Before I could close it, Ethan¡¯s reply appeared, typed during his shower: ¡°Cassandra, I just want to know ¨C do you still love me?¡± My heart tightened painfully. He¡¯s so busy he often ignores my messages, yet for Cassandra, he replies even while bathing. The difference in affection was painfully clear. 3.15 < Chapter 1: Just a Substitute Cassandra¡¯s reply was instant: ¡°Yes, I only love you.¡± His final answer: ¡°Good. I¡¯lle pick you up.¡± +25 Puntos > At that moment, I felt our three years together crumble into a cruel joke. I quietly restored the screen, hiding my heartbreak, and left the room. Downstairs, I served myself a bowl of the broth I made with such care. I had learned the recipe just for Ethan¡¯s sensitive digestion, simmering it for hours with healing herbs, barley, red beans, millet, and wild yam. Two years of devotion, all because he once said he liked it. Now, I ate it spoonful by spoonful, alone. When Ethan descended freshly showered, hair dried, dressed sharply, he asked casually, ¡°Where did you go? I didn¡¯t see you earlier.¡± I answered softly, ¡°Just went for a walk.¡± He started putting on his shoes, dering, ¡°I need to go out for something urgent. Don¡¯t wait up.¡± I lowered my gaze, voice mild, ¡°Will youe back tonight?¡± He paused, then said, ¡°Probably not. I have work at the pack house and if it¡¯s toote, I won¡¯t return.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± I remained gentle and undemanding, as always. Without further words, Ethan left, never ncing back. Upstairs, I saw the broth I brought still untouched beside hisputer. My phone lit up with a message from Connor Rivers: ¡°Liv, when will you to Riverdale?¡± To me, this fianc¨¦ candidate had always been a gentle elder brother, never quite a lover. We¡¯d known each other since childhood, and he¡¯d always been protective of me. ¡°After I finish things here,¡± I replied. ¡°Alright. If you need help, just say it.¡± ¡°Thank you, Con.¡± ¡°Rest early. Good night.¡± That night, Ethan did not return. Iy awake, staring at the ceiling, Cora restless within me. My < Chapter 1 Just a Substitute +25 Puntos > wolf had never liked how Ethan treated me, always pushing me to assert myself more. Now she seemed almost satisfied that we were finally leaving. At dawn, I was awakened by a phone call. ¡°Hello?¡± ¡°Liv, my birthday is the day after tomorrow. Don¡¯t forget toe to my party!¡± It was Sophie Parker, a friend from Ethan¡¯s social circle whom I got along with. Sophie was one of the elite wolves in the Grey pack, always hosting exclusive parties and gatherings. Despite her privileged background, she¡¯d always been friendly to me. ¡°Sure, send me the address,¡± I replied, my voice still husky from sleep. After hanging up, I dressed and headed to the mall, carefully selecting atest¨Cmodel tinum wolf pendant from a prestigious jewelry house ¨C a gift that suited Sophie¡¯s style perfectly. The saleswoman assured me it was authentic, providing a certificate of authenticity. It cost nearly a month of my sry, but Sophie had been kind to me when others in Ethan¡¯s circle had not. On Sophie¡¯s birthday, I arrived early at the elegant venue she¡¯d chosen. The room was already filling with members of the Grey pack¡¯s elite social circle, all dressed impably. ¡°Happy birthday, Soph,¡± I said warmly, handing over the gift. As we exchanged pleasantries, the room suddenly quieted. I turned to see what had caught everyone¡¯s attention. Ethan had arrivedte, his arm intimately around an unfamiliar woman. No, not unfamiliar ¨C I recognized her from photos. Cassandra Evans, his first love, had returned. She was beautiful, with a subtle resemnce to me that was now painfully obvious. Her green¨Cgold eyes sparkled as sheughed at something Ethan whispered in her ear. Our eyes met across the room, and Ethan froze, stunned. The color drained from his face as he realized I was there, witnessing his betrayal firsthand. ¡°Liv, why are you here?¡± he asked, his voice strained. This content belongs to f?ndnovel Comentarios Whisper 2 Chapter 2: Birthday Party and Hidden Truths Chapter 2: Birthday Party and Hidden Truths (Olivia¡¯s POV) Ethan instinctively brushed off Cassandra¡¯s hand from around his arm, causing her expression to freeze. The gesture was quick, almost panicked. ¡°I¡¯m also a friend of Sophie¡¯s. Is it strange that I¡¯m here for her birthday party?¡± I smiled faintly at him, keeping my voice light despite the storm brewing inside me. ¡°No, I just thought you didn¡¯t like these kinds of gatherings, so I didn¡¯t tell you in advance,¡± Ethan replied, his voice strained. A wave of disdain washed over me. Did he really not tell me because of my supposed preferences, or was he hiding the fact he nned to bring someone else? The answer was painfully obvious. Ethan¡¯s cold blue gaze swept the room as if silently demanding, ¡°Who invited her here?¡± I noticed Sophie avoiding his eyes with guilt, pretending it had nothing to do with her. So much for friendship. The woman beside Ethan stepped forward with a bright smile that didn¡¯t quite reach her eyes. ¡°Hello, you must be Olivia Winters. I¡¯m Cassandra Evans. You¡¯ve probably heard Ethan mention me, right?¡± So, this was Ethan¡¯s first love, the one who had left him heartbroken. Despite the suffocating pain in my chest¨Cthree years of genuine affection not easily erased¨CI masked my feelings well, lips curved in a polite greeting. ¡°Miss Evans, I¡¯ve heard so much about you.¡± The lie slipped easily from my lips. In truth, Ethan had barely mentioned her. Cassandra smiled sweetly yet provocatively. ¡°Has anyone told you we actually look alike?¡± At those words, Ethan¡¯s face darkened instantly. The resemnce between us was his dirty little secret, the reason he¡¯d approached me in the first ce. Now it was beingid bare for everyone to see. I nced mockingly at him, then smiled with innocent amber eyes at Cassandra. ¡°Oh? Really? I don¡¯t think so¨CI¡¯m prettier.¡± < Chapter 2. Birthday Party and +25 Puntos > The room fell silent. Several people gasped softly. Wasn¡¯t I always the gentle, obedient type? The one who never talked back? The perfect, amodating girlfriend? My wolf, Cora, purred with satisfaction at my newfound backbone. Sophie hurried over, her face a mask of forced cheerfulness. ¡°Let¡¯s not stand around! Come in, have some drinks!¡± Cassandra forced a smile, suppressing her annoyance, and handed over her gift. ¡°Happy birthday, Soph.¡± When Sophie unwrapped it, her eyes widened. ¡°Wow, this is the pendant I¡¯ve wanted for so long. Thank you, Cassandra.¡± Then she opened my gift bag, and her expression shifted to confusion. ¡°Wow! Liv, you got me the same ne!¡± I watched as she held up two identical tinum wolf pendants, both gleaming under the party lights. What were the odds? Suddenly, Victoria Reed, a woman in Sophie¡¯s circle who had always looked down on me, sneered loudly. ¡°Must be fake. That tinum pendant costs more than five thousand dors. Olivia¡¯s just a littlewyer¨Chow could she afford something like that?¡± The room fell silent, judgmental eyes converging on me. Even Ethan¡¯s expression soured. ¡°If you¡¯re short on money, you could have told me. I could have helped with the gift¡­why would you-¡± He stopped himself, but the implication was clear to everyone. Why would you give a fake? Though he couldn¡¯t finish the sentence, his meaning was unmistakable. I met his gaze coldly. ¡°Do you also think mine is fake, Ethan?¡± He said nothing, tacitly admitting it. Three years together, and he still thought so little of me. Sophie tried to smooth things over, her voice artificially bright. ¡°Of course it¡¯s not fake! We¡¯re good friends; she wouldn¡¯t do that. Don¡¯t be so harsh.¡± But from her eyes, I glimpsed disdain and suspicion. My heart chilled further. I had bought the expensive pendant to thank Sophie for past kindness¨Cafter all, when I¡¯d arrived alone in Harbor City three years ago, cut off by my family for refusing the arranged marriage with Connor Rivers, Sophie had stood up for me when others ostracized me as an outsider without wealth or connections. I once naively believed Sophie was truly different. How ridiculous. 214 Read full story at Find1Novel with a brightugh, clearly eager to be the center of attention. I, uninterested in their games, moved to a corner sofa and focused on my phone. After a pause, Ethan followed and sat beside me. Without looking up, I continued ying on my phone as Ethan reprimanded me quietly. ¡°If you were short on money, you could have bought something cheaper instead of giving a fake. You know you embarrassed me in front of everyone, right?¡± I closed my eyes, took a deep breath, then fixed him with a sharp amber stare. ¡°How did I embarrass you? The receipt is in the bag. Want me to take you to the boutique to verify it?¡± Startled, Ethan rummaged through the gift bag, finding the official invoice from Lunar Jewelers of Harbor City. His eyes widened as he realized the pendant was genuine. His tone softened immediately. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you just say you had the receipt?¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t feel like it,¡± I replied coldly, returning to my game. After a moment, he muttered an apology. ¡°Sorry, I misunderstood you earlier.¡± I ignored himpletely, focusing intently on my phone screen. Ethan fell silent, but from the corner of my eye, I could see his gaze drifting unconsciously to the crowd¨Cmore precisely, to Cassandra. When I finished my game and looked up, I caught him staring at Cassandra, who was being > coaxed into drinking wine by Sophie and Victoria. His eyes followed her every movement, filled with concern and something deeper. Ethan initially restrained himself, but when Cassandra reached her fourth ss, he abruptly stood and strode over, snatching the wine from her hand. ¡°Your stomach¡¯s sensitive to alcohol. Are you trying to make yourself sick?¡± His voice was sharp with worry. Everyone fell silent at his sudden outburst. Cassandra¡¯s cheeks flushed with anger and shyness. ¡°Why do you care?¡± ¡°You¡¯re not drinking anymore,¡± he said coldly, ring at the others. ¡°Try forcing her again and see what happens.¡± The crowd avoided his eyes, intimidated by Ethan¡¯s authority. No one dared challenge the Grey pack¡¯s future Alpha. I watched this disy with a mocking smile. Three years together, and he had never once shown such concern for my wellbeing. Yet here he was, publicly fussing over Cassandra after just days of her return. As Cassandra tried to snatch back her ss, Ethan held it high out of reach. She lost her bnce and stumbled into his arms. He instinctively steadied her with his other hand. ¡°Careful. After all these years, you still haven¡¯t improved your bnce.¡± His voice was soft, intimate, filled with shared history. Cassandra, cheeks rosy, gazed up at him and pouted. ¡°Ethan, you¡¯re really annoying.¡± Laughter and teasing erupted around them. The chemistry between them was undeniable, their connection obvious to everyone in the room. Just as Ethan was about to respond, he unexpectedly met my icy, piercing gaze. Comentarios Whisper 3 Chapter 3: Shattered Bonds Chapter 3: Shattered Bonds (Olivia¡¯s POV) Ethan seemed to finally realize his girlfriend was still present. As if waking from a trance, he withdrew the arm that had been wrapped around Cassandra¡¯s waist and took two steps back. His friends, sensing the tension in the air, hurried to smooth things over. ¡°Let¡¯s switch to Truth or Dare!¡± Jason Mitchell suggested loudly, pping his hands to draw attention away from the awkward scene. Ethan regained hisposure and returned to his seat beside me. From the corner of my eye, I could see him watching me carefully, clearly expecting a jealous outburst or tears. I remained silent, sipping my drink with calm indifference. ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to say anything?¡± he finally whispered, his voice tense. I turned to him, my amber eyes reflecting nothing but cool detachment. ¡°About what?¡± For the first time since I¡¯d known him, Ethan looked genuinely unsettled. His brow furrowed as he studied my face, searching for the emotional, amodating girlfriend he was used to manipting. ¡°You¡¯re acting strange tonight,¡± he muttered, shifting ufortably in his seat. I simply smiled and turned my attention back to the game. My wolf, Cora, purred with satisfaction inside me, pleased that we were finally standing our ground. The group¡¯s attention quickly shifted to Cassandra, who had be the center of the circle. Herughter rang out as she tossed back another drink, ignoring Ethan¡¯s earlier warning. ¡°Your turn again, Cass!¡± Sophie called out, her voice overly bright. ¡°You lost this round!¡± Cassandra¡¯s eyes sparkled mischievously. ¡°I choose dare,¡± she announced, her gaze provocatively sweeping over Ethan. Sophie reached into a bowl and drew out a slip of paper. Her eyes widened slightly as she read it. ¡°Randomly kiss a man here.¡± Shocked murmurs rippled through the room. The temperature seemed to plummet as Ethan¡¯s expression grew frigid. < Chapter 3 Shattered Bonds +25 Puntos Yet Cassandra smiled, clearly enjoying the attention. She stood up slowly, making a show of considering her options. ¡°Who shall it be?¡± she teased, her eyes lingering on Ethan before deliberately moving away. To everyone¡¯s surprise, she sauntered toward Lucas Bet, a handsome but timid young man from Ethan¡¯s inner circle. Poor Lucas froze like a deer in headlights as Cassandra approached. ¡°Don¡¯t worry,¡± she whispered loud enough for everyone to hear. ¡°I don¡¯t bite¡­ much.¡± Before Lucas could react, Cassandra looped her arms around his neck. His face paled dramatically as he shot a panicked nce toward Ethan. ENOUGH!¡± Ethan¡¯s roar filled the room with such dominance that everyone instinctively lowered their gaze. Even I felt Cora shrink back slightly at the raw power in his voice. He stormed across the room in three long strides, grabbing Cassandra¡¯s arm and pulling her away from Lucas, who looked ready to faint with relief. ¡°This game is over,¡± Ethan growled, his ice¨Cblue eyes zing with fury. Without another word, he dragged Cassandra out of the private room, mming the door behind them. The silence that followed was deafening. Then, slowly, all eyes turned to me. I quietly sipped my wine, forcing my face to remain neutral despite the ice forming in my chest. Three years of love, shattered in a single evening. ¡°Why are you all looking at me?¡± I asked softly, my voice steady despite the storm raging inside. Sophie approached cautiously. ¡°Liv, are you okay?¡± I smiled gently, though my heart was freezing bit by bit. ¡°Of course. Why wouldn¡¯t I be?¡± I finished my drink in one smooth motion and stood up. ¡°Excuse me, I need to use the restroom.¡± As I walked away, I could hear their whispers following me like shadows. In the elegant bathroom, I locked myself in a stall and leaned against the door, finally allowing my smile to drop. I took several deep breaths, refusing to cry. 216 < Chapter 3: Shattered Bonds ¡°Did you see Ethan¡¯s face?¡± A voice suddenly echoed in the bathroom. I froze, recognizing Victoria Reed¡¯s distinctive tone. ¡°I know! He looked ready to tear Lucas apart,¡± another girl replied with a giggle. +25 Puntos > ¡°Ethan¡¯s gonepletely crazy, abandoning his girlfriend to chase after Cassandra,¡± Victoria continued, her voice dripping with malicious delight. ¡°Obviously, he only cares about Cassandra,¡± someone else chimed in. ¡°The way he watches her every move¡­ it¡¯s like no one else exists.¡± ¡°Poor Olivia, just standing there watching her boyfriend go mad over another woman.¡± Victoria¡¯s voice lowered conspiratorially. ¡°She¡¯s just a stand¨Cin. Anyone can tell Ethan¡¯s heart only responds to Cassandra.¡± Their words cut through me like silver des, but I straightened my shoulders. I¡¯d heard enough. I flushed the toilet and stepped out of the stall. The girls by the sink caught sight of me in the mirror and fell abruptly silent, their faces draining of color. Without acknowledging them, I calmly washed my hands, my reflectionposed despite the turmoil inside. The girls hurried away with bowed heads, not daring to meet my eyes. Alone atst, I stared at my reflection. Yes, our breakup was inevitable¨Cnot because Ethan no longer wanted me, but because I no longer wanted him. ¡°Not that I don¡¯t love him anymore,¡± I whispered to myself, ¡°but that I refuse to love a man who never truly saw me as his true partner.¡± Cora growled in agreement, her presence warm and supportive within me. I returned to the party only long enough to say my goodbyes, ignoring the pitying nces that followed me out the door. Late that night, I returned alone to Moonlight Manor, exhausted from maintaining myposure for hours. Martha greeted me with concern in her eyes, but I reassured her with a smile that didn¡¯t reach my eyes. ¡°Is everything alright, Miss Winters?¡± she asked gently. ¡°Just tired, Martha. Good night.¡± After a hot shower, I copsed into bed, my heart numb and heavy. Sleep came quickly, a merciful escape from reality. 376 < Chapter 3 Shattered Bonds It wasn¡¯t until the following afternoon that Ethan returned. I was already up, methodically packing my belongings when I heard the front door open. +25 Puntos > The moment he entered the bedroom, I detected Cassandra¡¯s perfume clinging to his clothes. There were also faint marks on his neck that he hadn¡¯t bothered to hide. ¡°What are you doing?¡± he asked with surprise, staring at the open suitcase on the floor. I poked my head out from behind the wardrobe and answered casually, ¡°You¡¯re back. I¡¯m nning to visit my father in Riverdale in a few days.¡± I continued sorting through my belongings, determined not to leave a single trace behind when I left. My eyes briefly caught the ambiguous marks on his neck, but I looked away withoutment. My heart had already died; his affairs no longer concerned me. Ethan frowned, moving closer. ¡°Why suddenly go back home? Still mad aboutst night? Hiding from me?¡± ¡°No,¡± I replied gently, keeping my amber eyes carefully nk, ¡°I just miss my father.¡± (Ethan¡¯s POV) Hearing her calm response, I visibly rxed. So she wasn¡¯t upset about Cassandra after all. This was why I appreciated Olivia¨Cshe never made scenes or demanded exnations. ¡°That¡¯s good then,¡± I said, watching her fold her clothes with meticulous care. N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on In the past three years, Olivia had never once returned to Riverdale, even spending holidays alone in Harbor City. I had never brought her home to meet my mother, knowing Margaret Grey would never ept a woman from a low¨Cranking family. To my relief, Olivia never insisted on meeting my family or formalizing our rtionship. How obedient and sensible she was, I thought to myself. ¡°How long will you be gone?¡± I asked, sitting on the edge of the bed. She continued folding her favorite blue sweater, cing it neatly in her suitcase. ¡°I¡¯m not sure yet. It depends on how things go with my father.¡± ¡°No need to trouble you, I¡¯ll arrange my own ride,¡± she added, not looking up from her task. ¡°Someone will pick me up.¡± I secretly breathed easier, d not to have to deal with crossing into Winters territory. As the only Alpha heir of the Grey pack, I knew a future with her was impossible. < Chapter 3: Shattered Bonds +25 Puntos > I had never heard Olivia talk about her family background. She was usually short of money and must be from a low¨Cranking family. Such a family would be of no help to the Grey pack. Even if my wolf had decided that Olivia was my mate, I would not let such a low¨Cranking female wolf be the future Luna of the Grey pack. Our social divide was an unbridgeable chasm. I watched her carefully handling each item, her movements precise and emotionless. Something about her demeanor bothered me, but,I couldn¡¯t quite ce it. Inwardly, I recalled Jason¡¯s advice fromst night: ¡°Just keep seeing both women. If you feel guilty, buy Olivia some gifts. Women are easy to please.¡± Maybe, I thought, I could marry Cassandra and keep Olivia as my girlfriend. Surely, she loved me too much to leave. When she returned from Riverdale, I would talk to her about it. I softened my voice: ¡°Be safe on the road. Let me know when you arrive. When youe back to Harbor City, I¡¯ll pick you up.¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) I lowered my eyes and replied quietly, ¡°Okay.¡± But in my heart, I whispered, I won¡¯t being back. Ethan¡¯s phone rang, interrupting the silence. He checked the screen and immediately stood up. ¡°I have to go out for a bit,¡± he said after a brief call. ¡°Last night was my fault. I shouldn¡¯t have left you there alone.¡± He hesitated, then added, ¡°I bought you a healing broth mix; Martha will bring it overter.¡± ¡°Thank you,¡± I answered coolly, my tone indifferent. Without another word, Ethan turned and left the manor, too preupied to notice the finality in my expression. I continued packing, carefully removing every trace of my existence from his life. Three years reduced to a few suitcases. Not long after he departed, my phone chimed with a message. I picked it up to see Connor Rivers¡® name on the screen. Comentarios Whisper 4 Chapter 4: The Alpha¡¯s Promise Chapter 4: The Alpha¡¯s Promise (Olivia¡¯s POV) My phone buzzed with a new message. I nced down to see Connor¡¯s name on the screen. ¡°Livvy, the moonstone engagement ring I custom¨Cdesigned for you has already arrived at the Lunar Jewelers in Harbor City. You can go take a look when you have time.¡± I stared at the message for a moment, my fingers hovering over the keyboard before I typed a simple reply: ¡°Okay.¡± It was surprising. I had only agreed to the arranged engagement a few days ago, which meant Connor must have ordered the ring long before I¡¯d even said yes. His decisiveness and consideration were unexpected, though I remembered he had always been that way, even when we were children. The next morning, I found myself standing outside Lunar Jewelers, one of Harbor City¡¯s most prestigious jewelry stores. As I pushed open the ss door, a bell chimed softly above me. ¡°Wee to Lunar Jewelers,¡± a polished saleswoman greeted me with a warm smile. ¡°How may I assist you today?¡± ¡°I¡¯m Olivia Winters. I believe there¡¯s a ring waiting for me.¡± Her eyes widened with recognition. ¡°Miss Winters! Of course, we¡¯ve been expecting you. Please, follow me.¡± She led me to a private viewing room, its walls lined with mirrors and soft lighting that made everything sparkle. Within moments, she returned with a small velvet box. ¡°Alpha Rivers was very specific about every detail,¡± she exined, carefully opening the box. ¡°He wanted nothing but perfection for you.¡± The moment she revealed the ring, I couldn¡¯t help but gasp. A five¨Ccarat rare blue moonstone sat proudly in the center, surrounded by delicate diamond ents that caught the light in a mesmerizing dance. It was magnificent¨Cfar more beautiful than anything I had expected. ¡°Would you like to try it on?¡± the saleswoman asked. I nodded, extending my hand. She A?adir a Biblioteca had been made specifically for me¨Cwhich, of course, it had. .inger, and it fit perfectly, as if it < Chapter 4 The Alpha¡¯s Promi ¡°Look at the inside,¡± she suggested. 25 Puntos> I removed the ring and tilted it to see an engraving inside the band: ¡°CROL.¡± Connor Rivers and Olivia Winters. Our initials intertwined forever. ¡°It looks beautiful on you,¡± the saleswoman said sincerely, her eyes admiring how the blue. stoneplemented my skin tone. ¡°Alpha Rivers has exceptional taste.¡± I slipped the ring back on, watching how it caught the light. It was truly stunning. ¡°Olivia, what are you doing here?¡± The cold male voice from behind me sent a chill down my spine. I turned around slowly, a slight frown forming on my face. Ethan Grey stood at the entrance of the private room, his hand dropping Cassandra¡¯s the moment our eyes met. Cassandra¡¯s eyes shed with cold calction before she quickly rearranged her features into a sweet smile. I wasn¡¯t surprised to see them together. Not anymore. ¡°Trying on a ring,¡± I replied lightly, a sweet smile ying on my lips. Ethan strode over, his face darkening when he noticed the dazzling blue moonstone on my finger. I purposefully waved my hand gently, making the stone catch the light. ¡°What do you think? Does it look good?¡± I asked, my voice innocent. His eyes ignited with barely contained anger. ¡°No, it doesn¡¯t.¡± The significance of the ring wasn¡¯t lost on him. Engagement. Marriage. Commitment. All things he had never intended to give me, things he felt I wasn¡¯t worthy of. His silence dripped with contempt, but for once, I didn¡¯t care. Cassandra stepped forward, her smile bright and seemingly innocent. ¡°What a coincidence, Olivia. Ethan and I are also here to look at rings today.¡± I sneered inwardly. So the ¡°business¡± Ethan had mentioned earlier was actually shopping for rings with Cassandra? He didn¡¯t even bother to exin, silently acquiescing to her statement. Cassandra¡¯s gaze lingered on the enormous blue moonstone on my finger. I could practically see her calcting its value¨Caround $750,000, if I had to guess. Her eyes narrowed slightly. and I knew exactly what she was thinking: She dares to try on something like that? Isn¡¯t she afraid of embarrassing herself if si A?adir a Biblioteca Despite her obvious provocation, I remained calm and elegant, admiring my ring as if they 318 < Chapter 4. The Alpha¡¯s Promi +25 Puntos > weren¡¯t even there. Connor truly did have excellent taste. ¡°Olivia, your ring is truly beautiful,¡± Cassandra said, feigning friendliness. ¡°Yes, I think so too,¡± I replied with a genuine smile. Ethan¡¯s face grew darker by the second. ¡°Olivia, take the ring off.¡± I tilted my head, feigning innocent confusion. ¡°Why?¡± His tone sharpened, eyes shing with anger. ¡°Why are you trying on rings? Are you forcing me to marry you? I will never marry you!¡± Cassandra¡¯s lips curved in a smug, subtle arc. ¡°Olivia, Ethan and I are here today at Margaret¡¯s request to look at rings.¡± The implication was obvious: Margaret Grey favored Cassandra as the future daughter¨Cinw, and I shouldn¡¯t dream of marrying into the Grey family. I found it all rather amusing. I was simply trying on a ring customized for me by my fianc¨¦. Why were these two acting like I was intruding on their wedding rehearsal? One narcissistically believed I was trying to force marriage, the other arrogantly unted her status. Besides, my father had never even considered the Grey family worthy marriage material for a Winters. ¡°Oh, I see,¡± I responded ndly. Both Ethan and Cassandra were taken aback by my indifference. Cassandra scrutinized my expression, trying to uncover jealousy or resentment, yet my sereneposure betrayed nothing, leaving her momentarily uncertain whether I was pretending or truly didn¡¯t care. Ethan, thoroughly angered,shed out: ¡°Are you doing this on purpose? Did you know we wereing to look at rings and waited here to ambush me? Let me be clear: there¡¯s no future for us, and trying to force me won¡¯t work!¡± His words grew sharper, his blue eyes cold as ice. ¡°Marriage requires equal social status. How could someone like you ever marry me? Just look at yourself¨Cyou¡¯re embarrassing!¡± I remained unbothered, a gentle smile on my lips. ¡°Embarrassing? Aren¡¯t we still together? So, this Miss Evans would be the mistress, then? And you a cheating scumbag¨Cso who¡¯s the one truly embarrassing themselves?¡± Ethan¡¯s fury exploded, his face flushing red. ¡°Are you taking it off or not?!¡± ¡°No,¡± I replied calmly. His voice trembled with rage. ¡°Fine! Keep it if you like. I¡¯ll never buy you a ring, and I¡¯ll never ?????? ???? f¦É?dn¦Ïvel marry you!¡± ¡°Mm¨Chmm,¡± I echoed softly. My serene defiance left him helpless. With a final re, he stormed out of the private room, nearly knocking over a disy case in his haste. Cassandra hurriedly chased after him. ¡°Ethan, wait for me!¡± Once they left, the shop assistant, who had been standing awkwardly in the corner throughout the entire exchange, approached me with a bewildered expression. ¡°Miss Winters, who were those two?¡± she asked hesitantly. I smiled faintly. ¡°Irrelevant people. Don¡¯t mind them.¡± After three years of love, Ethan had never intended marriage¨Clittle did he know, he was never good enough to marry me, and I had never truly intended to marry him either. The realization was liberating. I took a few photos of the ring on my finger, admiring how it caught the light from different angles. Then I sent the best ones to Connor with a simple message: ¡°Does it look good?¡± (Third person¡¯s POV) At that moment in Riverdale, inside the Rivers Group CEO¡¯s office, Connor Rivers saw the message from his beloved Livvy. A gentle smile bloomed on his usually stoic face as he put down his documents to reply. ¡°It looks beautiful. Do you like it?¡± Olivia answered honestly, ¡°I like it.¡± His response came quickly: ¡°As long as you like it.¡± Olivia hesitated, then typed, ¡°Connor, this ring must be very expensive, right?¡± He reassured me tenderly, ¡°Not expensive at all. You deserve the very best.¡± Beside him, his assistant Henry Morris secretly peeked several times, shocked to see his ice¨Ccold boss smiling so warmly. When Connor noticed Henry¡¯s stare, he instantly reverted to his usual frosty tone. ¡°I¡¯ve signed it. What are you staring at?¡± he snapped. Henry snapped back to attention, quickly gathering the documents. ¡°Nothing, sir, I¡¯ll take my < Chapter 4: The Alpha¡¯s Promi¡­. leave.¡± +25 Puntos> Meanwhile, Olivia collected the ring, carefully cing it back in its velvet box. The saleswoman assured Olivia they would keep it safe until the official engagement ceremony. Olivia left Lunar Jewelers and strolled next door to Timber Wolf Timepieces in the adjacent mall. Olivia wanted to buy a gift for Connor to bring back to Riverdale as a token of appreciation. Olivia recalled the recent photo my father had sent her¨CConnor with his cold aura, sharp brows, and ice¨Cblue eyes, refined and handsome¨Cnot much different from her childhood impression of him. He had always been serious, even as a boy. The watch store was elegant and understated, with ss cases disying timepieces that l to extravagant. Olivia took her time, examining each option carefully. something specific?¡± the salesman asked. a gift,¡± Olivia exined. ¡°Something elegant but not shy. For someone who quality.¡± nodded knowingly and directed her to a disy of sleek ck watches. ¡°These are popr among business executives and pack leaders. Subtle but unmistakably high¨Cend.¡± After careful consideration, Olivia selected one that seemed perfect for Connor¨Ca sleek ck timepiece with a minimalist design that wouldplement his style perfectly. It was sophisticated without being ostentatious, much like Connor himself. Just as Olivia finished paying, a familiar voice greeted her from behind. ¡°Liv, what are you doing here¡­¡± Whisper 5 Chapter 5: Unexpected Encounters and Hidden Truths. Chapter 5: Unexpected Encounters and Hidden Truths (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°Liv, what are you doing here¡­¡± I turned around to find Jason Mitchell, Ethan¡¯s longtime friend, standing behind me with a surprised expression. His dark hair was slightly tousled, and his eyes held that same sympathetic look I¡¯d noticed at Sophie¡¯s birthday party. ¡°Jason, hello,¡± I greeted him with a polite smile. His gaze dropped to the shopping bag in my hand, the Timber Wolf Timepieces logo clearly visible. ¡°Buying a gift for Ethan?¡± The question caught me off guard. I hadn¡¯t expected to run into anyone who knew me, especially not one of Ethan¡¯s friends. To avoid aplicated exnation about Connor and Official source is Find~Novel my impending departure, I simply nodded. Jason¡¯s expression shifted subtly. ¡°This brand¡¯s watches are very expensive, even the basic models cost thousands of dors.¡± He hesitated, then added gently, ¡°Honestly, you don¡¯t have to buy such an expensive gift for him. Ethan, he¡­¡± The unspoken words hung in the air between us. He doesn¡¯t deserve it. I clutched the bag a little tighter, feeling a strange mix of amusement and sadness. If only Jason knew the watch wasn¡¯t for Ethan at all. ¡°You work hard for your money,¡± Jason continued, his voice lowered. ¡°I knowwyers at your level don¡¯t make that much yet. This must be several months¡® sry for you.¡± I was touched by his concern. In the three years I¡¯d known him, Jason had always been kind to me, even when the others in Ethan¡¯s circle kept their distance. ¡°Ethan doesn¡¯t need those things,¡± he said, frustration evident in his tone. ¡°You don¡¯t have to spend several months¡® sry on a gift for him.¡± I smiled politely. ¡°Alright, I won¡¯t next time.¡± We said our goodbyes, and as I turned to leave, I thought I heard him sigh quietly behind me. My wolf, Cora, stirred within me, sensing the genuine concern in Jason¡¯s manner. (Jason¡¯s POV) I watched Olivia walk away, her honey¨Cbrown hair catching the afternoon light. She¡¯d always been too good for Ethan¨Ckind, intelligent, and unfailingly loyal despite how poorly he treated her. Pulling out my phone, I typed a message to Ethan, who I suspected was with Cassandra at that very moment. ¡°Brother, your girlfriend is really good. I just saw her buying a watch for you, worth thousands, probably a few months¡® sry for her. Treasure her.¡± My thumb hovered over the send button for a moment before pressing it. Would it make any difference? Probably not. But I had to try. The conflict inside me had been growing for months. Ethan was my oldest friend, but his treatment of Olivia was inexcusable. He had confessed to me, during a drunken night out, that he still couldn¡¯t forget Cassandra and merely treated Olivia as a substitute. ¡°She looks a bit like Cassandra, you know?¡± he had slurred. ¡°Same build, simr features. But she¡¯s¡­ easier. Doesn¡¯t demand as much.¡± I had been disgusted but said nothing. What kind of friend was I? And after the birthday party, I knew Ethan and Cassandra had spent the night together at a hotel. Earlier today, in our private friends¡® group chat¨Ca circle Olivia had never been invited into despite three years of dating¨CCassandra had brazenly posted a photo of herself with Ethan, suggesting he keep it as a souvenir, then deleted it a minuteter iming it was an ident. Everyone knew it wasn¡¯t an ident. It was a power y, a way to mark her territory. I pocketed my phone and headed for my car, wondering if I should have said more to Olivia. Warned her, perhaps. But what right did I have to interfere? (Ethan¡¯s POV) The exclusive restaurant was dimly lit, creating an intimate atmosphere as I sat across from Cassandra. Her green¨Cgold eyes sparkled as she talked about her ns to open a healing practice in Harbor City. My phone vibrated with an iing message. Jason¡¯s name shed on the screen, and I read his text about Olivia buying me an expensive watch. My initial irritation instantly dissipated, my expression softening. So Olivia was trying to make amends with an expensive gift. Perhaps she felt guilty about our confrontation at the jewelry < Chapter 5 Unexpected Encou store, or she was seeking to reconcile afterst night¡¯s events. +25 Puntos> Inwardly, I devised a n: ept the gift, give her an apology to smooth things over, offer some sweet words, and she would surely yield. Olivia was always so forgiving, so eager to please. It was one of the things that made her¡­ convenient. ¡°Ethan, who messaged you?¡± Cassandra asked, her tone casual but her eyes sharp. ¡°No one,¡± I replied coolly, putting my phone face¨Cdown on the table. ¡°You¡¯re smiling,¡± she observed. ¡°Must be good news.¡± I shrugged. ¡°Just business.¡± Standing up, I excused myself to the restroom, needing a moment to think. Olivia¡¯s gift was unexpected but not unwee. It meant she was still invested in our rtionship, still trying to please me despite everything. As I walked away, I didn¡¯t notice Cassandra¡¯s eyes following me, calcting and cold. (Cassandra¡¯s POV) The moment Ethan disappeared around the corner, I reached for his phone. The password was pathetically simple¨Chis birthday. He¡¯d never bothered to change it in all the years I¡¯d known him. I quickly navigated to his messages, starting with Olivia¡¯s chat window. Thest exchange was from a week ago, where she had suggested a vacation during the uing holiday, sharing scenic itineraries and activities they could enjoy together. Ethan had replied five hourster with a dismissive: ¡°It¡¯s too crowded during holidays, nothing fun about it.¡± Since then, Olivia had sent no more messages. I couldn¡¯t help but smirk at the lopsided affection. After three years, Ethan couldn¡¯t even be bothered to travel with her. Flicking through other chats, I spotted Jason¡¯s recent message praising Olivia¡¯s costly gift. My lips curled in disdain. So she¡¯s still trying to curry favor and mend things by buying gifts. I thought she was ready to give up, but no, she¡¯s still groveling. I locked the phone again and ced it exactly as Ethan had left it. Then I pulled out my own phone and dialed Margaret Grey, Ethan¡¯s mother. ¡°Madame Grey,¡± I greeted warmly when she answered. ¡°I hope I¡¯m not disturbing you.¡± < Chapter 5 Unexpected Encou ¡°Not at all, dear,¡± she replied. ¡°How are you and Ethan getting along?¡± +25 Puntos > ¡°Wonderfully,¡± I said, injecting just the right amount of concern into my voice. ¡°But I wanted to let you know¡­ I just went with Ethan to look at rings and saw that girl trying on engagement rings, clearly pushing him to marry her¡­¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) Back at Moonlight Manor, I continued packing my suitcase methodically. Martha had brought me fresh linens, her eyes curious but respectful enough not to ask questions. I carefully ced the watch¨Cmy gift not for Ethan, but for Connor Rivers¨Cin its box, wrapping it securely in a soft cloth before tucking it into my luggage. The thought of Connor brought a small smile to my face. Connor Rivers. My childhood friend and current fianc¨¦¨Cto¨Cbe in the nned alliance between the Winters Pack and Rivers Pack. Memories of Connor¡¯s cold yet elegant face came unbidden as I folded my clothes. We had known each other since childhood, living mere miles apart in the same territory of Riverdale. When I was ten, still a little girl with pigtails and scraped knees, my parents brought me to the Rivers residence. The mansion had seemed enormous then, with its sprawling gardens and imposing stone facade. There, I first glimpsed Connor, already a breathtakingly handsome fourteen¨Cyear¨Cold with frosty ice¨Cblue eyes like winter snow. He stood tall and proud beside his father, the Alpha of the Rivers pack. ¡°Go on,¡± my mother had whispered, giving me a gentle nudge forward. ¡°Say hello.¡± Obediently, I had called out, ¡°Alpha Connor.¡± He had only responded with a cool, ¡°Hello,¡± his expression unchanged. I remember thinking he must be difficult and unapproachable¨Ca misconception thatsted for years. I sighed, folding another sweater and cing it in my suitcase. How different things might have been if I¡¯d understood him better back then. After my mother¡¯s death from wolfsbane poisoning when I was fifteen, I transformed from a carefree child into a quiet, rebellious teen. The loss had hollowed me out, leaving me angry at the world and everyone in it. During my high school years, I struggled with history¨Cdates and events blurring together as I tried to focus through my grief. Connor¡¯s mother suggested he tutor me, boasting of his Puntos > When twenty¨Cone¨Cyear¨Cold Connor arrived at our home to help, I had defiantly told him, ¡°I don¡¯t need you to teach me.¡± He had only smiled, tapping my forehead gently with his pen. ¡°But I insist.¡± Contrary to my fears, he was endlessly patient, exining every concept thoroughly, even offering multiple interpretation methods when I struggled. He never rushed me, never showed frustration when I failed to grasp something immediately. Gradually, my resistance faded to admiration. One day, after I¡¯d finally mastered a particrly difficult concept, I marveled, ¡°Wow, Connor, you still remember all this after so many years?¡± He admitted with a softugh, ¡°Not everything. I reviewed the histories beforehand.¡± That small confession¨Cthat he had prepared specifically to help me¨Chad touched me deeply. Thanks to his devoted coaching over that summer, my knowledge soared, enabling me to attend Riverdale University¨Chis alma mater. To me, Connor had always been a respected figure, never a romantic prospect. So when my father proposed I marry Connor to strengthen the alliance between our packs, I instinctively rejected it. How could I marry someone I¡¯ve always looked up to? Instead, I had fled to Harbor City, determined to make my own way, to find love on my own terms. And I thought I had found it with Ethan Grey. How wrong I had been. Lost in these memories, I was startled when my bedroom door opened. Ethan stood leaning by the frame, gazing down at me with unreadable eyes. ¡°Are you almost done packing?¡± he asked quietly. I answered softly, ¡°Mm, almost.¡± He remained lounging against the door, then said, ¡°Liv, don¡¯t you have something you want to say to me?¡± Comentarios Whisper 6 Chapter 6: The Rift Widens Chapter 6: The Rift Widens (Olivia¡¯s POV) I looked up from my packing, meeting Ethan¡¯s blue eyes with confusion. His tall frame filled the doorway as he leaned against it, watching me with an expectant expression I couldn¡¯t quite decipher. ¡°What?¡± I asked, genuinely puzzled by his question. cker of impatience crossed his face before he softened his tone. His lips curved into that amiliar half¨Csmile that once made my heart race. ¡°I was harsh at Lunar Jewelers just now. Don¡¯t be mad anymore.¡± The statement hung in the air between us. He clearly expected me to melt at this barely¨Cthere apology, to rush into his arms with gratitude for his magnanimous forgiveness. Three months ago, I might have done exactly that. ¡°I¡¯m not angry,¡± I replied quietly, turning back to fold another sweater. Ethan scoffed, pushing himself off the doorframe and taking a step into my room. ¡°Come on, Liv. Don¡¯t be like that. Mouth says no, heart says yes.¡± I continued organizing my suitcase, not bothering to look up. ¡°Think whatever you like.¡± A sh of annoyance crossed his face. The patience in his voice was wearing thin now, the ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? find?novel facade of contrition rapidly fading. ¡°I already apologized. What more do you want?¡± he demanded, his tone hardening. I smoothed the wrinkles from a blouse before cing it carefully in my suitcase. ¡°I don¡¯t need your apology.¡± Ethan¡¯s jaw tightened as his gaze fixed on me. He seemed to realize his approach wasn¡¯t working, so he abruptly changed tactics. ¡°Where¡¯s the gift?¡± he asked stiffly. I nced up, genuinely confused again. ¡°What gift?¡± His eyes narrowed. ¡°Jason said he saw you buy me a watch. Didn¡¯t you buy that to make up with me? I¡¯m back now. Shouldn¡¯t you bring it out already?¡± 114 The sheer presumption in his voice almost made meugh out loud. Before I could rify, he continued, his tone growing increasingly arrogant. ¡°Enough is enough, stop making a fuss.¡± A mocking smile finally found its way to my lips. ¡°You¡¯re funny.¡± Ethan scowled, his brows drawing together. ¡°What¡¯s so funny?¡± I met his eyes directly, speaking with perfect rity. ¡°Yes, I bought a watch. But it¡¯s not for you. And I don¡¯t think I¡¯ve done anything wrong that requires me to coax you or apologize.¡± His anger red instantly, blue eyes darkening like storm clouds. ¡°Not for me? Then who is it for?¡± ¡°You have no right to know,¡± I answered lightly, turning back to my packing. Ethan¡¯s fury spiraled visibly, his face flushing with indignation. ¡°I have no right? I¡¯m your boyfriend! You buy a gift for another man and I can¡¯t even ask?¡± My voice remained calm, though I couldn¡¯t keep the derision from seeping into it. ¡°Aren¡¯t you Cassandra¡¯s boyfriend?¡± The question caught him off guard. His mouth opened and closed before he rushed to exin, his tone shrinking with guilt. ¡°Me and Cassandra¡­ it¡¯s not like that.¡± He sounded less sure now, his voice betraying his unease. I could see the truth written all over his face. He and Cassandra were no longer merely former potential partners¨Cthey¡¯d crossed the line countless times, yet he still clung to me as his official girlfriend. I understood his game perfectly. He liked Cassandra¡¯s boldness and passion, but also enjoyed my gentleness and quiet obedience. He was greedy and unwilling to give up either. Trying to salvage his lie, he continued, ¡°Today, I went shopping for rings with Cassandra because my mother asked me to. It wasn¡¯t for her.¡± He ran a hand through his dark hair, a gesture I¡¯d once found endearing. ¡°My mother bought a new dress and needed matching jewelry. She said Cassandra has good taste so she took her along. They were picking nes, earrings, bracelets, everything.¡± His eyes softened, attempting to look sincere. ¡°I knew you misunderstood, but I was angry then and didn¡¯t exin¨Cwanted to make you jealous on purpose.¡± My eyes turned frosty at his admission. ¡°You actually knew I would be jealous?¡± Puntos > pulled away before he could touch me. My rejection was immediate and cold. ¡°I heard your apology, but I don¡¯t ept it. And that gift is not for you.¡± His temper exploded again, voice rising sharply. ¡°Then who is it for?¡± I replied calmly, continuing to fold my clothes. ¡°My mate¨Cto¨Cbe.¡± Ethan sneered with disbelief, his handsome features twisting with contempt. ¡°Ha, Olivia, you¡¯re really shameless enough to threaten me with marriage to force me intomitting to you?¡± He took a step closer, looming over me. ¡°You mean if I agree tomit to you, you¡¯ll give me the gift and forgive me? Is that it?¡± I frowned, stunned by his narcissism. How could he be so full of himself? Did he truly think I couldn¡¯t live without him? Ethan looked at me with utter disappointment, shaking his head again and again. His voice dropped to a condescending whisper. ¡°I thought you understood the gulf between us. I thought you were sensible. But you keep trying to pressure me into amitment. I¡¯m really disappointed.¡± With that, he stormed out and mmed the door shut, the sound echoing through the room like a final punctuation mark. Left alone, I could only shake my head helplessly. I had nned to use this quarrel to break our rtionship cleanly, to tell him that I was the daughter of Alpha Richard Winters of the Riverdale pack, soon to return home to marry Connor Rivers. But he never gave me a chance to speak. I realized now¨Cperhaps the confidence he had that I would never leave him was something I had inadvertently given him. I had always been the obedient, undemanding girlfriend, never prying or jealous, always gentle andpliant, only sharing intimacy yet never my secrets. No wonder he mistook my tolerance for dependence. A year ago, I had overheard him telling his mother, Margaret Grey, ¡°Mother, don¡¯t worry. I know you won¡¯t approve of her joining our family. I¡¯m just dating her for now. Marriage is another matter.¡± He had even added smugly, ¡°Your son¡¯s not stupid. I know the difference between dating and marrying.¡± < Chapter 6 The Rift Widens +25 Puntos Since then, I had buried my true identity and any hopes for a future. Our rtionship became a mutual need for warmth andpanionship, little else. I had kept my heart guarded, my affections measured, but when I discovered I was merely Cassandra¡¯s stand¨Cin, even that fragile tolerance shattered. I was Olivia Winters, daughter of an Alpha, no one¡¯s substitute. The sound of voices downstairs pulled me from my thoughts. Martha¡¯s respectful tones were answered by a woman¡¯smanding voice that sent a chill down my spine. Footsteps approached my door, followed by a sharp knock. Before I could answer, the door swung open. Margaret Grey stood in the doorway, her imperious gaze sweeping over me and my half¨Cpacked suitcase. Wearing a deep blue silk dress, sparkling with matching sapphire earrings, ne, and a massive diamond ring, she looked every inch the wealthy matron who would indeed buy an entire jewelry set for a single outfit. ¡°You¡¯re Olivia Winters?¡± Her scrutinizing gaze was sharp, dripping with disdain, as if appraising an unworthy object. I straightened my posture, meeting her eyes directly. ¡°Hello, Mrs. Grey.¡± ¡°Hmm.¡± Margaret¡¯s eyes swept the room before settling back on me. ¡°I¡¯ve heard all about you and Ethan.¡± She moved into the room uninvited, her expensive perfume filling the air. With practiced elegance, she lowered herself into the armchair by the window, crossing her legs at the ankle. A cold smile curved her lips as she dered, ¡°A girl like you, dreaming of marrying into the Grey family?¡± Whisper 7 Chapter 7: Confrontation with Margaret Grey and Farewell¨C1 Chapter 7: Confrontation with Margaret Grey and Farewell (Olivia¡¯s POV) I sat calmly in the armchair across from Margaret Grey, my hands folded neatly in myp. Her imperious gaze swept over me like I was an insect ¡®she¡¯d found in her expensive tea. ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? find?novel ¡°I never intended to join the Grey pack,¡± I stated inly. Margaret¡¯s perfectly sculpted eyebrows shot up in surprise. She hadn¡¯t expected such directness. Her eyes narrowed as she scrutinized me from head to toe, taking in my simple blouse and jeans with obvious disdain. ¡°Is that so?¡± she asked, her voice dripping with disbelief. I could see the judgment in her eyes. To her, I was nothing but a social climber, a gold¨Cdigger hoping to elevate my status by attaching myself to an Alpha heir. Yet despite her obvious contempt, I remainedposed, my amber eyes clear and unwavering. ¡°Yes, that¡¯s so,¡± I replied evenly. Margaret adjusted her sapphire ne, the massive stones catching the light as she moved. The gesture was deliberate, meant to remind me of the wealth and status I supposedly coveted. ¡°I understand women like you all too well,¡± she said, her voiceced with condescension. ¡°It¡¯s my son¡¯s position as Alpha heir that attracts you, isn¡¯t it? He must have given you plenty of privileges already.¡± I met her gaze unflinchingly. ¡°I don¡¯t care about his status.¡± A harshugh escaped her perfectly painted lips. ¡°Stop pretending. If you really didn¡¯t care, would you have gotten together with Ethan at all?¡± My wolf, Cora, stirred within me, bristling at the insult. I tamped down her indignation and allowed a faint, mocking smile to curve my lips instead. ¡°Luna Grey, are you saying your son has nothing to offer besides his social status?¡± Margaret gasped, her face flushing with indignation. The sapphires at her throat seemed to darken with her mood. ¡°Sharp¨Ctongued!¡± she snapped, herposure cracking. ¡°Ethan praised you for being gentle 173 to serve tea to your elders. Where were you raised, in a barn?¡± I ced my cup down carefully, offering her an insincere smile. ¡°Sorry Luna Grey, but there¡¯s no extra cup here. Besides, you wouldn¡¯t want to use one I touched, right? And anyway, you don¡¯tck refreshment.¡± Her eyes widened at my polite sarcasm. I could practically see the thoughts racing through her mind: This rude girl is utterly unqualified to join the Grey family. ¡°Our Grey family is not a ce where just anyone can enter,¡± she dered, her voice hardening. ¡°You want to marry Ethan? Impossible!¡± She leaned forward, her jewelry glinting menacingly. ¡°Cassandra Evans is my ideal daughter¨Cinw. Our families are old friends, and she is Ethan¡¯s first love.¡± The words stung despite my resolve to remain unmoved. Margaret must have noticed, because a satisfied smile spread across her face. ¡°Give up,¡± shemanded. ¡°Pack your things and leave. Free up your ce beside Ethan.¡± My lips twitched slightly as memories surfaced unbidden. I recalled overhearing Ethan¡¯s private conversation with his mother months ago, his cold voice admitting I was nothing but a stand¨Cin for Cassandra. Just days before, out of lingering affection after three years together, I had still contemted using my healing knowledge to help Ethan with his digestive issues. I knew he believed I came from a modest background and never genuinely considered marrying me. Yet I had once thought of leveraging my cousin Alexander¡¯s power as head of the Silverridge family¨Cnow one of the top¨Cten wealthiest families in the region¨Cto form a business alliance with the Grey family. Alexander, who had doted on me since childhood, would have agreed without hesitation. But that night, those cruel words from Ethan shattered any such ns. I snapped back to the present, meeting Margaret¡¯s triumphant gaze with calm indifference. ¡°Don¡¯t worry,¡± I told her. ¡°I¡¯ll return to Riverdale in a couple of days and won¡¯te back.¡± Margaret blinked, momentarily stunned by my easy capittion. Her mouth opened slightly. 213 < Chapter 7 Confrontation with as if she¡¯d prepared for more resistance and now found herself without purpose. +25 Puntos > Before she could recover, I nced at my watch and stood. ¡°I have other matters. Goodbye.¡± Without waiting for her response, I retrieved my bag and walked briskly out of Moonlight Manor, leaving Margaret Grey and her schemes behind me. (Margaret¡¯s POV) I sat frozen in the armchair, watching that impertinent girl walk away without so much as a proper farewell. This was not how I had envisioned our confrontation. I had deliberately adorned myself with my most impressive sapphire jewelry and finest silk dress. I had rehearsed cutting remarks designed to reduce her to tears, to make her understand the vast gulf between her station and ours. Comentarios Whisper 8 Chapter 7: Confrontation with Margaret Grey and Farewell¨C2 Instead, she had departed with indifference, as if I were the one being dismissed! ¡°The nerve!¡± I muttered, rising from the chair with as much dignity as I could muster. Martha appeared in the doorway, her expression carefully neutral. ¡°Will you be staying for dinner, Luna Grey?¡± ¡°Certainly not,¡± I snapped, striding past her toward the front door. My driver opened the car door as I approached, and I slid into the plush leather seat with a huff of frustration. As soon as the door closed, I pulled out my phone, already nning how to convey my displeasure to Ethan. Before I could dial, the phone rang in my hand. Cassandra¡¯s name shed on the screen. ¡°Cassandra, dear,¡± I answered, my voice instantly transforming from irritation to maternal warmth. ¡°Luna Grey, how did it go?¡± Cassandra asked, her voice sweet with concern. I sighed dramatically. ¡°Cassandra, did you know that Ethan¡¯s girlfriend has no respect at all? A real shrew, proves the saying ¡®bad backgrounds breed bad manners.¡± ¡°Oh no,¡± Cassandra responded, her tone sympathetic. ¡°That must have been awful for you.¡± I couldn¡¯t see her face, but I could imagine the secret delight my words brought her. Cassandra had always been transparent in her ambitions, but at least she understood proper respect. ¡°Don¡¯t get upset,¡± she continued soothingly. ¡°Don¡¯t lower yourself to argue with someone like that.¡± ¡°You¡¯re still the sweetest girl,¡± I replied, settling back against the seat as my driver pulled away from Moonlight Manor. ¡°That girl said she¡¯s leaving in a few days and won¡¯te back. At Readplete version only at find[?]ovel least she knows her ce.¡± ¡°Really?¡± Cassandra¡¯s voice perked up with poorly disguised eagerness. ¡°So she¡¯s breaking up with Ethan?¡± I smiled confidently, though no one could see it. ¡°Even if she doesn¡¯t, I¡¯ll force them apart. After her attitude today, she has no chance.¡± ¡°Are you going back home now?¡± Cassandra asked quickly. ¡°I cane keep youpany.¡± ¡°That would be lovely, dear,¡± I replied, pleased by her attentiveness. ¡°I¡¯ll tell you all about it < Chapter 7 Confrontation with¡­ when you arrive.¡± 25 Puntos > As I ended the call, satisfaction began to rece my earlier frustration. The girl was leaving, and Cassandra would soon take her rightful ce beside Ethan. Everything was proceeding ording to n, even if not exactly as I had envisioned. (Olivia¡¯s POV) The familiar ss doors of thew center slid open as I approached. I had worked here for over three years, growing from an apprentice to a fully licensedwyer. This modest building had witnessed my entire professional journey. The receptionist looked up with a smile. ¡°Good afternoon, Ms. Winters.¡± I nodded in greeting, making my way to the director¡¯s office. Mr. Wilson was expecting me, having received my call earlier. ¡°Olivia,¡± he greeted me, rising from behind his desk. His bespectacled face showed genuine regret. ¡°I was hoping you might reconsider.¡± I shook my head gently. ¡°My decision is final, Mr. Wilson. I appreciate all the opportunities you¡¯ve given me.¡± He sighed, epting the envelope containing my formal resignation. ¡°You¡¯ve been an asset to this center. If you ever wish to return, there will always be a ce for you here.¡± Afterpleting the necessary paperwork, I headed to my small office to collect my personal belongings. Emma Thompson, my young assistant, was waiting for me, her expression anxious. ¡°Is it true?¡± she asked as soon as I entered. ¡°Are you really leaving?¡± I nodded, cing my resignation copy on the desk. ¡°Yes, Emma. I¡¯m returning to Riverdale.¡± Emma¡¯s eyes instantly reddened, tears welling up. ¡°Liv, why are you suddenly resigning?¡± I hadn¡¯t expected to feel sad about leaving. Thew center had been just a job, a means to support myself while I figured out my life in Harbor City. But facing Emma¡¯s tearful reluctance, a pang of sorrow struck my heart. Our bond had grown beyond mere workce camaraderie into something closer to sisterhood. Emma had joined me fresh out of Riverdale University, three years my junior and eager to learn. I had taken her under my wing, teaching her everything I knew aboutw practice. ¡°I have family matters to attend to,¡± I exined gently, reaching out to squeeze her hand. < Chapter 7: Confrontation with. ¡°But will youe back?¡± she asked, her voice small and hopeful. +25 Puntos > I hesitated, unwilling to lie to her. ¡°I don¡¯t think so, Emma. But this isn¡¯t goodbye forever. We¡¯ll stay in touch.¡± Emma wiped at her tears with the back of her hand. ¡°It won¡¯t be the same without you. You¡¯ve taught me so much.¡± ¡°And you¡¯ve learned well,¡± I assured her, smiling despite the lump forming in my throat. ¡°You¡¯re going to be an excellentwyer, Emma. Better than me.¡± She shook her head vigorously. ¡°That¡¯s not possible.¡± I began gathering my few personal items¨Ca small potted nt, a framed photo of my mother, a few reference books I¡¯d purchased myself. Emma watched silently, asionally sniffling. ¡°What about Alpha Grey?¡± she asked suddenly. ¡°Does he know you¡¯re leaving?¡± The question caught me off guard. Emma was one of the few people who knew about my rtionship with Ethan, though even she didn¡¯t know the full extent of itsplications. ¡°He will,¡± I replied simply. As I packed thest of my belongings into a small box, I reflected on the unexpected turn my day had taken. I hadn¡¯t nned to leave quite so abruptly, but Margaret Grey¡¯s deliberate humiliation had forced my hand. Yet perhaps this was the only way to protect my dignity, and to reim the courage to start anew. Whisper 9 Chapter 8: Farewell to the Past¨C1 Chapter 8: Farewell to the Past (Olivia¡¯s POV) A year ago, Emma Thompson broke up with her boyfriend. I remember her sitting across from me, her face blotchy from crying, hands trembling as she clutched a legal document. ¡°He¡¯s demanding fifty thousand dors,¡± she sobbed, her voice breaking. ¡°Says it was money he transferred to me during our rtionship.¡± I handed her a tissue, watching as she tried topose herself. ¡°That¡¯s not how it was at all,¡± Emma continued, wiping her tears. ¡°We agreed from the start that rent, utilities, and living expenses would be split evenly. He said his monthly two thousand dors covered his share, and I paid two thousand of my own.¡± Her shoulders shook with another wave of sobs. ¡°Now he insists it was a gift given with marriage intentions, so I should return it if we break
  1. up. But those were just daily expenses! The real gifts he ever gave me add up to less than five
hundred dors.¡± Emma looked up at me, her eyes red and desperate. ¡°How shameless can he be, filing a legalint over this?¡± She choked on her tears. ¡°My two thousand a month came from my parents. I¡¯m just a university student ¨C how can I afford fifty thousand?¡± She gripped my hand tightly, her fingers cold with fear. Checktest chapters at f?ndnovel ¡°I can¡¯t tell my family either. If my father knew I lived with a man during school, he¡¯d kill him.¡± Her voice dropped to a whisper. ¡°Liv, please help me¡­ I have nowhere else to turn.¡± The memory of Emma¡¯s desperate plea still resonated with me. Back then, I was barely established myself, a fresh graduate with a meager monthly ie from my new legal practice. But something about her situation struck a chord deep within me. Perhaps it was her vulnerability, or maybe I saw something of myself in her¨Csomeone alone in a city that could be cruelly indifferent. I broke the unspoken rule thatwyers don¡¯t take clients who can¡¯t pay. Not only did I take her < Chapter 8 Farewell to the Pa case, but I also lent her money to cover the legal fees needed to fight the im. +25 Puntos The fee was transferred directly to thewyer center, as is customary. I epted the case withoutpensation, knowing that without help, a vulnerable young woman like Emma might do something foolish. It wasn¡¯t easy. The ex¨Cboyfriend had carefully documented every transfer, presenting them as ¡°gifts¡± rather than shared expenses. But I was determined. After weeks of gathering evidence¨Cbank statements, text messages discussing bill payments, testimonies from roommates who had witnessed their financial arrangements¨Cl finally built a solid case. The day we won, Emma hugged me so tightly I could barely breathe. Her ex¨Cboyfriend¡¯s shameless false ims were exposed, and he was ordered to pay Emma¡¯s legal costs. Two monthster, after her graduation, Emma showed up at my office with a small potted nt and a determined expression. ¡°I want to work for you,¡± she dered. ¡°I want to learn everything you know.¡± Now, Emma¡¯s eyes were red again as she looked at me across my desk. ¡°Liv, I¡¯m still under my practice license here and can¡¯t leave yet,¡± she said softly. ¡°But once my internship ends, can Ie find you?¡± Her question caught me off guard. I hadn¡¯t expected such devotion, especially after announcing my sudden departure. ¡°Of course,¡± I replied, my amber eyes warming with genuine affection. ¡°My home is in Riverdale. When the timees, just contact me if you want to join me.¡± Emma broke into a teary smile. ¡°That¡¯s great! Liv, I¡¯ll follow you forever! Wherever you go, I¡¯ll
  1. go. Don¡¯t abandon this little tail.¡±
I couldn¡¯t help but smile at her earnestness. ¡°Never.¡± Our bond, forged through hardship and gratitude, gave me some rarefort amid my own turmoil. In a world where I¡¯d learned to guard my heart carefully, Emma¡¯s loyalty was a precious gift. After saying goodbye to Emma, I headed to the director¡¯s office. Thomas Wilson looked up from his desk as I entered, his bespectacled face registering mild surprise. ¡°Miss Winters,¡± he greeted me, gesturing to the chair opposite his desk. ¡°What can I do for you?¡± < Chapter 8 Farewell to the Pa +25 Puntos > I handed him my resignation letter. ¡°I¡¯m sorry for the short notice, Mr. Wilson.¡± He adjusted his sses, scanning the document with growing confusion. ¡°Miss Winters, why are you suddenly quitting? Did you run into trouble with any clients?¡± I shook my head quickly. ¡°No, Mr. Wilson. It¡¯s family matters, I have to return to my hometown.¡± His eyebrows rose slightly, but he remained professional. ¡°I know I¡¯m supposed to give a month¡¯s notice, but this was unexpected. I¡¯m sorry,¡± I added, feeling genuinely bad about the abruptness of my departure. Then I continued softly, ¡°My handover is almostplete. There¡¯s onest case hearing is in ten days. After that, I¡¯ll leave. I just wanted to inform you early.¡± ¨C the appeal Comentarios Whisper 10 Chapter 8: Farewell to the Past¨C2 The director paused, studying me for a moment. I could see him weighing my words, perhaps wondering about the real reason behind my sudden resignation. Finally, he nodded with understanding. ¡°Well, alright then. I wish you the best for the future.¡± Leaving thewyer center, I wandered the city streets as dusk deepened. The neon lights of Harbor City began to shimmer through the gathering darkness, painting the sidewalks in pools of blue, red, and yellow. A cool breeze rustled the treetops, carrying the scents of the city¨Cfood from nearby restaurants, exhaust from passing cars, the faint sweetness of blooming trees along the boulevard. A pang of loneliness swept through me. I was about to leave Harbor City, which had been my home for three years, a ce of both hardship and growth. When I¡¯d first arrived, my father, Richard Winters, had frozen all my ounts. It was his way of forcing me to return home after I¡¯d refused to ept his remarriage to my mother¡¯s best friend just two years after her death. I only had a few thousand dors in my mobile wallet, barely enough tost three days in a hotel. Within those days, I found a position at thewyer center, rented a tiny room near my workce, and borrowed money from my cousin Alexander just to eat. The tiny rental was in a chaotic neighborhood with poor security. Soon after moving in, a drunken man began pounding on my door at night. I remember hiding under the covers, trembling, my wolf instincts screaming at me to either fight or flee. But I couldn¡¯t shift¨Cnot there, not then. I was alone in human territory, with no pack to protect me. Comints to thendlord were useless. He shrugged me off with a dismissive attitude, suggesting I was ¡°too sensitive¡± and should ¡°learn to live in the real world.¡± In desperation, I moved again, only to have the unscrupulousndlord refuse to return my deposit. When I confronted him, he hurled insults at me, calling me a ¡°spoiled rich girl ying at independence.¡± He had no idea who I really was¨Cthat I was the daughter of Alpha Richard Winters of the Riverdale pack. If my father had known how I was being treated, the man would have faced consequences far worse than legal action. > But I handled it my way. Furious, I reported him to the local authorities for safety vitions and filed a formalint for breach of contract and verbal abuse. Before the court even epted the case, thendlord returned my deposit. Yet I refused to withdraw the defamationint. I pursued it to the end, eventually winning Later, I heard the drunken troublemaker had been driven from the neighborhood¨Cjustice, I thought with a small smile¨Cand thendlord had disappeared. That was my lowest, yet most resilient, moment. I survived it all alone. Memories flooded back of the day I first met Ethan Grey during a legal consultation. I was still an apprentice then, following a seniorwyer to a subsidiary of Ethan¡¯spany. Coincidentally, Ethan was there conducting an inspection. ording to him, it was love at first sight. He pursued me fiercely after that, showing up at my workce with coffee, sending flowers to my tiny apartment, finding excuses to ¡°identally¡± run into me. He was attentive and generous, always appearing when I needed support most. We shared genuine sweet times together. He took me to quiet restaurants where we talked for hours. He listened to my opinions with genuine interest, something I hadn¡¯t expected from an Alpha heir with his reputation. Until the night of our one¨Cyear anniversary: we¡¯d both been drinking wine, sitting close on his couch, the lights dimmed low. Ethan¡¯s eyes had darkened as he pulled me close, lowering his head to kiss my lips. Something inside me panicked. I shoved him away forcefully, nearly knocking over the wine sses on the coffee table. ¡°Why?¡± His voice was hoarse with hurt and confusion. I stammered, unable to exin the sudden fear that had gripped me. ¡°I¡­ I¡¯m just not ready yet. Please, give me some time.¡± Th?s chapter is updated by fin?novel After that, he became distant. Our rtionship continued, but something had changed. He never pushed me again, but the warmth between us had cooled. I never crossed that boundary with him, nor even epted his advances willingly, I wasn¡¯t sure why ¨C maybe because it was my first rtionship, maybe because I subconsciously found him overwhelming, knowing how many women he¡¯d been with. < Chapter 8: Farewell to the Pa +25 Puntos Whatever the reason, I was now deeply grateful I had kept my distance. The thought of having given myselfpletely to someone who saw me as nothing more than a recement was unbearable. Returning to Moonlight Manor, Ethan was nowhere to be seen. Perhaps he was with Cassandra, celebrating their reunion now that his mother had sessfully driven away the inconvenient girlfriend. I took a long shower, letting the hot water wash away the day¡¯s emotions. As I slipped between the cool sheets of my bed, exhaustion overtook me. There were only ten days left before I could leave this ce behind, along with the heartbreak and humiliation. ¡°How wonderful,¡± I thought quietly as my consciousness drifted away. 2 Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 373 Whisper 11 Chapter 9: Awakening and Awakening¨C1 Chapter 9: Awakening and Awakening (Olivia¡¯s POV) I woke naturally, stretching my limbs across the soft sheets as sunlight streamed through the windows of Moonlight Manor. ¡°Ah-¡± I yawned contentedly, relishing the unusual sensation of freedom. ¡°The feeling of not having to go to work is just sofortable.¡± After a leisurely shower, I dressed infortable clothes and headed downstairs. The familiar scent of freshly brewed herb tea and venison broth greeted me as I entered the dining room. Martha Jenkins had prepared breakfast for two, with ce settings arranged neatly across from each other. I nced at the empty seat opposite mine but said nothing as I took my ce. Martha noticed my arrival and approached with a pot of steaming tea. ¡°Miss Winters, is Mr. Grey noting down for breakfast today?¡± she asked, her voice tinged with confusion. I calmly epted the cup she offered, inhaling the soothing aroma before taking a sip. ¡°He didn¡¯te backst night, so probably not.¡± Martha¡¯s eyes widened slightly before she quicklyposed herself, realizing she was being nosy. With a small nod, she quietly retreated to the kitchen, leaving me to enjoy my breakfast in peace. The venison broth was rich and vorful, prepared exactly as I liked it. For three years, Martha had learned my preferences, always ensuring myfort despite her primary loyalty to the Grey family. I appreciated her kindness, one of the few genuine things I¡¯d experienced in this house. As I finished my meal, my phone vibrated with an iing message. Connor Rivers¡® name shed on the screen, bringing an unexpected warmth to my chest. ¡°Livvy, do you want the engagement dress to be custom¨Cmade or just pick a current¨Cseason designer one?¡± I hesitated, my finger hovering over the keyboard. Custom¨Cmade would be beautiful, but would there be enough time? I realized I didn¡¯t even know when the ceremony would take ce. ¡°When is the engagement ceremony scheduled?¡± I typed back. < Chapter 9 Awakening and A. +25 Puntos > Connor¡¯s response came quickly. ¡°Not fixed yet. Whenever you finish things in Harbor City and return to Riverdale, we can set it.¡± I felt a small smile form on my lips. Unlike Ethan, Connor never pressured me or made decisions without my input. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll be done here in nine days,¡± I assured him. ¡°Great,¡± he replied, and I could almost hear the gentle tone he always used with me. I considered the timeframe. Custom tailoring would be cutting it close, and I didn¡¯t want to rush the artisans. ¡°I¡¯ll just pick from the current season¡¯s dresses, I¡¯ll go pick one,¡± I decided. ¡°Okay, let me know when you decide,¡± Connor responded. Just as I was about to exit my messages, a notification caught my eye¨Ca new message from Ethan Grey. My heart skipped a beat, not from longing but from wariness. I clicked on it and found a video waiting to be yed. Taking a deep breath, I pressed y. The scene unfolded in a dimly lit private room, music thumping in the background. Ethan was clearly drunk, his normally perfect appearance disheveled as he leaned intimately into Cassandra¡¯s embrace. ¡°Cassie, you finally came back¡­¡± he mumbled, his words slurred but distinct. ¡°I knew you would¡­ I waited five years for you¡­¡± The background was filled with noisy jeers andughter. I recognized the voices¨CEthan¡¯s friends, Sophie Parker, and others from their social circle. All familiar faces who had smiled at me while harboring contempt. Cassandra held him with practiced tenderness, a soft smile ying on her lips. ¡°Ethan, you¡¯re drunk,¡± she said, her voice carrying just the right note of concern. He rubbed against her, his movements clumsy but determined. ¡°No, I¡¯m perfectly sober¡­ You are Cassandra Evans, my one true love, I¡¯m not wrong¡­ See, I¡¯m sober¡­¡± Someone in the background jeered loudly, ¡°Ethan, if Cassandra is your true love, then what about Olivia?¡± Ethan¡¯s response was slurred but crystal clear: ¡°Who is Olivia Winters? I¡­ I only love Cassie¡­¡± Sophie¡¯s voice chimed in, teasing and triumphant. ¡°Future Luna, Ethan is really only into you. Look, drunk as he is, you¡¯re all he can see.¡± < Chapter 9 Awakening and A +25 Puntos Hearing this, my eyes turned cold. During my three years with Ethan, no one had ever called me ¡°Future Luna.¡± It proved what I had always suspected: none of them ever truly epted me as Ethan¡¯s potential partner. It was no surprise. In that upper¨Ccrust social circle, I was always just a tolerated outsider from a rival territory. The mockery in the video only grew harsher. Victoria Reed, Sophie¡¯s so¨Ccalled good friend¨Cthe same woman who had previously used my mother¡¯s silver pendant of being fake¨Csneered loudly. ???? ????s? ???????s ?? F?ndNovel ¡°Why is Olivia so shameless? Cassandra is back already, yet she still clings on. Hasn¡¯t she any sense?¡± Whisper 12 Chapter 9: Awakening and Awakening¨C2 Sophie added with false sweetness, ¡°Women like her, once theytch onto a wealthy heir like Ethan, would never let go easily.¡± Hearing these words, a cold, mocking smile touched my lips. What I had sensed in Sophie¡¯s eyes at that birthday party¨Cthe veiled contempt¨Cwas no illusion. Her friendliness was just a mask. Deep down, she looked down on me no different from the rest. The conversation in the video continued, ruthless and unfiltered. ¡°Cassandra, don¡¯t worry. We¡¯re all on your side.¡± ¡°Yes, none of us like that Olivia. She should know her ce instead of forcing herself into our circle.¡± ¡°Probably read too many romance novels, dreaming of marrying into wealth. Pathetic really- doesn¡¯t she know to us, she¡¯s just an outsider pretending to belong?¡± ¡°Exactly. She¡¯s not one of us. Ethan was just ying with her. Now that you¡¯re back, Cassie, it¡¯s time for her to get lost.¡± My heart remained utterly calm as I watched. Cassandra¡¯s intentions were clear: send this video not only to dere her victory but to humiliate me, force me to see reality and give up on Ethan. Yet, contrary to what Cassandra might have imagined¨Cme crying and packing to slink away in shame¨Cthose words bounced harmlessly off my growing indifference. The drunken love talk from Ethan to Cassandra only disgusted me now. I exited the video without hesitation, my fingers quickly typing a reply: ¡°I truly am not from your circle.¡± Seeing this, Cassandra¨Cclearly using Ethan¡¯s phone¨Csmirked and responded, ¡°At least you have some self¨Cawareness.¡± I sneered inwardly at her ignorance. The Grey pack¡¯s so¨Ccalled ¡®empire¡® wasn¡¯t even close to matching just one minor territory of my father¡¯s Winters pack. Their yearly profits were mere scrapspared to a casual investment by my father, Richard Winters. The Winters family, four generations of powerful Alphas, were now among the territory¡¯s top ten powerful packs. The ¡®Winters¡® in my name was the same ¡®Winters¡® that would make those arrogant people¡¯s jaws drop if they ever found out. < Chapter 9 Awakening and A And so, this small interlude didn¡¯t disturb my peace at all. +25 Puntos > Enjoying my rare day of rest, I loungedfortably on the plush sofa, browsing luxury brands¡® websites on my tablet. It was time to select my engagement dress, and I approached the task with careful deliberation. After hours of searching, I narrowed it down to three stunning gowns but found myself torn between them. The first was a new¨Cstyle ceremonial dress in champagne with blush embroidery and sparkling crystal ents. Delicate pearl chains draped from the cor over the shoulders, creating a youthful and dazzling effect. The second was a moon¨Cwhite strapless fishtail gown with rose appliqu¨¦ across the bodice. It exuded an elegant maturity that appealed to my more sophisticated side. The third option was a soft off¨Cshoulder milk¨Cwhite tulle dress sprinkled with rose¨Cpink petals. It had a dreamy, romantic quality that made me think of fairy tales. Unable to decide, I posted all three photos to my social media with a caption: ¡°Choice paralysis again¨Chelp me pick the best one?¡± Within minutes, likes andments flooded in. Connor left a gentle message that made me smile: ¡°They¡¯re all beautiful. Just get all three and change as you like.¡± My childhood friend Reba Frost teased, ¡°Wow, Liv¡¯s taste is perfect! Anyway, let Connor buy them all, he won¡¯t mind the expense.¡± Another close friend, Lily,mented enthusiastically, ¡°Buy buy buy! Our Olivia looks good in everything!¡± My assistant Emma Thompson chimed in excitedly, ¡°Wow wow wow! Is something happening? Liv, are you getting engaged?¡± Their warmth and genuine excitement wrapped around me like aforting nket. But amidst these positive responses, a fewments stood out sharply. Sophie left only an awkward string of ellipses, clearly displeased by my post. Lucas Bet, one of Ethan¡¯s friends, mocked, ¡°Liv, you sure dare to dream? So funny.¡± A colleague from thew center sourly added, ¡°These are all top designer gowns. Before showing off, maybe check the price tag¡­ you couldn¡¯t even afford the essories, let alone the dress.¡± Another sneered, ¡°So rich, living the dream I never will.¡± : ¡°?¡± Their thinly veiled hostility only amused me now. If only they knew who they were really Official source is find(?)ovel talking to¨Cthe daughter of Alpha Richard Winters, heir to one of the territory¡¯s most powerful packs and fortunes. Just then a private message popped up from Ethan: ¡°Delete your post!¡± ¡°No,¡± I replied simply. He pressed, his frustration evident even through text. ¡°Trying to force me to marry you publicly? Did you not hear a word of what I told you before?¡± I replied with deliberate indifference: ¡°Oh.¡± Annoyed, he warned, ¡°Olivia, enough is enough.¡± But I no longer bothered to respond. His threats and demands meant nothing to me now. In nine days, I would be free of this ce, free of him, and ready to start my new life. Comentarios Whisper 13 Chapter 10: You Are the One I Care About¨C1 Chapter 10: You Are the One I Care About (Olivia¡¯s POV) I picked up my phone and dialed Connor Rivers¡® number. The call connected almost immediately. ¡°Livvy, do you like those three dresses?¡± His voice was gentle, warming me from the inside. ¡°Yes,¡± I replied, twirling a strand of honey¨Cbrown hair around my finger. ¡°Which one do you think looks best?¡± Connor chuckled softly, his tone indulgent. ¡°Didn¡¯t I say, if you like them, just get all of them? I already asked Henry to order all three.¡± I blinked in surprise. ¡°So fast? I just sent them to you a moment ago.¡± ¡°I was afraid they¡¯d sell out quickly. They¡¯re all limited editions,¡± he exined. ¡°Thank you, Con.¡± The words felt inadequate for his thoughtfulness. ¡°Livvy, you¡¯re my fianc¨¦e now. We¡¯re family. There¡¯s no need to be polite.¡± His words settled over me like a warm nket. Family. It had been so long since I¡¯d felt like I belonged anywhere. After hanging up, a gentle warmth lingered in my chest. The conversation with Connor was filled with understated tenderness and patience. Unlike Ethan, who barely remembered what I liked to eat, Connor seemed to notice everything about me. The contrast between the two men couldn¡¯t be more stark. ¡°By the way,¡± his voice had continued before we ended the call, ¡°I¡¯ve arranged for a car to be delivered to you tomorrow. Henry will bring it over.¡± I felt a flush of embarrassment creep up my neck. Three years ago, I¡¯d left Riverdale to avoid our arranged marriage. My father, Richard Winters, had cut off my finances in response, forcing me to build my life from scratch in Harbor City. The memory still stung. ¡°No need,¡± I said softly, ¡°taking a taxi is quite convenient.¡± There was a brief pause on the line. When Connor spoke again, his voice carried a trace of 171 < Chapter 10: You Are the One I. disappointment. ¡°Is it because you still don¡¯t want our engagement?¡± I instinctively shook my head, only to realize he couldn¡¯t see me through the phone. +25 Puntos ¡°No, Con. Since I¡¯ve agreed to the engagement, I¡¯m willing. It¡¯s just that I¡¯ll be back in Riverdale in a few days, so there¡¯s no need to buy a car now.¡± ¡°But you have that court hearing in the neighboring city next week,¡± he countered gently. ¡°You¡¯ll need transportation.¡± I froze, surprised. ¡°How did you know about that?¡± Hisugh was warm, almost shy. ¡°You posted about it on social media two months ago. You joked about a ¡®business trip¡® and how you were craving venison stew afterward.¡± My heart skipped a beat. He had remembered such a small detail from a casual post I¡¯d made weeks ago. Ethan had never bothered to keep track of my schedule, often making ns that conflicted with important hearings or meetings. The difference was like night and day. ¡°You¡­ remembered that?¡± I asked, my voice barely above a whisper. ¡°Of course,¡± Connor replied simply, as if it were the most natural thing in the world. ¡°I pay attention to what matters to you, Livvy.¡± Something shifted inside me then¨Ca subtle yet undeniable sense of being cherished. For the Updates are released by find?novel first time in years, I felt what it meant to be truly cared for. ¡°Alright,¡± I conceded, giving him Ethan¡¯s Moonlight Manor address. ¡°Thank you, Con.¡± ¡°Henry will deliver it tomorrow morning,¡± he promised. ¡°Drive safely, Livvy.¡± Shortly after ending the call, I heard the front door open. Ethan walked in with Cassandra clinging to his arm like a trophy. I was watching a legal program in the living room, my postureposed but indifferent. I spared only a sidelong nce at the pair, refusing to give them the satisfaction of a reaction. Without acknowledging me, Ethan casually announced, ¡°I¡¯m going to take a shower,¡± and headed upstairs, leaving Cassandra and me alone. Cassandra approached with a sweet smile stered on her face. ¡°Miss Winters, we meet again.¡± < Chapter 10 You Are the One I +25 Puntos > I ignored her, focusing on the television where a judge was delivering a verdict in a high¨Cprofile case. The legal arguments were far more interesting than whatever game she wanted to y. The smile on Cassandra¡¯s face quickly faded. She leaned closer, her voice dropping to a cold whisper. ¡°You¡¯ve seen that video, haven¡¯t you? The one showing that Ethan¡¯s real love is me.¡± I remained unfazed, my tone t. ¡°Yes, I know.¡± My indifference clearly irritated her. She sneered, tossing her hair over her shoulder. ¡°You¡¯re good at pretending to be calm. Let¡¯s see how long you can keep it up.¡± I finally turned to look at her, my amber eyes cool. ¡°Not as good as you at pretending.¡± Cassandra¡¯s nostrils red with anger. She clearly expected tears or a confrontation, not this calm dismissal. She snorted and sauntered upstairs after Ethan, deliberately calling out, ¡°Ethan, I¡¯ll shower with you!¡± Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 373 Whisper 14 Chapter 10: You Are the One I Care About¨C2 She cast a provocative nce over her shoulder, but I didn¡¯t bother to meet it. Her childish attempts to hurt me were bing more pathetic by the minute. Let them y their childish games. In just over a week, I would be gone. At dinner, the silent battle continued. Ethan and Cassandra sat together on one side of the table, while I dined alone on the other. Martha Jenkins, the loyal housekeeper, served a series of dishes¨Craw venison, raremb, bloody steak, raw liver¨Call red and bloody. The metallic smell filled the dining room. I frowned at the spread before me. ¡°Martha, why are all the dishes like this today?¡± Martha looked ufortable, her eyes darting between me and Ethan. Before she could answer, Ethan¡¯s cold voice cut in. ¡°These are Cassandra¡¯s favorites. She likes her meat raw.¡± Cassandra smiled smugly, cutting into a piece of bloody steak with exaggerated pleasure. She made a show of savoring the first bite, her eyes locked on mine. I looked at the bloody feast, then at Cassandra¡¯s smug expression. My lips curled in a mocking smile. ¡°Likes raw meat? More like trying to remind me I¡¯ve been ¡®reced, right?¡± I said, referring pointedly to his betrayal. Ethan¡¯s fork ttered against his te. His face darkened with anger. ¡°Olivia! What nonsense are you spouting?¡± I fixed my gaze on the conspicuous hickey on his neck, a ring mark left by Cassandra. ¡°You know perfectly well if it¡¯s nonsense.¡± My voice was calm but cutting. Furious, Ethan snapped, ¡°Eat if you want. Cassandra¡¯s staying here these days; we¡¯ll be eating raw often. If you can¡¯t stand it, cook for yourself.¡± Martha shifted ufortably behind us, clearly distressed by the tension. Cassandra¡¯s smile grew wider with each barbed exchange. It was clear he was using even the meals to humiliate me, sidingpletely with Cassandra to make me ufortable. < Chapter 10 You Are the One I¡­. Find the newest release on find?novel +25 Puntos The tension between us had only worsened after our argument about the watch from Timber Wolf Timepieces¨Ca gift I¡¯d purchased for Connor that Ethan had somehow discovered. Yet I felt no urge to exin or apologize. I had done nothing wrong. With quiet dignity, I set down my utensils and stood up. ¡°I¡¯ve lost my appetite.¡± ¡°Running away again?¡± Cassandra taunted. ¡°You¡¯re so predictable, Olivia.¡± I ignored her, turning to Martha. ¡°I¡¯ll eat in my room tonight. Could you please bring me some of your vegetable soupter?¡± Martha nodded quickly, relief evident in her eyes at having something helpful to do. ¡°Of course, Miss Winters. Right away.¡± Ethan¡¯s jaw tightened. ¡°Martha, focus on serving our guests first.¡± I smiled at the housekeeper. ¡°No rush, Martha. I understand you¡¯re busy.¡± With that, I left the dining room, my head held high. I¡¯d rather order takeout than endure this farce. Back in my room, I ordered a simple meal from a nearby restaurant. As I waited for the delivery, I gazed out the window at the darkening sky. Nine more days, I reminded myself. Just nine more days until I could leave this toxic environment behind. The next morning, I woke early and dressed in a simple blue blouse and tailored pants. I had just finished my breakfast when Martha informed me someone was at the door. Henry Morris, Connor¡¯s assistant, stood in the driveway beside a stunning cier blue Bentley Continental GT. He was a tall, serious¨Clooking man with efficient movements and a professional demeanor. ¡°Miss Winters,¡± he greeted me with a respectful nod. ¡°Mr. Rivers asked me to deliver this to you.¡± Comentarios Whisper 15 Chapter 11: cier Blue Bentley Encounter Chapter 11: cier Blue Bentley Encounter (Olivia¡¯s POV) The cier blue Bentley Continental GT gleamed in the morning sunlight, its unique color catching my eye immediately. I had never seen such a stunning shade on a vehicle before¨Cit reminded me of ice crystals reflecting winter light, elegant and breathtaking. Henry Morris stood beside it, his posture perfect as always. Connor¡¯s beta assistant was the epitome of professionalism, dressed in an impable tailored suit that spoke of his position within the Rivers pack. ¡°It¡¯s beautiful,¡± I whispered, unable to hide my genuine reaction. Henry¡¯s usually stoic expression softened slightly. ¡°Mr. Rivers selected this specific color himself. He was quite particr about it.¡± I approached the vehicle slowly, almost afraid to touch something so pristine. The craftsmanship was exquisite, from the sleek lines to the handcrafted details that made Bentley one of the most prestigious automotive brands in the world. Henry extended his hand, offering me the key with a slight bow. ¡°Miss Winters, this is a gift from Mr. Rivers.¡± As I epted the key, a subtle ripple passed through my heart. The cool metal against my palm felt significant somehow, weighted with meaning beyond its function. Connor Rivers¡® generosity was undeniable. Such a car cost well over $400,000, yet in our social circle, gifting a luxury vehicle to a fianc¨¦e wasmonce. Still, after years of living modestly and cutting myself off from my wealthy Winters family roots, the scale of this gesture felt surreal. For original chapters go to FindN0vel My phone rang, and Connor¡¯s name shed on the screen. I answered immediately. ¡°Do you like the car?¡± His tone was casual, as if discussing a simple lunch rather than an extravagant gift. ¡°I really like it. Thank you, Con,¡± I answered gently, running my fingers along the smooth door handle. His voice softened into a mellow caress. ¡°I remembered you like blue.¡± < Chapter 11 cier Blue Bent This surprised me. I couldn¡¯t recall ever explicitly telling him about my color preference. 425 Puntos Connor chuckled, the sound warm through the phone. ¡°When I tutored you that notebooks and pens were light blue.¡± year, all your The detail stirred something deep within me. Indeed, I had always loved blue, and this particr shade on the Bentley had stunned me at first sight. It was exactly the color I would have chosen myself. ¡°The moment I saw this car, I thought you¡¯d like it,¡± Connor continued warmly. ¡°It¡¯spact, perfect for you.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll try driving itter,¡± I replied softly, touched by his thoughtfulness. After hanging up, I sat in the driver¡¯s seat, my hands resting on the steering wheel. The interior smelled of premium leather and new car, but it was the emotions swirling inside me that overwhelmed my senses. I had a license and plenty of driving experience from these past three years, but I had always driven Ethan¡¯s cars¨Cmore like a chauffeur than a girlfriend. When Ethan went out drinking, I was summoned to pick him up, regardless of the hour or my own schedule. I¡¯d heard he once gifted his ex¨Cgirlfriend Cassandra a BMW worth over $80,000 right after their breakup. Yet, knowing my work as awyer demanded mobility, he never once considered buying me a car. It was never about the vehicle itself, but about the stark contrast in how he treated me versus how Connor did. To Ethan Grey, my existence never truly warranted such care or respect. Thisparison cut painfully deep, exposing just how shabby Ethan¡¯s so¨Ccalled affection really was. A surprised shriek suddenly snapped me from my reverie. ¡°Wow! This car is so beautiful! I¡¯ve always wanted to buy it, but I couldn¡¯t bear to spend the money.¡± It was Cassandra¡¯s voice, high¨Cpitched with excitement. Looking out, I saw her and Ethan walking toward the driveway. Cassandra¡¯s gaze was glued to the Bentley, openly coveting it. Despite being childhood friends with Ethan and their families once being close, her own family¡¯s fortunes had sharply declined in recent years. Her father¡¯s business was failing, and now their only hope was her marrying into the Grey family. Faced with her dream car, Cassandra greedily caressed the hood, marveling at every inch of < Chapter 11: cier Blue Bent¡­ the gleaming exterior. +25 Puntos > ¡°Ethan, take a photo of me,¡± she demanded, fixing her hair against the car¡¯s reflective window. The Bentley¡¯s ss was one¨Cway; inside, I observed the scene as if watching from behind a screen. Cassandra posed dramatically, using the car as her personal backdrop without any awareness that I was sitting inside. At the height of her self¨Cadmiration, I decided to make my presence known. I lowered the window smoothly, our eyes meeting suddenly. With a sweet smile, I greeted her. ¡°Hello.¡± Cassandra froze in shock, her mouth falling open. ¡°Olivia Winters? Why is it you?!¡± Her expression shifted rapidly from surprise to confusion to anger. She clearly couldn¡¯t Just then, Ethan approached, frowning deeply. Without a hint of inquiry about the situation, he immediately assumed the worst. ¡°Why did you rent a Bentley?¡± His expression was full of disdain, as if my worth only extended to borrowed luxury. Cassandra, quickly regaining herposure, sneered. ¡°Miss Winters, renting a car just to pose? A Bentley rental isn¡¯t cheap¨Cit must cost you a month¡¯s ie for a single photo, right?¡± Ethan¡¯s brow furrowed further, his contempt unfiltered. ¡°Olivia, since when have you be so vain? Renting a shy car for pictures? Are you crazy?¡± Cassandra added mockingly, ¡°Yes, Miss Winters, everyone knows your ie. Even if you post those photos, people will only say you¡¯re pretending. Why bother?¡± Their immediate assumption that I couldn¡¯t possibly own such a car spoke volumes about how they viewed me. After three years together, Ethan still saw me as someone beneath him, someone who would need to rent luxury items to appear worthy. ¡°You seem very familiar with renting luxury cars,¡± I responded calmly. ¡°Is it because you¡¯ve rented them before?¡± The smile on Cassandra¡¯s face faltered, her lie exposed. Indeed, she had rented a Lamborghini before¨Cworth over $100,000¨Cto show off in her social circle when her father refused to buy her one. But now, she clung to her pride. ¡°I don¡¯t need to rent. When I was abroad, I drove a Lamborghini < Chapter 11: cier Blue Bent worth much more than this.¡± +25 Puntos > I quirked a brow, seeing through her facade. ¡°Oh? Howe I haven¡¯t seen you driving it?¡± Cassandra lied effortlessly, her eyes never wavering. ¡°I got tired of it. Those shy cars aren¡¯t really for women. I recently switched to a Panamera. Maybe I¡¯ll let you take photos with it someday, free of charge.¡± Her tone dripped with scorn. Yet I knew that Panamera was a second¨Chand purchase to keep up appearances, given her family¡¯s financial ruin. The information hade through Connor¡¯swork¨Che had mentioned it casually during one of our conversations, not to gossip but to warn me about her potential desperation. Feigning innocence, I teased, ¡°Oh¨Cis that so? You wanted some photos earlier, right? I can lend you this Bentley for a shot.¡± Cassandra¡¯s face darkened immediately. ¡°No need.¡± Her pride wouldn¡¯t allow her to ept anything from me, especially now that she realized the car might actually belong to me. On the sidelines, Ethan¡¯s voice pierced coldly once again. ¡°Olivia, why didn¡¯t I realize before how vain you really are?¡± Whisper 16 Chapter 12: Territorial ims¨C1 Chapter 12: Territorial ims (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°Yes,¡± I replied calmly to Ethan¡¯s usation of vanity, ¡°because you don¡¯t really know me.¡± The truth of my words hung in the air between us. After three years together, Ethan Grey still had no idea who I truly was. The realization should have hurt, but instead, it felt liberating. I turned to Cassandra with a mischievous glint in my eye. ¡°Miss Evans, really don¡¯t want a photo? If not, I¡¯m driving away.¡± Cassandra¡¯s face turned an interesting shade of green with frustration. I could practically see the internal battle raging inside her. The cier blue Bentley Continental GT was exactly the kind of luxury she desperately wanted to unt on social media, but her pride wouldn¡¯t allow her to ask me for anything. ¡°I don¡¯t care,¡± she forced herself to say stiffly, her voice tight with barely contained envy. ¡°Okay then, bye¨Cbye!¡± I waved cheekily, enjoying this rare moment of having the upper hand. Fresh chapters posted on F¦ÉndNovel I stepped on the elerator, and the powerful engine responded immediately. The blue Bentley shot forward smoothly, leaving them behind in a cloud of dust. Through my rearview mirror, I caught a glimpse of their stunned expressions growing smaller as the distance between us increased. The satisfaction I felt was petty, perhaps, but after enduring weeks of their deliberate humiliation, this small victory tasted incredibly sweet. As I drove away, I could still see them in my rearview mirror. Cassandra¡¯s jealousy was palpable even from a distance as she turned to Ethan. ¡°Ethan, why would you be interested in such a vain woman?¡± her voice carried faintly on the wind. Ethan rubbed his brow, a hint of annoyance surfacing on his handsome face. ¡°She wasn¡¯t always like this. I don¡¯t know what¡¯s gotten into hertely, forcing me to marry her and even renting a car,¡± His words stung despite my best efforts to remain indifferent. Forcing him to marry me? Is that what he truly believed? The memory of his own proposal three years ago shed through my mind¨Chow eagerly he had pursued me after Cassandra left for her studies abroad. 1.3 < Chapter 12 Territorial ims¡­ Cassandra feigned sympathy, crossing her arms over her chest. ¡°She probably feels threatened since I¡¯m close to you. Renting the car must be her way to fit into our circle.¡± +25 Puntos She clicked her tongue, adding with false pity, ¡°But a rented car is still just rented. In the end, she can only take a few photos before returning it. How pathetic.¡± Ethan¡¯s voice carried his clear distaste. ¡°Enough, I¡¯m embarrassed for her.¡± He turned and left Cassandra outside the Moonlight Manor, as if distancing himself from the entire farce. Their assumptions about me renting the car rather than owning it spoke volumes about how little they thought of me. I drove the Bentley around Harbor City for a while, letting the smooth handling and powerful engine calm my nerves. The luxury of the vehicle was undeniable¨Cthe buttery soft leather seats, the responsive steering, the quiet purr of the engine. Connor had chosen well. After clearing my mind with the drive, I parked the Bentley discreetly in a paid lot outside the Moonlight Manor. I deliberately avoided the garage¨Cwe weren¡¯t at the point of tearing off all pretense yet. Not long ago, I had considered confessing my true identity and background to Ethan. Now, I no longer saw the need. Let him believe what he wanted about me. In just over a week, I would be gone from his lifepletely. That night, I brought home takeout from a specialty restaurant and sat down at the dining table as if nothing was amiss. I opened the boxes filled with spicy venison and herb¨Ccrusted rabbit, the rich aroma instantly filling the room. The scent of seasoned crawfish and chili¨Crubbed wild boar wafted through the air, making my mouth water in anticipation. I noticed Ethan¡¯s gaze drawn helplessly to my meal, his mouth watering against his will as the spicy scent awakened his appetite. Compared to his nd vegetarian tes¨CCassandra¡¯s preferred diet¨Cmy food looked infinitely more tempting. I suppressed a smile, remembering how much Ethan had always loved spicy food. Memories shed of past dates when I would peel crawfish for him with my slender fingers, feeding him bite after bite. He would close his eyes in pleasure, savoring the spicy, sulent meat. Now, I dexterously peeled the crawfish for myself, enjoying each morsel without offering him any. I could feel his eyes on me, watching my every move with an intensity that spoke of more than just hunger for food. < Chapter 12: Territorial ims¡­ +25 Puntos 2 When I caught him staring, I swallowed and asked bluntly, ¡°What is it? Why are you looking at me?¡± Embarrassed at being caught, Ethan coughed and pretended indifference. ¡°Can you not eat such pungent things?¡± Whisper 17 Chapter 12: Territorial ims¨C2 Before I could answer, Cassandra, sitting nearby, interjected sharply, ¡°Ugh, the poorer someone is, the more they like heavy, spicy vors. Miss Winters, that smell is awful. Maybe take it outside?¡± The irony wasn¡¯t lost on me¨CEthan was just craving these very dishes moments ago, yet Cassandra now used them as a ss insult. I wondered if he would defend me or his own preferences. He did neither, sitting in ufortable silence as Cassandra continued her tirade against my ¡°low¨Css¡± food choices. licked my lips provocatively and deliberately stirred the pot. ¡°Miss Evans, it seems you don¡¯t really know Ethan. Why don¡¯t you ask him if he likes spicy food?¡± Cassandra looked stunned and turned to Ethan, clearly expecting him to side with her refined pte. His brow twitched, unwilling to expose himself, and he simply picked up some in vegetables. ¡°Forget her, let¡¯s just eat,¡± he muttered, avoiding both our gazes. Ignoring their awkwardness, I happily finished my entire spicy feast, humming with satisfaction at each delicious bite. The tension at the table was palpable, but for once, I wasn¡¯t the one feeling ufortable. After dinner, Cassandra strutted around the living room like she already owned the ce. She began nitpicking everything I had once lovingly arranged. ¡°Ethan, these curtains are ugly,¡± she dered, running her fingers along the fabric I had carefully selected toplement the room¡¯s color scheme. She moved to the antique vase I had found at a local market. ¡°That vase shes horribly with the decor.¡± Her gaze then fell on the fresh flowers I had arranged that morning. She wrinkled her nose andined, ¡°And those flowers¨CI¡¯m allergic to pollen, can you toss them out?¡± Ethan, seeking to appease her, said perfunctorily, ¡°Change whatever you don¡¯t like.¡± His gaze flickered to me, almost as if testing my reaction. ¡°Since you¡¯re allergic, throw them away.¡± I sat quietly, keeping my expression neutral as I watched their little performance. This wasn¡¯t < Chapter 12. Territorial ims¡­ +25 Puntos truly my home anymore, so what did it matter if she wanted to redecorate? In a week¡¯s time, I would be gone, and she could paint the walls neon pink for all I cared. Cassandra mistook my silence for defeat and smirked triumphantly, feeling she had won this silent battle. Her eyes gleamed with satisfaction as she continued pointing out everything she wanted to change. Ethan called out to Martha, instructing her coldly, ¡°Get rid of these flowers.¡± Martha hesitated, her loyalty to me evident in her reluctance. She whispered, ¡°But sir, Miss Winters bought those.¡± His face darkened at her defiance. ¡°So what? Do you forget who pays your sry?¡± The threat was clear¨CMartha¡¯s position depended on her obedience to him, not her affection for me. I felt a pang of sympathy for the housekeeper caught in our power struggle. ¡°It¡¯s fine, Martha,¡± I interjected softly. ¡°Just throw them out.¡± The loyal housekeeper reluctantly obeyed, though I could see her cursing inwardly at the ¡°crazy master and crazydy.¡± I knew she particrly resented the gloomy days of nd vegetarian meals since Cassandra¡¯s arrival. Cassandra, emboldened by her victory with the flowers, clung coquettishly to Ethan¡¯s arm. ¡°Ethan, tomorrowe shopping for curtains with me.¡± Ethan nced instinctively at me, perhaps expecting jealousy or protest. Instead, he found me utterly calm, devoid of any visible reaction. My indifference seemed to irritate him more than any angry outburst would have. Wasn¡¯t I too obedient, too silent? Wasn¡¯t a hint of jealousy normal? The very qualities he once appreciated in me¨Cmy patience, my understanding¨Cnow seemed to frustrate him. Cassandra shook his arm impatiently when he didn¡¯t immediately respond. ¡°Ethan, did you hear me?¡± He pulled back his gaze from me, suppressing whatever emotions were brewing beneath his surface. ¡°Mm,¡± he answered with a low, muffled sound of agreement. The next day, while I was out running errands, Cassandra went on her shopping spree. When I returned to Moonlight Manor, the ce was in chaos. Workers moved throughout the house, removing curtains, recing decorative items, and rearranging furniture. Cassandra had ostentatiously purchased a mountain of home decor,manding the staff to rece everything I had once carefully selected. ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? F?ndNovel 213 < Chapter 12 Territonal ims +25 Puntos > My curtains, chosen for their subtle pattern that caught the morning light just so, were being tossed unceremoniously intorge trash bags. The artwork I had selected toplement the manor¡¯s architecture was being reced with gaudy, oversized pieces that overwhelmed the space. Everything that had once made this ce feel like home to me was being ruthlessly discarded. When our eyes met across the chaotic living room, Cassandra¡¯s gaze was smug and victorious. I simply swept my eyes over the busy workers and the piles of new furnishings before turning silently toward the stairs. Let her have her petty victory. Let her mark her territory like an animal iming a new den. In my room, I methodically began packing what I nned to take with me to Riverdale. I sorted through my belongings, deciding what to discard and what to keep, leaving out only the necessities for my remaining days here. I had hoped for a peaceful coexistence in these final days at Moonlight Manor, but Cassandra clearly intended to force me out by any means necessary. Comentarios Whisper 18 Chapter 13: Shattered Memories¨C1 Chapter 13: Shattered Memories (Olivia¡¯s POV) The warm water cascaded over my skin as I soaked in the bathtub, trying to wash away the stress of the uing territory dispute hearing. Tomorrow would be a crucial day¨Cthe formal proceedings that would determine the boundaries between the Grey and Rivers packs. I closed my eyes, letting thevender¨Cscented bubbles soothe my frayed nerves. The past few days had been a constant battle with Cassandra¡¯s territorial marking of Moonlight Manor. Every corner now bore her touch, erasing my presence bit by bit. A sharp crash from my bedroom jolted me from my thoughts. My heart raced as I quickly rinsed the soap from my skin. Something was wrong. Very wrong. I hastily threw on my cotton pajamas, not bothering to dry myself properly. Water dripped from my honey¨Cbrown hair as I rushed out of the bathroom. What greeted me stopped my heart cold. Scattered across my hardwood floor were fragments of light blue ceramic. Not just any ceramic¨Cmy cherished wolf figurine. The one I had crafted with my mother on my twelfth birthday. The figurine that had our names¨COlivia Winters and Sarah Winters¨Cengraved on its base. Thest gift from my mother before she died. Blood rushed to my head, fury zing through my veins like wildfire. My vision blurred with rage as I stared at the shattered remains of my most precious possession. ¡°Who was it!¡± I roared, my voice unrecognizable even to myself. I stormed out of my room, determined to find the culprit who had dared to destroy the only physical connection I had left to my mother. banged violently on Ethan¡¯s bedroom door across the hall, my fist pounding against the wood with enough force to hurt my knuckles. ¡°Ethan! Cassandra! Which one of you entered my room?¡± I demanded, my voice echoing through the corridor. The door swung open to reveal Ethan¡¯s irritated face. His blue eyes narrowed as he took in my < Chapter 13 Shattered Memor¡­.. disheveled appearance. +25 Puntos > ¡°What are you yelling about in the middle of the night? Can¡¯t you let people sleep?¡± he snapped impatiently. My chest heaved with anger as I red fiercely at him. My voice trembled with barely contained fury. ¡°Ethan, did you just go into my room?¡± He frowned, his expression cold and dismissive. ¡°Who would go into your room? Stop making a fuss. I¡¯ve been here reviewing contracts the whole time.¡± Without wasting another word, I turned sharply on my heel. If not Ethan, then there was only one other suspect. I strode purposefully toward the corridor¡¯s end where Cassandra¡¯s guest room was located. I could hear Ethan¡¯s footsteps behind me, following with obvious concern that things would escte. I kicked forcefully at Cassandra¡¯s door, not caring about propriety or manners anymore. ¡°Cassandra! Open up!¡± I shouted, my voice raw with emotion. I sensed Ethan hesitating behind me. This wasn¡¯t the gentle, easily bullied Olivia he knew. The woman who always backed down, who always amodated others at her own expense. That Olivia was gone. Cassandra finally opened the door slowly, her eyes filled with annoyance. ¡°Olivia, are you insane?¡± Without hesitation, I grabbed her wrist and dragged her roughly toward my bedroom. She struggled desperately, stumbling along as I pulled her with strength I didn¡¯t know I possessed. ¡°Let go of me! Olivia, let go!¡± she cried, her voice rising in panic. I ignored her protests, yanking her inside my room before flinging her away from me. Cassandra staggered backward, banging her knee painfully against a cab. ¡°Are you crazy?¡± she shrieked, rubbing her injured knee. I stood over her, my voice dropping to an ice¨Ccold menace that made her shrink back. ¡°Did you smash my ceramic wolf figurine? Why were you in my room?¡± Cassandra¡¯s eyes flickered evasively, guilt written all over her face. ¡°I¡­ I didn¡¯t! I was in my < Chapter 13 Shattered Memor room the whole time, don¡¯t use me!¡± +25 Puntos > I fixed my sharp gaze on her, watching her squirm under my scrutiny. ¡°Really? Because when I came out of the bathroom, I just happened to glimpse a beige skirt at the door.¡± At that, Cassandra blurted out, ¡°You¡¯re lying! When I went over, I was wearing a gray skirt¨Cthis beige dress I just changed¡­¡± Her voice trailed off as she realized her mistake. Her eyes widened in panic as she understood she¡¯d been tricked into admitting her presence in my room. My tone turned frosty as I cut her off. ¡°So, this beige dress is what you just put on, isn¡¯t it? What exactly were you doing in my room?¡± Under my terrifying re, Cassandra shuddered involuntarily. ¡°I¡­ I was just wandering Follow current nov?ls on find[?]ovel around¡­¡± ¡°Why would you wander into my room for no reason?¡± I pressed relentlessly. Cassandra gulped, unable to answer. Her guilty expression told me everything I needed to know. Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 233 Whisper 19 Chapter 13: Shattered Memories¨C2 Official source is FindN()vel (Ethan¡¯s POV) I couldn¡¯t stand by and watch this interrogation any longer. Stepping forward, I positioned myself protectively in front of Cassandra, shielding her from Olivia¡¯s wrath. ¡°Enough!¡± I barked, shocked by Olivia¡¯s transformation. Where was the gentle woman I¡¯d known for three years? This fury¨Cfilled stranger was unrecognizable. ¡°Stop making trouble over a broken ceramic trinket. Buy another one if it matters so much, why bully Cassandra?¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) A loud p rang out through the room. My palm stung from the impact as it connected with Ethan¡¯s face. The sound echoed in the sudden silence that followed. Both he and Cassandra stared at me, stunned by this unprecedented defiance. Ethan¡¯s hand slowly rose to touch his reddening cheek, disbelief written across his features. ¡°Get lost!¡± I screamed hoarsely, my voice breaking with emotion. ¡°Who are you to forgive on my behalf?¡± (Cassandra¡¯s POV) I couldn¡¯t believe what I¡¯d just witnessed. How dare this nobody p Ethan? My Ethan! Rage boiled inside me as I pushed him aside, lunging at Olivia with my hands outstretched like ws. ¡°How dare you hit him!¡± I shrieked. But before I could reach her, a second pnded squarely on my cheek. The force of it snapped my head to the side, leaving a vivid red mark that burned like fire. Humiliated and enraged, I raised my hand to retaliate. But Olivia was faster. She seized my wrist in a grip so tight it hurt, then flung me aside like I weighed nothing. I crashed to the ground, my palmnding directly on the razor¨Csharp ceramic shards scattered across the floor. Pain shot through my hand as the fragments sliced into my skin. Blood immediately welled up, dripping from my palm onto the hardwood floor. < Chapter 13: Shattered Memor ¡°Ahhh¨Cmy hand! My hand!¡± I screamed, clutching my bleeding palm to my chest. (Ethan¡¯s POV) I rushed to Cassandra¡¯s side, panic gripping my heart at the sight of her blood. +25 Puntos > ¡°Wanwan, are you alright?¡± The pet name I used only in our most intimate moments escaped without thought. I gently took her injured hand, examining the cuts. Relief washed over me when I saw they weren¡¯t deep enough to cause permanent damage. Still, the sight of her blood made my protective instincts re. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I looked down at the bleeding Cassandra, feeling no sympathy whatsoever. My gaze was icy and merciless as I watched her performance. ¡°Serves you right. If you hadn¡¯t smashed it, you wouldn¡¯t be hurt.¡± (Ethan¡¯s POV) I couldn¡¯t believe Olivia¡¯s cruelty. This wasn¡¯t the woman I thought I knew. ring at her furiously, I demanded, ¡°Olivia, you¡¯ve gone too far! Apologize to Wanwan!¡± But her eyes remained frozen with cold contempt. ¡°She should apologize to me for breaking my mother¡¯s keepsake.¡± Cassandra sobbed miserably in my arms, her tears soaking into my shirt. ¡°It hurts, Zechuan, it really hurts¡­¡± she whimpered, using my Chinese name that only she was allowed to use. Her vulnerability awakened every protective instinct I possessed. ¡°Hold on, I¡¯m taking you to the doctor.¡± I lifted her into my arms, cradling her against my chest. Her blood stained my shirt, but I didn¡¯t care. All that mattered was getting her the medical attention she needed. As I passed Olivia, I threw her a venomous re. ¡°Get out of my sight. I never want to see you again!¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°Fine.¡± My voice was emotionless and resolute. (Ethan¡¯s POV) I paused briefly, shocked by her uncharacteristic indifference. The Olivia I knew would have Chapter 13 Shattered Memor¡­.. apologized immediately, would have been devastated by my anger. +25 Puntos > But Cassandra¡¯s bleeding hand left me no time to ponder this transformation. I red at Olivia onest time and stormed downstairs carrying Cassandra, leaving silence in our wake. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Once alone, I slowly knelt beside the scattered ceramic remnants. My trembling fingers reached out to touch the jagged shards, tears dripping silently onto the cold fragments. ¡°Mom, I¡¯m sorry¡­ I failed to protect the gift you left me¡­ I¡¯m so sorry, Mom¡­¡± My voice broke into choking sobs as I grieved over the irretrievable loss. Memories of my mother flooded my mind, washing over me in waves of bittersweet pain. Back when I was twelve, my mother fell severely ill. The gentle, graceful woman with her ever¨Cpresent soft smile was reduced to a frail figure, pale and wasted away by disease. Sarah Winters, once the vibrant Luna of the Winters pack, now confined to a hospital bed, her strength diminishing day by day from the rare wolfsbane poisoning that even her enhanced healing abilities couldn¡¯t ovee. Young Olivia, just entering middle school, would rush daily not home, but straight to the medical facility after sses. I would sit by her bedside, sharing stories from school, singing the new songs my teachers taught. ¡°Mama Wolf, when will you get better?¡± my bright young eyes shimmered with barely hidden sorrow, using the nickname I¡¯d given her when I was little. Sarah gently stroked my honey¨Cbrown hair, lips lifting into a tender smile despite her pallor. ¡°The doctor says I¡¯ll be leaving the medical facility soon,¡± she whispered. ¡°Really?¡± My eyes gleamed with hope, childish innocence preventing me from seeing the truth. ¡°Mhm,¡± her voice soft but resolute, ¡°In a few days, I¡¯ll leave the medical facility and celebrate your birthday with you.¡± ¡°Yay!¡± My face lit up, believing every word. I thought my mother would soon recover Onlyter did I learn that ¡°leaving¡± didn¡¯t mean recovery. It meant the doctors were powerless; my mother was brought home simply to spend her final days alongside family, to fulfill thosest precious wishes. The ceramic wolf figurine we crafted together on that final birthday was thest gift my mother had given me¨Cand now Cassandra had destroyed it out of spite. Whisper 20 Chapter 14: The Mother¡¯s Legacy¨C1 Chapter 14: The Mother¡¯s Legacy (Olivia¡¯s POV) The snow had just stopped falling over Riverdale. The sky cleared to a brilliant blue, making the snowden trees sparkle like they were covered in diamonds. I remember that day so vividly. I was only twelve, sitting in the backseat of my father¡¯s car as we drove to pick up my mother from the hospital. The doctors had finally released her toe home. My father, Richard Winters, gripped the steering wheel tightly. His knuckles were white with tension. The silence between my parents was heavy, almost suffocating, but I didn¡¯t notice it then. I was too busy fogging up the window with my breath, using my finger to draw pictures on the ss. ¡°Look, Mama!¡± I chirped happily, pointing to my creation. ¡°It¡¯s us!¡± I had drawn our family of three¨Cstick figures holding hands under a smiling sun. My heart was overflowing with joy. Mama was finallying home. My mother turned in her seat to look at my childish artwork. Something flickered across her face¨Ca shadow of pain that I was too young to recognize. Her beautiful amber eyes, so like my own, quickly reddened with unshed tears. She quietly wiped them away before I could notice, forcing a gentle smile to her pale lips. ¡°Your birthday ising soon, Livvy,¡± she said softly. ¡°What present would you like?¡± I continued drawing on the foggy window, adding a house with smoke curling from the chimney. ¡°Mama, I want a wolf figurine,¡± I replied without looking up. ¡°A wolf figurine?¡± My mother sounded puzzled. ¡°Do you mean a carving?¡± I shook my head eagerly, finally turning to face her. ¡°No, it¡¯s a ceramic wolf! I want a light blue ceramic wolf.¡± My eyes sparkled with excitement as I exined, ¡°Becky said there¡¯s a new DIY workshop on Moon Street. We can buy an unpainted ceramic wolf and color it ourselves!¡± ¡°Last week, Becky and Jason went and painted two really cute figurines,¡± I added, bouncing 774 < Chapter 14 The Mother¡¯s Leg slightly in my seat. $25 Puntos > My mother¡¯s smile grew gentler, more genuine. ¡°Alright, whatever my Livvy wants, Mama will do with you.¡± On my twelfth birthday, heavy snow nketed Riverdale again. My mother and I walked hand in hand into the DIY workshop, our footprints marking a trail behind us in the fresh snow. We had pre¨Cordered a in ceramic wolf figurine. The owner handed it over immediately, and my mother and I sat at a small table by the window, carefully selecting colors and brushes. Together, we painted the figurine light blue¨Cmy favorite color. My mother¡¯s hands were thin and trembling slightly, but her brushstrokes were still precise and elegant. It was our first ever joint creation. When we finished, I held up the figurine to the light, turning it this way and that to admire our work. ¡°It¡¯s beautiful, Mama! Even prettier than I imagined!¡± My mother smiled, her amber eyes soft with love. ¡°It is beautiful, just like you.¡± Afterward, we stopped at a nearby bakery and bought a small chocte cake with strawberries¨Cmy favorite. My mother carried the cake in one hand and held my tiny palm in the other as we trudged through the swirling snow toward the parking lot where my father waited. Suddenly, she stopped walking. I looked up at her, confused. She turned to gaze at me with such deep tenderness that even my young heart recognized something important was happening. Her breath formed small clouds in the cold air as she whispered, ¡°Livvy, Mama loves you. Loves you very, very much.¡± Her soft voice scattered quickly in the cold wind. My nose was red from the cold, and I sniffled slightly. I was used to my mother saying such things, so I cheerfully replied, ¡°Mama, Livvy loves you too!¡± Find the newest release on F?ndNovel I didn¡¯t understand why her eyes filled with tears. I didn¡¯t know that she was saying goodbye. My mother¡¯s nose tingled with emotion, and she turned away quickly so I wouldn¡¯t see her cry. She tugged gently on my hand, and we continued walking through the crowd, crossing the bustling pedestrian street to reach the open¨Cair parking lot. My father was waiting outside his car, smoking a cigarette¨Csomething he rarely did. His face. wore an expression I¡¯d never seen before: sorrow and loneliness etched into every line. When < Chapter 14: The Mother¡¯s Leg +25 Puntos > he noticed us approaching, he quickly masked his grief and put on his usual stern expression. I wondered if I¡¯d imagined that moment of vulnerability. He stubbed out his cigarette and said hoarsely, ¡°You¡¯re back.¡± ¡°Yes,¡± my mother answered quietly. That night, my father personally cooked dinner¨Canother rarity. Our small family gathered happily around the table. I wore a paper birthday crown that my mother had made, made a wish, and blew out the twelve candles on my cake. Whisper 21 Chapter 14: The Mother¡¯s Legacy¨C2 For a moment, everything felt perfect. Then disaster struck during dessert. Just as my mother lifted a forkful of cake to her mouth, she began coughing violently. Suddenly, blood gushed uncontrobly from her lips, spattering across the white tablecloth. I froze in horror, the piece of cake I¡¯d been holding slipping from my fingers onto my new shoes. My mind wentpletely nk with shock. Why? Mama was supposed to be better. The doctors said she could go home. Why was she vomiting blood? In panic, my father scooped up his wife, his voice choked with tears. ¡°Sarah, don¡¯t scare me. I¡¯ll take you to the hospital right now.¡± Martha, our housekeeper, frantically called for an ambnce while I stood like a statue, numb and terrified. I couldn¡¯t move, couldn¡¯t think, couldn¡¯t breathe. The paramedics arrived within minutes, lifting my mother onto a stretcher. Before they carried her away, her tearful gaze fixed on me. Her lips moved soundlessly, but I could read the words: ¡°I¡¯m sorry.¡± Something broke inside me then. I burst into tears and chased after the ambnce as it sped away, stumbling through the blizzard, crying, ¡°Mama, Mama, don¡¯t leave¡­¡± I ran until the white ambnce vanished from sight, then copsed helplessly in the snow. My lungs burned from the cold air, and my tears froze on my cheeks. That night, Sarah Winters passed away. My father spent the night by his wife¡¯s side, shattered by grief¨Ca scene I never witnessed. Unable to catch the ambnce, I had been found by Martha, burning with fever and delirious, calling out for my mother in my sleep, crying through the night. When I awoke the next day, Martha sat beside my bed, her eyes red and swollen. She told me my mother was gone forever. I refused to believe it. I refused to go to the hospital to see her body, terrified of seeing my warm, loving mother cold and still. I desperately convinced myself Mama had only gone on a long trip. In my heart, that warm, smiling woman with the gentle amber eyes lived on eternally. < Chapter 14 The Mother¡¯s Leg +25 Puntos > The days after her death blurred together. I clung to the ceramic wolf figurine we had painted together, refusing food or water, crying silently as I drifted between sleep and wakefulness. My father seemed to age ten years overnight. His hair turnedpletely white, and his gaze lost all light. Eventually, he was diagnosed with depression. For a long time, I believed my father would never remarry¨Che had loved my mother so deeply. But two yearster, he brought Sarah¡¯s once¨Cbest¨Cfriend home as his new wife. That betrayal shattered mepletely. I threw a ferrible tantrum, screaming that he had forgotten my mother, that he had betrayed her memory. I moved into the school dormitory that same day, refusing toe home or speak to either of them during holidays. In university, just as our rtionship was slowly mending, my father arranged my engagement to Connor Rivers, pushing our bond to a breaking point. Unlike his past indulgence, this time he was unyielding, even freezing my ounts to force my return. In my eyes, the arranged engagement was merely thest straw. What truly drove me away was his remarriage. To me, he had betrayed my mother, and perhaps wanted to drive me out of the house altogether, treating me as a burden to be passed to another man. So, in anger and despair, I left Riverdale, determined to make my own way in Harbor City, clutching that ceramic wolf figurine¨Cthest relic of my mother¡¯s love and warmth. For three years, I never let it leave my side. Now, that precious figuriney shattered on my bedroom floor, my heart breaking with it. After crying myself empty, I forced myself to act. Maybe a master craftsman could fix it. With trembling hands, I gathered the fragments, carefully arranging them on a clean cloth. I snapped a photo, posted it on my social media, and wrote: ¡°Looking for a top restoration artist.¡± With my widework back in Riverdale¨Crtives of great influence, wealthy friends¨CI knew someone might help. I had connections I¡¯d never used during my time with Ethan, preferring to make my own way. Mere minutester, my phone rang. It was Connor Rivers. I assumed he was offering a rmendation and quickly answered. ¡°Connor? Do you know someone who can fix ceramics?¡± But his voice was tight with concern: ¡°Livvy, are you hurt?¡± I was momentarily stunned, then realized the shards in the photo were stained with blood- Latest content published on Find1Novel +25 Puntos > Connor pressed again, his voice growing anxious, ¡°What happened? How did the ceramic wolf Sarah gave you break?¡± I fell silent, not knowing where to begin. I was also surprised he had instantly recognized the figurine from just a photo of broken pieces. Had I told him about it before? I couldn¡¯t remember. After a pause, Connor¡¯s tone turned resolute and brooked no refusal: ¡°I¡¯m heading to the airport now. Wait for me. I¡¯ming to Harbor City to see you.¡± Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 373 Whisper 22 Chapter 15: Breaking the Bond¨C1 Chapter 15: Breaking the Bond (Olivia¡¯s POV) After hanging up with Connor, I ced my phone on the bed and took a deep breath. The events of tonight reyed in my mind like a nightmare I couldn¡¯t wake from. Why had Cassandra sneaked into my room while I was showering? Her excuse of ¡°just looking around¡± was flimsy at best. There had to be something more sinister behind her actions. I began inspecting my room carefully, circling each corner with meticulous attention. Everything appeared untouched except for my precious light blue ceramic wolf figurine¨Cnow lying in fragments on the floor, thest physical connection to my mother destroyed. My gaze drifted to the nightstand where a cup of herbal tea sat, still warm. Martha Jenkins, our housekeeper, had brought it in before I showered, as was my nightly routine. The ceramic wolf had been ced on that same nightstand before being smashed. A chilling thought crept into my mind. The tea cup sat exactly where Cassandra must have lingered to break my figurine. Could she have tampered with my tea? I approached the cup cautiously, lifting it to my nose. The familiar herbal scent seemed normal, but something felt off. I couldn¡¯t risk it. With a decisive motion, I poured the liquid down the bathroom sink. Better safe than sorry. Three hourster, my phone vibrated with an iing call. Connor had finally arrived in Harbor City. ¡°I¡¯m here,¡± his deep voice came through the speaker. I was in the middle of hauling bags of discarded belongings out of Moonlight Manor, determined to erase every trace of my existence from this ce. It waste, and Martha had already retired for the night, so I worked quietly alone. ¡°Con, I won¡¯t be staying here tonight,¡± I whispered, mindful not to wake anyone. There was a brief pause before his calm, steady reply: ¡°Okay.¡± ¡°Have you already booked a hotel?¡± I asked, tying up another garbage bag. < Chapter 15: Breaking the Bon¡­ ¡°Yes, the Crescent Moon Hotel.¡± I nodded to myself. ¡°I¡¯ll book a room there as well. Let¡¯s meet at the hotel. No need for My n was resolute: finish clearing out my belongings, take my luggage, and leave Moonlight Manor behind¨Calong with Ethan Grey. +25 Puntos you to After loading my suitcase into my car, I reached for my phone to make a reservation. To my dismay, the hotel¡¯s website showed no vacancies. I tried calling directly, only to have my fears confirmed. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Miss Winters, but we¡¯repletely booked,¡± the receptionist exined apologetically. ¡°There¡¯s a major legal hearing tomorrow, and every hotel within several kilometers is full.¡± Desperate, I searched for alternatives. The only avable room was in a shabby motel whose reviews made me cringe. One particrly graphicment caught my eye: ¡°The soundproofing is so bad, the couple next door at midnight sounded like they were doing a live padcast beside my bed. Couldn¡¯t sleep all night.¡± t rushed to my cheeks, but practicality won out. I needed proper rest for tomorrow¡¯s aring, which started at 3 p.m. I had to be up by 10 a.m. at thetest to prepare. It was already close to midnight, and I still had to meet Connor. With a sigh, I texted him: ¡°That hotel is fully booked. Can you help me get a room?¡± Luxury hotels often held back suites for VIPs, and Connor¡¯s status as the Rivers Family heir and Rivers Group president would surely grant him ess to those hidden amodations. His reply came quickly: ¡°My room is a duplex suite, two bedrooms upstairs and downstairs. If you don¡¯t mind, you can just stay over tonight.¡± The rightful source is findnovel I hesitated, my finger hovering over the screen. We hadn¡¯t seen each other in over three years, and staying overnight in his room so abruptly felt improper. Still, with nowhere else to go thiste, and since it was a two¨Cstory duplex with separate bedrooms, I reluctantly typed: ¡°Thank you. I¡¯ll be there soon.¡± Just as I was about to drive off, my phone chimed with a new message. Ethan Grey¡¯s name shed on the screen, instantly derailing myposure. He had sent photos of Cassandra¡¯s hand tightly wrapped inyers of gauze, making the injury appear quite severe. His message was blunt and usatory: ¡°Olivia, you really went too far this time. Come to the hospital and apologize to Cassandra immediately.¡± +25 Puntos > Follow current nov?ls on f?ndnovel Chapter 15: Breaking the Bon My cheeks flushed crimson as I whispered, ¡°Alright.¡± Whisper 24 Chapter 16: Hidden Feelings and Gentle Surprises¨C1 Chapter 16: Hidden Feelings and Gentle Surprises (Olivia¡¯s POV) Perhaps Connor noticed my uneasiness with him in the hotel suite. He gestured toward the stairs with a slight nod. ¡°Check if you¡¯re missing anything and let me know. I¡¯ll go upstairs to take a shower,¡± he said. His voice carried the natural authority of an Alpha, yet remained gentle with me. I appreciated the space he was giving me, allowing me to settle in without pressure. ¡°Wait a second.¡± Connor stopped, turned back, his ice¨Cblue eyes questioning. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± I hesitated, then reached into my backpack. The bottled water I¡¯d been suspicious of was still there, untouched since I¡¯d found it in my room at Moonlight Manor. I pulled it out and handed it to Connor. ¡°Con, can you help me contact a testing facility? This water might have been tampered with.¡± His gaze instantly sharpened as he grasped the implication. The temperature in the room seemed to drop several degrees. The source of th?s content is Find[?]ovel ¡°Is someone trying to hurt you?¡± His voice had hardened, all traces of gentleness gone. I nodded gravely. ¡°I think so, but I can¡¯t be sure. Better to be cautious.¡± Without hesitation, Connor took the bottle, his fingers brushing against mine. ¡°Alright, leave this to me.¡± He immediately pulled out his phone and dialed. ¡°Henry,e over. I need you to handle something.¡± His tone was curt, brooking no argument. As he strode away, disappearing around the staircase corner, I finally let out a breath I didn¡¯t realize I was holding. My tense body rxed slightly, the weight of my suspicions now shared. Just moments before, when I handed him the bottled water, our eyes had unexpectedly crashed into each other¡¯s. His were bottomless pools of ice¨Cblue, intense and deep. For a fleeting instant, my heart seemed to stop. His eyes were beautiful. No, not only his eyes¨Chis entire face was like a masterpiece, so perfect my heart couldn¡¯t help but speed up. I¡¯d forgotten how striking Connor was up close. After he left, I took time to observe the suite. It clearly bore traces of someone¡¯s long¨Cterm < Chapter 16: Hidden Feelings. +25 Puntos > living: a jacket draped over a chair, several books on the coffee table, even a particr arrangement of items on the kitchen counter. These weren¡¯t the marks of a transient stay at all. That puzzled me. Wasn¡¯t Connor based in Riverdale? Why did this Harbor City hotel suite feel like a second home? Yet I quickly dismissed the thought; it was none of my concern. I unpacked my luggage in the bedroom, only to realize I hadn¡¯t brought slippers for showering. As I hesitated whether to call Connor, the doorbell rang. I opened the door to a polite hotel attendant bearing a tray and a bag. ¡°Hello, I¡¯m here to deliver items for Mr. Rivers,¡± he said with a professional smile. I epted the hot herbal tea and the bag, thanking him softly. After closing the door, I was surprised to see the steaming cup of herbal tea. Did Connor also have the habit of drinking ing tea before bed? That was quite a coincidence. g the bag, I found a pair of brand¨Cnew women¡¯s slippers, two unopened towels, and e toiletries¨Cclearly prepared just for me. A gentle warmth rose in my chest. Connor truly was attentive. At this moment, Connor appeared at the stairway, his powerful presence filling the room without effort. ¡°Did everything arrive?¡± he asked, his ice¨Cblue eyes scanning my face. I looked up, feeling a strange flutter in my chest. ¡°Yes, thank you, Con.¡± Our eyes met in the air, carrying an unspoken intimacy. He was no longer just my childhood friend but also my fianc¨¦ now. The realization made my cheeks warm. Connor approached, rifying, ¡°I ordered the tea for you.¡± ¡°Huh? I thought it was for you,¡± I replied, surprised. ¡°I don¡¯t have that habit,¡± he said simply. ¡°Drink it, it¡¯s good for you after the stress you¡¯ve been through.¡± As he spoke, Connor turned to open the door again. Standing silently outside was his assistant, Henry Morris, whom he had summoned earlier. Connor handed over the suspicious bottled water. ¡°Send this for testing immediately. I want to know if it contains any toxins,¡± he instructed, his tone leaving no room for questions. 213 < Chapter 16: Hidden Feelings. Henry¡¯s expression remained professionally neutral. ¡°Yes, Mr. Rivers.¡± +25 Puntos > When Connor turned back, he caught my curious, clear amber eyes. An indescribable softness brushed his expression. Unable to resist, he reached out and gently ruffled my honey¨Cbrown hair with a fondness that was almost habitual. ¡°Go to bed early. What time do you want me to wake you tomorrow?¡± he asked. ¡°Ten o¡¯clock,¡± I replied, looking up at him from the sofa. Unbeknownst to me, a faint line of herbal tea had stained my lips, creating an unexpectedly intimate and alluring scene. Connor¡¯s gaze deepened, his throat working slightly as he looked away. Comentarios Whisper 25 Chapter 16: Hidden Feelings and Gentle Surprises¨C2 ¡°Sleep early. Good night.¡± Without waiting for my reply, he turned and ascended the stairs in haste. I didn¡¯t notice his subtle turmoil. I lowered my head, sipping the tea slowly, my heart oddly warm and tranquil. The next morning, before the rm clock chimed, Connor appeared, knocking gently on my door. ¡°Livvy, time to get up,¡± his deep voice called from the other side. I woke, fished my phone from under the pillow, and nced at the screen: 9:59 sharp. Such precise timing. Updates are released by f?ndnovel After finishing my morning routine, I emerged to a breakfastid out on the table: a humble bowl of venison stew. The rich aroma filled the air, making my stomach growl appreciatively. Curious, I took a spoonful of broth. My eyes brightened instantly as the familiar vor hit my tongue. ¡°Howe it tastes exactly like that restaurant near myw firm?¡± I asked, unable to hide my surprise. Across the table, Connor merely murmured a neutral ¡°Mm.¡± I was puzzled. What did that mean? I sampled another bite¨Cyes, it was unmistakably the same taste. The unique blend of herbs, the perfect tenderness of the meat¨Cthis wasn¡¯t just simr, it was identical. I nced suspiciously at him. ¡°Did you buy this from that tiny restaurant behind my firm?¡± A pause, then Connor admitted inly, ¡°Yes.¡± ¡°But¡­ how do you know that shop?¡± It was more than ten kilometers from this hotel. Why would he go so far for venison stew? Seeing no point in hiding, Connor confessed quietly, ¡°I¡­ came to Harbor City to see you before.¡± I froze, shocked, my amber eyes widening. ¡°C¨Ccame to Harbor City? When?¡± ¡°In your first year here, the second year, and this year. I visited every year.¡± His voice was calm and matter¨Cof¨Cfact. < Chapter 16 Hidden Feelings¡­ +25 Puntos My mind went nk as if blood had stopped flowing. Connor hade secretly, year after year, just to see me? No wonder the suite bore traces of frequent upation¨Che¡¯d visited often. My heart thudded wildly with a realization I wasn¡¯t ready to face. Had he been watching over me all this time? While I thought I was alone in Harbor City, had he been silently keeping tabs on me? Flustered, I hurriedly changed topic. ¡°Thank you for the stew, Con. It¡¯s really delicious.¡± He noticed my flushed ears, red as if bleeding, and a faint smile yed at his lips, but he didn¡¯t expose my shyness. Instead, he changed the subject gently. ¡°By the way, I know a skilled artifact restorer¨CEliza Montgomery. She was once invited by the National Heritage Museum to repair ancient relics. Maybe she can fix your ceramic figurine.¡± ¡°Really?¡± My head snapped up, eyes sparkling with hope. Connor nodded calmly. ¡°When we return to Riverdale, I¡¯ll take you to see her.¡± ¡°Alright.¡± His words soothed my battered heart like a healing balm. Somehow, I simply trusted him¨Cif he said the expert was capable, then my precious light blue ceramic figurine, shattered together with memories of my mother Sarah, just might be saved. I couldn¡¯t quite exin why, but Connor¡¯s gentle surprises had given me too many shocks in one morning. Suddenly, I wondered¨Cwhat else did he hide from me? 2 Whisper 26 Chapter 17: Mutual Respect¨C1 Chapter 17: Mutual Respect (Olivia¡¯s POV) After dinner, Connor and I descended to the underground parking garage. I walked toward the cier blue Bentley Continental GT, keys in hand. ¡°How does the car feel to drive?¡± Connor asked softly. I tucked a strand of honey¨Cbrown hair behind my ear, my amber eyes avoiding his intense gaze. ¡°I drove itst night, it¡¯s really good. Thank you, Con.¡± Then, remembering something important, I lifted the keys and added, ¡°By the way, I also have a gift for you. I meant to give it to youst night but forgot. It¡¯s in my suitcase at the hotel. I¡¯ll bring it to you when Ie back.¡± Connor gently opened the driver¡¯s side door. ¡°Why don¡¯t Ie with you? I¡¯ll drive.¡± Discover more novels at FindN0vel I was momentarily stunned but quickly recovered. ¡°Coming together is fine, but let me drive. You should rest.¡± I knew he must be exhausted after flying from Riverdalest night and driving twenty kilometers early this morning just to bring me venison stew. I didn¡¯t want to trouble him. further. Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes softened with a smile as he quietly moved to the passenger side. ¡°Then I shall graciously ept.¡± The engine purred to life as I pulled out of the parking garage. The Bentley handled like a dream, responding to my lightest touch. ¡°Can I sit in on your territory dispute hearing today?¡± Connor asked as we sped down the highway. ¡°Sure, it¡¯s a contract dispute case, nothing confidential,¡± I responded. ¡°You just need to bring your ID, fill out a form, and get a pass.¡± He nodded. ¡°I brought my ID specifically after researching the process. I¡¯ve never seen you work before.¡± As I focused on driving, I was unaware that Connor¡¯s gaze was full of gentle affection and < Chapter 17 Mutual Respect¨C1 deep pride. A thick silence settled between us. ¡°Con, why did you agree to our arranged mating?¡± I finally asked quietly. +25 Puntos > It was a question I had harbored for three years. The Rivers Pack wielded immense power and influence, unlike my Winters Pack with its purelymercial background. I always felt this alliance was my father¡¯s attempt to climb higher, making me wonder why someone of Connor¡¯s status would ept. Connor¡¯s eyes darkened as he considered his answer. After a pause, he replied, ¡°By my generation, arranged matings are no longer necessary to consolidate our pack¡¯s power.¡± His answer was ambiguous, leaving me confused. I gently pressed, ¡°Then why not choose someone you truly love?¡± ¡°If I didn¡¯t want to, no one could force me,¡± his deep voice carried a subtle vulnerability that surprised me. My breath caught chaotically. I forced myself not to dwell on the deeper meaning, though my heart stirred uncontrobly. I wondered if Connor, so skilled at gentle teasing, had dated many women before, making him so naturally attentive. Ever since I agreed to this arrangement, his care had been meticulous, his presence gentle yet firm. I sensed that if it continued like this, I might truly develop feelings for him. We arrived at the courthouse with time to spare. Connor followed the procedure to get his visitor¡¯s pass while I prepared my notes one final time. The hearing began promptly. I stood tall, my voice clear and confident as I presented our case. The opposing counsel tried to interrupt several times, but I held my ground. ¡°Your Honor, the contract clearly states in Section 4.3 that territorial boundaries were established using the northern riverbank as the demarcation line,¡± I argued, pointing to the evidence. ¡°My client has maintained consistent presence within these boundaries for over fifteen years without contest.¡± The opposing counsel attempted to introduce a new document, but I quickly objected. ¡°Your Honor, this document wasn¡¯t included in discovery. Its sudden introduction vites procedural rules and prejudices my client.¡± The judge agreed, sustaining my objection. I continued methodically dismantling their arguments one by one. 213 Throughout the hearing, I was vaguely aware of Connor sitting quietly among the spectators, his ice¨Cblue eyes never leaving me. His presence somehow bolstered my confidence. When the hearing ended, Connor approached and handed me a bottle of water. ¡°Have some water,¡± he said simply. I drank gratefully, then smiled, my amber eyes bright. ¡°The verdict will be announcedter, but I¡¯m quite confident of winning.¡± ¡°During your argument, your eyes were so bright and determined. I waspletely drawn to you,¡± Connor¡¯s voice was full of sincere praise. Embarrassed but happy, I admitted, ¡°Really? I feel like I be a different person in court.¡± ¡°You did amazing,¡± he reassured me warmly. ¡°Someday, you¡¯ll be a top¨Ctier, renownedwyer.¡± My smile grew radiant. ¡°From your lips to God¡¯s ears.¡± In this moment of shared joy, I suddenly recalled Ethan Grey. Over three years of dating him, he had never once bothered about my work, let alone watched me in court. Whisper 27 Chapter 17: Mutual Respect¨C2 To him, my meager sry was insignificant, barely enough for one of his extravagant meals at upscale restaurants. Worse, it was clear that he never respected my career. remembered how when I once excitedly told Ethan I won a sizable five¨Cmillion dor case, he had sneered, ¡°Ourpany signs contracts worth tens of millions without blinking; five million is small fry. Why bother ving away? Just quit, I¡¯ll support you.¡± Since then, I never shared anything work¨Crted with him again. I now realized he only liked my looks and body, never truly my soul or aspirations. Our rtionship was shallow, all about pleasure, never about growth or understanding. By contrast, standing beside Connor, I felt genuinely appreciated and respected for the first time, sensing he might be the kind of partner who truly values me. As we exited the courthouse, Connor¡¯s phone rang. He answered it briefly, his expression growing serious. ¡°That was Henry,¡± he said after hanging up, his face darkening. ¡°The bottled water you received wasced with a heavy dose of toxins.¡± My amber eyes shed coldly. ¡°I guessed as much.¡± ¡°Do you want me to handle it?¡± Connor asked, his tone suggesting he was more than willing to take action. I shook my head. ¡°No need. I¡¯ll just add this to the ledger¨CI¡¯ll settle it personally when the time We both knew that although the test result was clear, there was no direct evidence pointing to Cassandra. Reporting it would be pointless. Since this was a private vendetta, it would be repaid in kind, privately. The next few days passed in a pleasant blur. Connor extended his stay in Harbor City, and we spent our time exploring the city together. One evening, I took him to a small restaurant known for its spicy venison. I¡¯d been craving it for weeks. ¡°This is amazing,¡± I said, savoring the rich vors. ¡°The spice blend is perfect.¡± Connor nodded, though sweat beaded on his forehead. He wasn¡¯t used to such heat, but he stubbornly finished every bite. < Chapter 17 Mutual Respect¨C2 ¡°You don¡¯t have to force yourself,¡± Iughed, passing him a ss of water. ¡°I¡¯m not forcing anything,¡± he insisted, though his face was flushed. ¡°It¡¯s good.¡± +25 Puntos We visited Harbor City¡¯s famous botanical gardens the next day, taking countless photos among the exotic blooms. Connor insisted on capturing me beside a particrly stunning disy of moonflowers. ¡°They match your eyes,¡± he said softly, referring to the amber centers of the white blossoms. We toured the Harbor City Museum of Natural History, where Connor surprised me with his extensive knowledge of werewolf artifacts and ancient pack territories. ¡°How do you know so much about this?¡± I asked as he exined the significance of a centuries¨Cold territorial map. He shrugged. ¡°I¡¯ve always been interested in our history. Understanding where we came from helps guide where we¡¯re going.¡± Compared to my three years with Ethan Grey, these few days with Connor felt richer, warmer, and far more fulfilling. The quietpanionship and mutual respect slowly began to heal the The source of th?s content is find?novel wounds in my heart. On our fifth day together, we visited a scenic overlook that provided a breathtaking view of Harbor City. The afternoon sun cast a golden glow over the skyline, making the buildings shimmer. ¡°It¡¯s beautiful,¡± I breathed, taking in the panorama. ¡°Yes, it is,¡± Connor agreed, though when I nced at him, he wasn¡¯t looking at the view but at
  1. me.
My phone chimed with a message notification. Connor was holding it to help me take photos of the cityscape. His ice¨Cblue eyes suddenly turned cial as he looked at the screen. ¡°What is it?¡± I asked, noticing the change in his expression. He didn¡¯t answer immediately, his jaw tightening. When he finally handed me the phone, I saw a message from Ethan Grey: ¡°Are you done with your tantrum yet?¡± Comentarios Whisper 28 Chapter 18: Return to the Pack¨C1 Chapter 18: Return to the Pack (Connor¡¯s POV) I handed the phone back to Olivia, keeping my expression deliberately neutral despite the irritation I felt seeing that message. ¡°Your friend seems to have sent you a message,¡± I said calmly, watching her reaction carefully. ¡°Hm? Let me see.¡± Olivia took the phone, her face immediately stiffening as she read the message. I knew she¡¯d realized I had seen the notification banner with Ethan Grey¡¯s condescending words. Her amber eyes flickered with guilt as she turned back to me. ¡°My ex¨Cboyfriend. We¡¯ve broken up,¡± she exined, her voice slightly strained. ¡°Mm,¡± I responded, maintaining my nd expression, revealing nothing of my thoughts. I¡¯d known about her rtionship with Ethan Grey for years. My visits to Harbor City weren¡¯t just casual trips¨CI¡¯d been keeping tabs on her, watching from a distance as she built her life here. I¡¯d seen how Ethan treated her, how he took her for granted, and it had taken considerable restraint not to intervene. But now wasn¡¯t the time to reveal that. Olivia needed to make her own choices, and I would respect that process, even as I positioned myself to be there when she was ready. (Olivia¡¯s POV) A faint fluster rose within me as I stood there with my phone in hand. Why was I nervous? I was twenty¨Cfive years old, and having an ex¨Cboyfriend was perfectly normal. Besides, I had dated Ethan before agreeing to the arranged mating with Connor. I¡¯d done nothing wrong, nothing to betray my future partner. As this realization settled, my panic gradually subsided. I took a deep breath and steadied myself. To draw a clear boundary¨Cboth for Connor and for myself¨CI unlocked my phone right in front of him. With deliberate movements, I navigated to Ethan¡¯s contact and blocked his number. ¡°Don¡¯t worry,¡± I said softly, looking up at Connor. ¡°Since I¡¯ve agreed to this mating arrangement, my ex will only ever be the past.¡± < Chapter 18 Return to the Pac 25 Puntes Connor nodded quietly, his ice¨Cblue eyes still unreadable. I couldn¡¯t tell what he was thinking behind that calm exterior. I turned away, missing the slight curve that formed at the corners of his lips. The next few days passed peacefully. Connor and I continued exploring Harbor City together, building afortable rapport that felt surprisingly natural. But eventually, it was time to face reality. ¡°I think I should return to Riverdale,¡± I told Connor over breakfast on our sixth day together. ¡°I¡¯ve been away from my family for three years. It¡¯s time.¡± Connor nodded, understanding in his eyes. ¡°I¡¯ll arrange everything.¡± True to his word, he handled all the details. We flew to Riverdale the following morning, and Henry Morris met us at the airport with a sleek ck SUV. The drive to the Winters estate was quiet, filled with my growing apprehension. As we approached the familiar gates of my childhood home, Connor turned to me with gentle concern in his eyes. ¡°Do you want me toe in with you?¡± he asked, his deep voice soft. I shook my head slightly, my amber eyes reflecting determination despite my inner turmoil. ¡°No need.¡± Connor respected my choice without question. Once his car drove away, I was left standing before the grand gates of my childhood home. A surge ofplex emotions filled me¨Cnostalgia, apprehension, and a faint ache that wouldn¡¯t subside. After three years away, I was finally home, yet I had no house key. Like an outsider, I had to ring the doorbell. The irony stung my heart as I pressed the button. Momentster, the door opened to reveal Agatha Turner, the loyal housekeeper who had watched me grow up. Seeing me, she was momentarily stunned, her eyes widening in disbelief. ¡°M¨CMiss Olivia, you¡¯re back?¡± she choked on her words, her voice trembling. Hearing that simple question, a wave of sourness surged in my heart. ¡°Mm,¡± I responded softly, unable to say more. Tears immediately glistened in Agatha¡¯s eyes as she stepped aside to wee me home. Her joy and relief were overwhelming, making my own eyes sting. Chapter 18 Return to the Pac +25 Puntos > Agatha had served the Winters family for more than ten years and had always treated me like her own child. The night my mother died from wolfsbane poisoning, it was Agatha who found me copsed in the snow and carried me back inside. During those long nights of fever and grief, when I wasted away mourning my mother, Agatha stayed by my side. She coaxed me to eat, bathed my forehead when fever took hold, and held For more chapters visit Find~Novel me through the nightmares. Without her, I might never have survived that dark time. Even after I left home, I still called her during holidays, maintaining our deep bond across the distance. Moved by these memories, I took out a delicate gift box from my bag and passed it to her. Whisper 29 Chapter 18: Return to the Pack¨C2 ¡°This is the finest herbal tea from Harbor City. It¡¯s for you,¡± I said, my voice warm with affection. Agathaughed through her tears, clutching the box to her chest. ¡°I¡¯ll make some for you tonight.¡± I gently shook my head, my amber eyes soft. ¡°No, it¡¯s specially for you. I¡¯ve had plenty already. This is just a small token of my gratitude for all you¡¯ve done.¡± Agatha was so touched her eyes brimmed with tears again. ¡°Miss Olivia¡­¡± she murmured, unable to say more. Before our reunion could deepen, a crisp young voice interrupted us. ¡°Sister! Sister, you¡¯re back!¡± An eight¨Cyear¨Cold girl dashed forward from inside the house and hugged my leg tightly, her face shining with innocent delight. This was Grace Winters, my half¨Csister, born to Natalie Winters and my father after my mother¡¯s death. Her bright eyes looked up at me with pure adoration. This update is avable on Find?Novel Grace had always adored me, clinging to me whenever possible during my rare visits home. But I had never warmed to her, despite her persistent affection. My dislike stemmedrgely from my resentment of Natalie Winters¨Cmyte mother¡¯s supposed best friend, who had married my father not long after my mother¡¯s death. In my mind, Natalie was a scheming interloper who stole my mother¡¯s ce, and my father was a heartless betrayer who dishonored their marriage. Because of this, I had transformed from a well¨Cbehaved daughter into someone rebellious and distant. Now, seeing Natalie approaching with a smile, my expression froze involuntarily. ¡°Grace heard you were back and couldn¡¯t wait toe home early from school,¡± Natalie said warmly, her voice gentle and weing. The warmth in her tone only deepened my difort. How dare she act like everything was normal? Like she hadn¡¯t betrayed my mother¡¯s memory? Natalie continued in that same gentle tone, ¡°You must be tired, Olivia. Rest well, I¡¯ll call when dinner¡¯s ready.¡± you < Chapter 18 Return to the Pac +25 Puntos > Meanwhile, Grace eagerly tugged at my hand, her eyes bright with excitement. ¡°Sister,e look at my new drawings in my room? I made a picture of a white wolf just like you said you wanted to be when you were little!¡± I coldly withdrew my hand, unable to bear her innocent touch. ¡°No. I want to rest,¡± I said, my voice frosty. Disappointment washed over the little girl¡¯s face. She pouted and lowered her head, her joy snuffed out by my rejection. Natalie quickly took Grace away, her face still smiling politely though her eyes betrayed her hurt. I felt a twinge of guilt seeing Grace¡¯s crestfallen expression, but I hardened my heart against it. Agatha, sensing the awkwardness, excused herself to prepare my old room. ¡°I¡¯ve kept it just as you left it, Miss Olivia. Fresh sheets every week, dusted daily.¡± Once they were all gone, I shut the door to my room and finally breathed in the quiet. My heart felt heavy with unspoken pain and anger that three years away had done nothing to diminish. I looked around the familiar space¨Cmy childhood bedroom preserved exactly as I¡¯d left it. The light blue walls, the bookshelf filled withw textbooks, the framed photo of my mother and me on the nightstand. Running my fingers over the photo frame, I whispered, ¡°I¡¯m home, Mom.¡± (Richard¡¯s POV) When night fell, I returned home from a long day of pack business. Agatha had called to inform me of Olivia¡¯s return, and despite my outward calm, my heart raced at the prospect of seeing my daughter after three years. The family gathered around the dinner table, tension thick in the air. I looked at my daughter, studying her face for changes. She had grown more beautiful, more like her mother with each passing year. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell us you wereing back today?¡± I asked, trying to keep my voice even despite the emotion threatening to break through. Olivia countered with faint mockery, her amber eyes¨Cso like her mother¡¯s¨Cshing with defiance. ¡°Would it have mattered if I did? Or if I didn¡¯t?¡± Her tone was sharp, revealing the deep fissures between us that time had done nothing to heal. I frowned, displeased by her attitude but unsurprised. 213 < Chapter 18 Return to the Pac¡­ +25 Puntos > ¡°Three years have passed, yet your temperament is still so stubborn?¡± I said, unable to keep the disappointment from my voice. Olivia gave me a half¨Csmile, her eyes filled with bitter irony. ¡°Three years have passed, yet you and Natalie still haven¡¯t divorced?¡± 2 Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 Whisper 30 Chapter 19: Departure and Denial¨C1 Chapter 19: Departure and Denial (Olivia¡¯s POV) The dining room felt suffocating. Every bite of food tasted like ash in my mouth as I sat across from my father and Natalie. Grace kept trying to catch my eye, her innocent face hopeful, but I deliberately avoided her gaze. No one spoke. The only sounds were the clinking of silverware against tes and the asional sigh from my father. I couldn¡¯t bear it anymore. Pushing my te away, I stood abruptly. ¡°I¡¯m done,¡± I announced, not bothering to mask the coldness in my voice. My father looked up, his expression a mixture of disappointment and resignation. ¡°You¡¯ve barely touched your food.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not hungry,¡± I replied curtly. Without waiting for his response, I turned and walked away. I could feel their eyes on my back as I climbed the stairs, but I didn¡¯t look back. Once inside my bedroom, I shut the door and leaned against it, finally allowing myself to breathe. The familiar blue walls that had once been my sanctuary now felt like they were closing in on me. My gaze drifted around the room, taking in the preserved remnants of my childhood. Agatha had indeed kept everything exactly as I¡¯d left it. The gesture touched me, even as the rest of the house felt alien. As I moved toward the bed, something on the table caught my eye ¨C a small, elegantly wrapped gift box. I picked it up, remembering the tinum watch I¡¯d carefully selected for Connor at Timber Wolf Timepieces in Harbor City. I¡¯d promised to give it to him, and suddenly, I wanted nothing more than to be away from this house and with someone who actually seemed to value my presence. Without hesitation, I pulled out my phone and dialed Connor¡¯s number. The moment he answered, I felt my voice softening involuntarily. ¡°Hello, Con,¡± I said, the nickname slipping out naturally now. ¡°I mentioned I got you a giftst < Chapter 19: Departure and De +25 Puntos > time. I¡¯ll bring it over to you now. Are you at the Rivers pack house?¡± His reply was brief but reassuring. ¡°I¡¯m here.¡± ¡°Alright, wait for me a bit, I¡¯lle over now,¡± I responded, already reaching for my purse. ¨C As I ended the call, I realized how much my tone had changed when speaking to him ¨C gentler, more intimate, carrying a trust I hadn¡¯t felt for anyone in a long time. After cutting ties with Ethan and facing the cold reality of my family situation, Connor had be an unexpected anchor. I slipped the gift box into my purse and headed out, eager to escape the suffocating atmosphere of what had once been my home. (Ethan¡¯s POV) The drive back to Moonlight Manor felt longer than usual. Cassandra sat beside me in the passenger seat, chattering about some new restaurant she wanted to try, but my mind was elsewhere. It had been days since I¡¯d seen or heard from Olivia. At first, I¡¯d been too angry to care, then too busy with Cassandra¡¯s hospital stay. But now, a nagging unease had settled in my chest. As we pulled into the driveway, Martha Jenkins, our loyal housekeeper, came out to greet us. Her eyes scanned the car, then looked behind us with confusion. ¡°Alpha Ethan, didn¡¯t Miss Winterse back with you?¡± she asked, her brow furrowed. The question hit me like a punch to the gut. ¡°She¡¯s not at home?¡± Martha looked bewildered. ¡°Miss Winters went out with you, didn¡¯t she? She hasn¡¯t been home these days.¡± A bad premonition made my heart sink. Without another word, I brushed past Martha and headed inside, taking the stairs two at a time. I flung open the door to Olivia¡¯s bedroom, and the sight that greeted me was a profound shock. Her dresser, once cluttered with healing herbs and potions, waspletely bare. The small trinkets she kept on her nightstand were gone. With growing dread, I yanked open her wardrobe. Empty. Not a single piece of clothing remained. The room looked as though she had never lived here at all. My breath quickened as I thundered back downstairs, finding Martha in the kitchen. ¡°When did Olivia move her things out?¡± I demanded, my voice sharper than intended. 213 < Chapter 19. Departure and De¡­ +25 Puntos > Martha flinched at my tone, her hands nervously twisting her apron. ¡°The next day when I went to clean, her room was empty. I thought you knew¡­¡± The rightful source is Find_Novel(. I clenched my fists in frustration. Pulling out my phone, I dialed Olivia¡¯s number. The call didn¡¯t even ring ¨C it went straight to a busy tone. I tried again with the same result. She had blocked me. My face darkened as I scrolled through my contacts and called Sophie Parker. If anyone would know where Olivia had gone, it would be her. They weren¡¯t particrly close, but Olivia had few friends in Harbor City. Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 Whisper 31 Chapter 19: Departure and Denial¨C2 ¡°Ethan? What¡¯s up?¡± Sophie answered, sounding surprised. ¡°Have you heard from Olivia?¡± I asked without preamble. ¡°Olivia?¡± Sophie¡¯s surprise seemed genuine. ¡°No, she hasn¡¯t contacted me. I don¡¯t know where she went.¡± ¡°Can you try messaging her?¡± I pressed. ¡°Sure, hold on.¡± There was a pause, then Sophie¡¯s voice returned, sounding confused. ¡°That¡¯s strange. The message failed to send. Let me try again.¡± Another pause. ¡°Ethan, I think she¡¯s blocked me too. But why would she do that? We didn¡¯t have a fight or anything.¡± ¡°Any news?¡± I asked, my voice tight with urgency. ¡°She blocked me too,¡± Sophie confirmed with a sigh. A heavy silence settled between us. I was about to say something else when Cassandra¡¯s voice cut through the tension. ¡°Ethan, so you and Olivia broke up?¡± she asked, her tone light with barely concealed glee. I froze at her words. Broke up? The phrase echoed in my mind, bringing with it the memory of that night my harsh words, ¡°I never want to see you again,¡± thrown at Olivia in anger. But those were just words, weren¡¯t they? Just an angry outburst, not a true end. I had never truly considered that she would leave for good. Her blocking me felt like a tantrum, a waiting game where I would eventually soothe her anger. But now, with her room emptied and contacts severed, was she really just sulking, or was it truly over? Cassandra¡¯s gentle voice interrupted my tumultuous thoughts as she affectionately pressed against my arm. ¡°Since you¡¯ve ended things, let¡¯s each move on peacefully, shall we? Why don¡¯t we go for a trip to the northern territories and rx?¡± < Chapter 19 Departure and De.. +25 Puntos > As realization dawned, my initial panic transformed into anger. Very well, I thought bitterly. Olivia¡¯s gotten bold, daring to leave me? Let¡¯s see how long she canst without my protection ten days, half a month? ¨C I resolved coldly to ignore her, convinced that she would soone crawling back. To prove it, I smiled provocatively at Cassandra. ¡°Sure, where do you want to go? You decide.¡± Her eyes sparkled with delight. ¡°Really? I want to visit the Silver Lake Territory. This time of year, the moonlight on the water is stunning.¡± A flicker of memory crossed my mind ¨C Olivia once mentioning her desire to visit Silver Lake during the Full Moon Festival. I had dismissed it back then as overcrowded and pointless. Now, when Cassandra brought it up, I almost instinctively wanted to refuse but changed my mind abruptly a subtle act of rebellion against the ghost of Olivia¡¯s wishes. ¡°Alright, let¡¯s go to Silver Lake,¡± I agreed. Yet despite the new travel ns, the restless frustration inside me persisted. After sitting with Cassandra watching TV for a while, I excused myself brusquely. ¡°You just recovered from your injuries, rest well at home. I need to go out.¡± Cassandra, perceptive and eager not to push me, merely smiled sweetly. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll wait here for you.¡± Once outside, I called Jason Mitchell. ¡°Jason,e out for drinks. Bring Lucas and the others.¡± Soon I arrived at our usual upscale club in Harbor City, pushing open the private room¡¯s door where my friends had gathered. Lucas greeted me first, his expression curious. ¡°Ethan, you came alone? Cassandra didn¡¯te with you?¡± I shot him a questioning look. ¡°Why should she?¡± Lucas, caught off guard, stammered incoherently. Before he could recover, I dropped a bombshell. ¡°My girlfriend is Olivia. Why aren¡¯t you asking about her?¡± Lucas was dumbstruck, his mouth opening and closing like a fish out of water. ¡°What? Ever since Cassandra returned, haven¡¯t you always brought her along? And didn¡¯t you say Olivia is boring, no fun at all?¡± < Chapter 19 Departure and De +25 Puntos My face tightened with an unexinableplexity. I found no words to refute this cruel truth. Jason, sensing the tension, hurriedly diverted the topic. ¡°Ethan, you haven¡¯t been around these days. Busy with what?¡± I flopped onto the sofa, lighting a cigarette. ¡°Cassandra was hurt and hospitalized. I was with her.¡± Jason¡¯s expression twisted awkwardly. ¡°But¡­ you just said Olivia is your girlfriend, yet you¡¯ve been spending all your time at the hospital with Cassandra. Didn¡¯t Olivia get upset?¡± My face darkened at his words. Upset? It was far worse. She¡¯s breaking up with me! The thought stabbed me with a mix of indignation and denial. ¡°She¡¯s making a fuss, threatening to break up,¡± I spat through gritted teeth. Lucas scoffed, leaning back in his chair with a smirk. ¡°Would she really break up with you? You¡¯re probably the best man she could ever hope to be with. I bet she¡¯lle back within ten days.¡± Another friend chimed in, raising his ss. ¡°She loves you so much, three years now, we all see it. She can¡¯t live without you. I¡¯ll bet eight days.¡± A third echoed from across the table, ¡°She¡¯s just sulking, waiting for you to call her. I give it Latest content published on find[?]ovel half a month, tops, before she begs to get back together.¡± Hearing their confident predictions, my furrowed brow finally rxed into a smug, contemptuous sneer. ¡°Call her? Impossible.¡± Just then, Jason¡¯s quiet voice pierced the air with unexpected weight. ¡°But¡­ what if she doesn¡¯te back? What if she¡¯s found someone else?¡± That question stunned me into speechlessness. I had never truly considered that possibility. Comentarios Whisper 32 Chapter 20: The Void Left Behind¨C1 Chapter 20: The Void Left Behind (Ethan¡¯s POV) 425 Puntos7 The world tilted and swayed as I stumbled through the front door of Moonlight Manor. My driver had practically carried me from the car, his face pinched with concern that I barely registered through my drunken haze. ¡°Alpha Ethan, do you need help getting to your room?¡± he asked, steadying me as I lurched against the doorframe. I waved him off with a dismissive gesture. ¡°I¡¯m fine,¡± I slurred, though the floor seemed to be moving beneath my feet. The house was silent and dark as I made my way up the stairs, gripping the banister to keep from falling. Each step was a monumental effort, my body heavy with alcohol and something else¨Csomething that felt suspiciously like emptiness. When I finally reached my bedroom, I didn¡¯t bother turning on the lights. I simply copsed onto the bed, still fully dressed, and surrendered to unconsciousness. Thest thought that flickered through my mind before darkness imed me was how quiet the house felt without her A searing pain tore through my stomach, jolting me awake. I gasped, curling into myself as the familiar agony of my chronic condition gripped me. Disoriented and half¨Cconscious, I reached out blindly to the other side of the bed. ¡°Liv, my stomach hurts. Bring me my healing herbs,¡± I called out, my voice rough with sleep and pain. Silence answered me. ¡°Liv, Liv-¡± I called again, more urgently this time. The emptiness of the room crashed down on me like a physical weight. Olivia was gone. She had moved out. The realization hit me with unexpected force, leaving me breathless in a way that had nothing to do with my physical pain. I clutched my stomach, gritting my teeth against another wave of agony. For three years, Olivia had been there every time this happened, appearing at my bedside with her special healing herbs, her gentle hands supporting my head as she helped me take the medicine. 1/3 For more chapters visit fin?novel < Chapter 20: The Void Left Beh¡­ Now there was no one. +25 Puntos > Staggering to my feet, I lurched toward the bathroom, frantically searching the medicine cab. Nothing. I moved to the kitchen, throwing open cupboards with growing desperation. Where were the damn herbs? In my frustration, I knocked over a ss, sending it shattering across the floor. The sound echoed through the empty manor, emphasizing my solitude. With trembling hands, I pulled out my phone and dialed Martha Jenkins. The clock on my screen read 4:07 AM. ¡°Alpha Ethan?¡± Martha¡¯s voice was thick with sleep. ¡°Is everything alright?¡± ¡°Where are Olivia¡¯s healing herbs?¡± I demanded, not bothering with pleasantries. There was a brief pause. I could almost see Martha sitting up in bed, rubbing her eyes, silently cursing my midnight demands but too loyal to voice her irritation. ¡°The healing herbs are in Miss Winters¡® room, in the first drawer of the cab, Alpha Ethan,¡± she finally replied, her tone professionally polite despite the hour. hung up without thanking her and made my way to Olivia¡¯s room, leaning heavily against the wall for support. The door creaked open, revealing the emptiness within. The room that had once been filled with her scent, her belongings, her presence, now stood bare and lifeless. Supporting myself against the furniture, I staggered to the cab and yanked open the drawer. Inside was a small wooden box filled with neatlybeled bottles of herbs. I stared at them in confusion. Until now, I had never needed to know which herbs to take or how much. Olivia had always handled that, measuring precise amounts, mixing them with warm water, watching me carefully as I drank. Pain twisted through my gut again, forcing me to make a hasty decision. I grabbed two bottles that looked vaguely familiar, shook out a couple of pills from each, and swallowed them dry. ¡°My body¡¯s healing should handle it anyway,¡± I muttered bitterly, slumping against the cab. Eventually, the medication began to take effect. The sharp pain dulled to a manageable ache, and I dragged myself back to my bedroom, copsing onto the bed. Sleep imed me again, but it was restless and unsatisfying, haunted by the void Olivia had left behind. When I next opened my eyes, bright sunlight was streaming through the windows. My head throbbed, abination of hangover and medication, and my mouth felt like it was filled with < Chapter 20: The Void Left Beh¡­ +25 Puntos > cotton. The clock on my nightstand showed it was already past noon. The manor was eerily quiet. No sounds of Olivia moving about, preparing her healing broth, humming softly to herself as she worked. The silence pressed in on me, almost suffocating in its intensity. I reached for my phone and called Martha again. ¡°Alpha Ethan, are you feeling better?¡± she asked, concern evident in her voice. ¡°I need food,¡± I said bluntly. ¡°Something for my stomach. Make me some of that healing broth.¡± Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 246 Whisper 33 Chapter 20: The Void Left Behind¨C2 There was a pause on the other end of the line. ¡°Alpha Ethan, you mean the special healing broth Miss Winters used to make?¡± ¡°Yes,¡± I growled, impatience sharpening my tone. Martha¡¯s voice grew hesitant. ¡°I¡¯m afraid I can¡¯t make that, sir.¡± ¡°Why not?¡± I demanded. ¡°That broth needs the herbs soaked overnight, plus fresh venison prepared in a specific way. Also, I only know the ingredients, not the proportions or the preparation methods Miss Winters used. I really can¡¯t do it.¡± Frustration surged through me. Of course Martha couldn¡¯t make it. No one could make it like Olivia did. ¡°At least make in broth,¡± I ordered, my voice tight with irritation. ¡°Right away, Alpha Ethan,¡± Martha replied, relief evident in her tone. After hanging up, I massaged my temples, trying to ease the pounding headache. The silence of the manor seemed to mock me, emphasizing just how much I had taken Olivia¡¯s presence for granted. A knock at the door interrupted my thoughts. My heart leaped unexpectedly, hope surging through me before I could suppress it. ¡°Come in,¡± I called quickly, unable to disguise the flicker of joy in my voice. The door swung open, and my smile froze, then fell as Cassandra Evans stepped into the room. Disappointment crashed over me with surprising force. ¡°Why is it you?¡± The words escaped before I could stop them, cold and unweing. Cassandra¡¯s smile faltered, her eyes registering the hurt my tone had caused. She clenched her fists briefly at her sides,posing herself before approaching the bed. ¡°I heard from Martha you weren¡¯t feeling well, so I came to see you,¡± she said, her voice carefully light as she sat beside me. ¡°Are you better, Ethan?¡± I shook my head slightly. ¡°I¡¯m fine.¡± Cassandra brightened her voice, clearly determined to ignore my cold reception. She pulled out her phone and began scrolling through images. < Chapter 20 The Void Left Beh +25 Puntos > ¡°Look, this is a guide for exploring Silver Lake Territory,¡± she said enthusiastically. ¡°After Moonrise Peak we can go to the hot springs, and then there¡¯s this amazing restaurant that serves the best venison in the territory.¡± Her voice washed over me, bing an irritating buzz in my ears. My headache intensified, and all I could think was that if it were Olivia sitting here, she would have quietly cared for me. She would have personally prepared my healing broth, spoon¨Cfed me gently, her amber eyes watching me with concern. The contrast between Cassandra¡¯s excited chatter and Olivia¡¯s gentle care gnawed at my nerves until I couldn¡¯t bear it anymore. ¡°Enough,¡± I interrupted sharply. ¡°We¡¯ll talk tomorrow. I¡¯m tired today.¡± Cassandra¡¯s enthusiasm deted instantly. She withdrew her phone, hurt evident in her eyes. ¡°Are you annoyed with me?¡± she asked softly. I sighed, feeling a faint trace of guilt beneath my irritation. ¡°No, I just have a headache. The trip can wait till I¡¯m rested.¡± Cassandra nodded, her eyes downcast. She nestled closer, seeking my embrace, but I remained stiff and unresponsive. My mind was elsewhere, haunted by the emptiness Olivia¡¯s absence had created¨Can emptiness I hadn¡¯t expected to feel so acutely. (Connor¡¯s POV) The private room at Riverdale¡¯s exclusive club was filled withughter and the clinking of sses. Around the poker table, my closest friends were engaged in our weekly game, the air thick with cigar smoke and good¨Cnatured ribbing. I nced down at my cards, a smile ying at my lips. The weight of the new watch on my wrist felt good¨Ca tangible reminder of Olivia¡¯s thoughtfulness. Gabriel Andrews, ever observant, noticed it immediately. ¡°Hey, new watch? Looks good,¡± hemented, nodding toward my wrist. I couldn¡¯t help the broad smile that spread across my face. ¡°Pretty nice, isn¡¯t it? Liv gave it to me.¡± Ethan Quinn whistled appreciatively, his eyes widening as he examined the Timber Wolf Chronograph. ¡°Wow, Livvy¡¯s gift, huh? Having a fianc¨¦e really makes a difference.¡± I ran my thumb over the smooth face of the watch, remembering how Olivia¡¯s eyes had lit up when I opened her gift. The memory warmed me from within. Content originallyes from find(?)ovel The memory of that day filled me with a quiet satisfaction. Richard Winters had been shocked by my request, then suspicious, then calcting. But I had meant every word. A rare light filled my usually cold gaze¨Cyears of silent longing finally close to fulfillment. The path to Olivia had been long andplicated, but I had never wavered in my determination. Ethan Quinn¡¯s eyes widened in genuine surprise. ¡°So you secretly liked her all this time? Damn, I never knew! You hid it deep.¡± Gabriel chuckled, shaking his head in amazement. ¡°We all thought you had no interest in women, even suspected you preferred malepanions.¡± Ethan elbowed him yfully, grinning with mischievous delight. ¡°Seriously, since when did you start having feelings for Livvy?¡± I lowered my eyes to the cards spread before me, lips curving with secrecy. Some things were too precious, too personal to share¨Ceven with close friends. ¡°That¡¯s a secret,¡± I replied simply. Ethan was never one to let things go easily. He leaned forward, a smirk ying on his lips. ¡°She ran away to Harbor City to avoid the engagement, remember? Maybe she doesn¡¯t even care much about you. Gifts could just be polite gestures. Don¡¯t get your hopes up.¡± I remained unruffled by his words. Ethan had always enjoyed stirring up trouble, and I knew better than to rise to his bait. Gabriel looked up thoughtfully, his expression turning serious. ¡°Besides, I heard Livvy¡¯s been with another man. Did you know that?¡± 214 Whisper 34 Chapter 21: Reunion at the Banquet¨C1 Chapter 21: Reunion at the Banquet (Connor¡¯s POV) ¡°We broke up long ago. Now I¡¯m her ex¨Cboyfriend,¡± I said, my face deliberately cold as I addressed Gabriel¡¯sment about Olivia¡¯s past rtionship. The cards in my hand suddenly felt heavy. I kept my expression neutral, not wanting to reveal how much the topic affected me. Ethan Quinn leaned forward, his eyes narrowing with curiosity. ¡°And you don¡¯t mind?¡± I shrugged, maintaining myposure. My fingers tightened slightly around the cards. ¡°Who doesn¡¯t have a past?¡± I flicked my ice¨Cblue gaze over to him with a chill that made him shift ufortably in his seat. ¡°Haven¡¯t you ever had a rtionship?¡± Ethan scratched his nose awkwardly, looking away from my piercing stare. ¡°Of course I have, but she¡¯s your first love, yet you¡¯re not hers. You truly don¡¯t care?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care,¡± I replied, feeling my eyes soften involuntarily as thoughts of Olivia filled my mind. The memory of her smile warmed something inside me. ¡°As long as I can be with her, it¡¯s already a blessing.¡± ¡°Tsk tsk,¡± Gabriel chuckled, shaking his head. ¡°What a devoted man.¡± Miles Bet snorted from across the table. ¡°The mighty Connor Rivers, brought to his knees by a woman. Never thought I¡¯d see the day.¡± I shot him a warning nce that immediately silenced his teasing. No one at the table dared to push further. We finished our hand of cards infortable silence. I checked the tinum watch on my wrist¨COlivia¡¯s gift¨Cand felt a surge of warmth at the reminder of her thoughtfulness. ¡°Time¡¯s almost up,¡± I announced, standing from my chair. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± The men quickly gathered their belongings, following my lead without question. My authority as Alpha was never challenged, even in casual settings like this. Frank Langley was already waiting with the car when we exited the building. His efficiency was one of the reasons I kept him as my senior beta. ¡°Is everything prepared at the hotel?¡± I asked him quietly. < Chapter 21 Reunion at the Ba. +25 Puntos He nodded. ¡°Yes, Alpha Connor. The private dining room is ready, and Miss Winters¡® friends have already arrived.¡± Dazzling lights flickered against the night sky as the cier Blue Bentley Continental GT¨Cmy special gift for Olivia¨Cslowly came to a stop before the most luxurious five¨Cstar hotel in Riverdale. I watched through the tinted windows as Olivia¡¯s car pulled up. My heart quickened despite my efforts to remainposed. The early October breeze carried a faint chill as Olivia stepped out gracefully. Her wave¨Clike honey¨Cbrown hair cascaded loosely over her shoulders,plementing her cream trench coat, pale shirt, and soft leather heels. I couldn¡¯t help but admire how she¡¯d changed. The cool, intellectual aura she¡¯d always possessed was now tinged with a new maturity¨Cone gained from heartbreak and self¨Cawareness. It made her even more captivating. From the hotel entrance, Reba Frost waved enthusiastically. ¡°Liv! Over here!¡± Standing beside her was Lily, another of Olivia¡¯s childhood friends. I watched as Olivia¡¯s amber eyes curved into a warm smile, her steps light as she approached them in her delicate heels. Lily pretended to pout, cing her hands on her hips. ¡°Finally willing toe back? We thought you forgot us.¡± Olivia¡¯s smile deepened with genuine affection. She reached out to touch Lily¡¯s arm gently. ¡°How could I forget? I came back because I missed you. What, not happy to see me?¡± ¡°Hmph, sweet talker,¡± Lily snorted, but her eyes sparkled with obvious delight. Reba linked arms with Olivia cheerfully, pulling her closer. ¡°Lily¡¯s been missing you all day long. Youe home to Riverdale, she¡¯s the first to wee you.¡± Official source is Find[?]ovel (Olivia¡¯s POV) I felt a rush of warmth as Reba and Lily greeted me. Their friendship was so evident- Reba gentle and well¨Cmannered, Lily lively and outspoken. It felt good to be back among people who genuinely cared for me. The hotel¡¯s grand entrance gleamed with polished marble and crystal chandeliers. It reminded me of how different my life in Harbor City had been. ¡°You¡¯re about to get engaged to Connor, right?¡± Reba mentioned softly, squeezing my arm. ¡°That¡¯s wonderful.¡± Puntos But Lily hesitated, concern etched across her face. She pulled me slightly aside, lowering her voice. ¡°Liv¡­ is it truly your choice?¡± I flicked Lily¡¯s forehead lightly and smiled. The gesture was familiar, reminiscent of our childhood together. ¡°Who can force me if I don¡¯t want it?¡± My voice carried more confidence than I had felt in months. My friends exchanged nces. They knew I had dated someone in Harbor City, but I¡¯d never told them about the breakup. Over the past three years, I¡¯d asionally shared sweet moments with Ethan Grey, but now, I couldn¡¯t help the trace of bitterness that crept into my smile. ¡°Did you break up with Ethan Grey?¡± Reba asked quietly, her eyes searching mine for the truth. Comentarios Ver anuncios (0/20) > Votar 259 Whisper 35 Chapter 21: Reunion at the Banquet¨C2 I nodded, trying to keep my voice steady. My hands fidgeted with the strap of my purse. ¡°I blocked him everywhere. He should get the message.¡± Lily tilted her head curiously, her sharp eyes missing nothing. ¡°Suddenly realized something?¡± A sh of self¨Cmockery glinted in my eyes. The words felt like stones in my throat. ¡°He treated me as a substitute.¡± Shock and anger burst from Lily. Her face flushed red as she clenched her fists. ¡°That bastard dared to humiliate you? Our Liv is irreceable! He¡¯s blind!¡± She looked ready to hunt Ethan down herself. Reba nodded firmly, her normally gentle demeanor hardening. ¡°Good riddance! He never deserved you.¡± I looked at them both, my amber eyes calm as a stillke. Their fierce loyalty touched me deeply. ¡°It¡¯s all in the past. Let¡¯s not talk about it. Let¡¯s go upstairs. Connor is waiting.¡± The hotel manager personally guided us¨Ca sign of respect for our status within werewolf society. His deferential manner reminded me of the political realities of pack life. As we approached the private dining room on the fourth floor, I wrapped my trench coat tighter against the autumn chill. My stomach fluttered with unexpected nervousness. I was aware of all eyes turning to me as I stepped into the room, my refined demeanor drawing attention without effort. The conversations paused momentarily. Ethan Quinn was the first to greet me, his familiar teasing grin spreading across his face. He stood up quickly, nearly knocking over his chair in his enthusiasm. ¡°Liv, you¡¯re finally here. Haven¡¯t seen you in three years, you¡¯ve gotten even prettier.¡± His eyes swept over me appreciatively. Lily rolled her eyes dramatically, stepping slightly in front of me protectively. ¡°Can you be less greasy, Quinn? That¡¯s not apliment, that¡¯s just oily.¡± ¡°This is called high emotional intelligence social skills,¡± Ethan feigned annoyance, cing a hand over his heart as if wounded. Get full chapters from FindN0vel +25 Puntos Meanwhile, Reba took a seat beside her brother Gabriel Andrews, who only nodded subtly in greeting, calm and restrained as always. His observant eyes missed nothing, I noticed. I naturally took the seat next to Connor. The familiar scent of his cologne was oddly ¡°Con, sorry to keep you waiting.¡± My voice softened automatically when addressing him. His voice was gentle and indulgent, a stark contrast to his usual coldness. ¡°No, we just arrived.¡± His ice¨Cblue eyes then shifted coldly to the young woman beside him. The temperature in the room seemed to drop several degrees. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you greeting her?¡± The authority in his tone was unmistakable. The girl¡¯s tone was reluctant and dismissive, betraying her true feelings. Her eyes flickered over me with barely concealed hostility. ¡°Hello, Miss Winters.¡± This was Vanessa Reed¨CConnor¡¯s adoptive sister. I¡¯d only heard of her, never met her before. She had been raised away from the Rivers territory and sent to study abroad for years, only recently returned. Connor¡¯s tone sharpened, carrying unmistakable authority. His shoulders tensed visibly. ¡°Olivia is my future wife, your sister¨Cinw. Is that how you greet her? Who taught you that?¡± Vanessa¡¯s expression stiffened as she sensed his anger. Her fingers clutched at the tablecloth. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, brother.¡± Her voice was small but defiant. But Connor pushed further, his voice like ice. Everyone at the table had gonepletely still. ¡°Who should you apologize to?¡± Vanessa turned stiffly toward me, her voice subdued but her eyes zing with resentment. ¡°Sister¨Cinw, I¡¯m sorry.¡± I smiled awkwardly, feeling ufortable with the tension. The hostility radiating from her was almost palpable. < Chapter 21 Reunion at the Ba +25 Puntos 2 ¡°No need, we¡¯re family. It¡¯s alright.¡± I tried to diffuse the situation, not wanting to start my rtionship with her this way. This was our first meeting as future sisters¨Cinw, yet it felt so strained. I ced my hand gently on Connor¡¯s arm, feeling the tension in his muscles. ¡°Con, don¡¯t be so fierce.¡± I kept my voice soft, meant only for him. His coldness melted instantly, reced by a soft smile. The transformation was remarkable to witness. ¡°Okay.¡± The single word carried a tenderness that surprised even me. I noticed Vanessa watching this transformation, her fists tightening under the table until her knuckles turned white. The jealousy and defiance in her eyes were unmistakable. Lily immediately sensed Vanessa¡¯s hostility. She deliberately raised her voice, leaning forward with exaggerated concern. ¡°Miss Reed, you don¡¯t look well. Want me to get a doctor?¡± Her tone was sweet but her eyes were challenging. Vanessa¡¯s face darkened, a muscle twitching in her jaw. ¡°No need.¡± Lily snorted contemptuously, muttering just loud enough to be heard, ¡°What an act.¡± I shot Lily a warning nce, but she merely shrugged. I could tell from her expression that her intuition was screaming warnings about Vanessa. Lily had always been perceptive about people¡¯s true intentions. Ethan Quinn, who overheard Lily¡¯s mutters, tugged her arm gently under the table. ¡°Stop it, she¡¯s Connor¡¯s sister. Give her some face,¡± he whispered, not quite quietly enough. Lily pinched his arm ruthlessly, ring. ¡°Try pulling again!¡± Ethan yelped in pain, yanking his arm away. ¡°Sorry, sorry! Have mercy!¡± The tension in the room was thick enough to cut with a knife. I nced at Connor, who was watching the interactions with a calcting coldness. Just then, the door was pushed open and a new arrival interrupted the scene. A voice announced, ¡°Sorry, I¡¯mte because of the traffic.¡± Comentarios Whisper 36 Chapter 22: The Skilled Restorer and Severed Ties¨C1 Chapter 22: The Skilled Restorer and Severed Ties (Olivia¡¯s POV) A graceful, refined woman around her thirties entered the private room of the Crescent Moon Hotel in Riverdale. Her confident stride and elegant posture immediately caught my attention. Connor¡¯s voice softened as he made the introduction. ¡°Livvy, this is the top¨Ctier artifact restorer I rmended¨CRuby Montgomery.¡± Joy sparked through me instantly. I had expected an elderly master with weathered hands and a stern expression. Instead, this beautiful woman with warm eyes stood before us. I quickly stood and stepped forward, extending my hand with barely contained excitement. ¡°Master Montgomery, hello, I¡¯m Olivia Winters. I entrust my ceramic wolf figurine to you.¡± Ruby Montgomery couldn¡¯t help but burst into a softugh, her warm, curved eyes gleaming teasingly. ¡°Master Montgomery? Sounds like I¡¯m some ancient museum curator!¡± Heat rushed to my cheeks as I realized my slip. ¡°Sorry, that was a slip of the tongue. I apologize.¡± Ruby waved it off good¨Cnaturedly, her smile genuine and easy. She then nced sideways at Connor, a yful smirk forming on her lips. ¡°You¡¯re so cold and aloof, picky beyond reason,¡± she said to him. ¡°Before I came, I was dying to know what kind of woman could conquer the ¡®ice Alpha¡® Connor Rivers. Now that I¡¯ve met Livvy, I get it. If it were me, I¡¯d like her too.¡± My cheeks burned hotter at her words. I gestured toward an empty chair, trying to regain myposure. ¡°Please, have a seat.¡± I poured her a cup of herbal tea, the fragrant steam rising between us. ¡°Please enjoy,¡± I said, sliding the cup toward her. Ruby took a sip with an approving nod. From the corner of my eye, I noticed Connor watching us, a gentle smile ying on his lips. ¡°Livvy, no need to be so deferential,¡± he said. ¡°I¡¯ve paid her a handsome fee. You¡¯re the client, you can be as assertive as you want.¡± His words made me lower myshes and smile obediently. I returned to sit quietly beside him, Chapter 22: The Skilled Resto suddenly aware of how naturally I¡¯d fallen into pleasing him. Ruby shot Connor a mock re. ¡°You really know how to spoil the fun.¡± +25 Puntos > She switched to business mode, her expression bing more professional. ¡°Livvy, did you bring the item today?¡± I shook my head slightly. ¡°Not yet, Ruby. Could youe to the Winters residence with me after dinner? I¡¯ll get it for you.¡± ¡°Of course,¡± Ruby readily agreed, setting her cup down. After our meal concluded, we headed to my family home in Riverdale. The familiar surroundings brought a mix offort and unease as memories of my childhood flooded back. In my old bedroom, I carefully retrieved the bag containing the shattered remains of the light blue ceramic wolf figurine¨Cthe precious creation my mother Sarah and I had made together before her death. My hands trembled slightly as I handed it over. Ruby examined the fragments with a professional eye, frowning and clicking her tongue. ¡°It¡¯s smashed pretty badly.¡± My heart jumped to my throat, anxiety surging through my body. The figurine was more than just ceramic¨Cit was one of the few tangible connections I had left to my mother. Ruby must have noticed my distress because she patted my shoulder reassuringly. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, since it¡¯s in my hands, I¡¯ll fix it beautifully.¡± Only then did my tense nerves rx. ¡°Thank you so much,¡± I said, gratitude washing over me. Readplete version only at find?novel ¡°Do you have any photos of what it looked like before?¡± she asked, carefully cing the fragments back in the bag. ¡°Yes, I¡¯ll send them to you,¡± I replied promptly. ¡°Perfect. I¡¯ll reach out again if I need details. I¡¯ll head back now.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll have Henry drive you,¡± I offered, already reaching for my phone. ¡°Great,¡± Ruby nodded, carefully securing the bag with my precious memories. Once my mother¡¯s cherished memento was entrusted with a promise of restoration, a burden lifted from my heart. But now, the anger inside me demanded another resolution¨Cto confront Cassandra Evans and Ethan Grey. I dialed my cousin Alexander Winters, now head of the Silverridge Group, asking quietly, ¡°Hello, Chapter 22 The Skilled Resta cousin, I need your help with something.¡± +25 Puntos Late that night after my bath, Iy on my bed in the Winters residence, my hair still damp against the pillow. The familiar ceiling above me was bothforting and strange after so many years away. My phone buzzed with an unfamiliar number from Harbor City. Assuming it was a client inquiry, I answered politely, ¡°Hello?¡± Silence greeted me. I called out twice more, still no reply. ¡°If you don¡¯t speak, I¡¯ll hang up,¡± I warned, my patience wearing thin. Suddenly, Ethan Grey¡¯s voice sounded through the line, cold and awkward. ¡°It¡¯s me. Olivia, unblock me and my number.¡± Comentarios Whisper 37 Chapter 22: The Skilled Restorer and Severed Ties¨C2 My brows knitted instantly, a surge of anger and hurt rising within me. ¡°No.¡± His tone softened with a hint of pleading. ¡°Let¡¯s not quarrel anymore, okay? I¡¯ve missed you these days. I was wrong that day, I shouldn¡¯t have said those things to upset you.¡± But my voice remained icy, resolute. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter anymore. We¡¯ve already broken up.¡± ¡°Broken up?¡± His voice chilled further. ¡°I didn¡¯t agree to that.¡± I retorted sharply, my patience snappingpletely. ¡°A breakup isn¡¯t a marriage, I don¡¯t need your consent.¡± Without hesitation, I hung up and cklisted that number as well, severing thest thread between us. My heart pounded in my chest, but I felt lighter somehow, as if I¡¯d finally cut away a weight that had been dragging me down. With that tie brutally cut, I turned my mind to my career. Though opening my ownw practice was an option, I knew my current reputation was insufficient to build a brand from scratch. It would be wiser to join a prestigious firm first, hone my skills, and umte industry connections. When I shared this n with Connor the next morning, he fully supported me. ¡°Our Livvy is so outstanding,¡± he said, his ice¨Cblue eyes warm with pride. ¡°You¡¯ll excel in Riverdale¡¯s legal circles. Why not try Moow Legal Services? It¡¯s the best one in Riverdale.¡± I nodded, grateful for his confidence in me. ¡°I will send my resume.¡± (Ethan¡¯s POV) I stared numbly at the phone¡¯s busy tone, an emptiness gnawing inside me. How could Olivia be so ruthless¨Ccutting ties so decisively, leaving no room for regret? The manor felt hollow without her presence. Every corner held memories of her¨Cthe kitchen where she¡¯d prepare her healing broth, the living room where she¡¯d curl up with a book, the garden where she¡¯d tend to her herbs. I dragged myself to the bed, burying my face in the sheets where her scent still lingered faintly. I inhaled deeply, desperate to hold onto any trace of her. ¡°Livvy, I miss you. I miss you so much,¡± I whispered into the fabric, my voice breaking. Just then, Cassandra Evans pushed open the door and called softly, ¡°Ethan, dinner¡¯s ready.¡± I looked up at her, seeing but not really seeing. In that moment, all I could think about was Chapter 22 The Skilled Resto how much I needed to feel something¨Canything¨Cto fill the void Olivia had left. Without warning, I dragged Cassandra down beneath me, passion igniting like wildfire. Her surprised gasp quickly turned to eager moans as she responded to my touch. Yet at the height of our entanglement, as pleasure clouded my mind, it was Olivia¡¯s face I saw, Olivia¡¯s voice I heard, Olivia¡¯s touch I craved. ¡°Livvy¡­ my Livvy¡­ I miss you¡­¡± I gasped hoarsely, lost in the fantasy. Cassandra frozepletely beneath me, her body going rigid. When I opened my eyes, her face had turned ashen, hurt and fury battling in her expression. (Olivia¡¯s POV) The next day, Lily arranged a celebratory night out in a bar for my return to Riverdale. Sitting on the plush sofa, Lily, Reba Frost, and I chatted over colorful drinks, the ambient music providing a pleasant backdrop. Lily took a sip of her cocktail before fuming, ¡°That Vanessa Reed girl from yesterday really pissed me off with her attitude.¡± Reba nodded in agreement, twirling the straw in her ss. ¡°Yeah, that foster sister looks like a tough nut to crack.¡±. Lily scoffed disdainfully, her eyes shing with contempt. ¡°Foster sister? She¡¯s just a household servant¡¯s daughter, adopted by the Rivers family. An orphan living under someone else¡¯s protection, yet she dares to see herself as a Rivers heir?¡± I was taken aback by this revtion. I only knew the Rivers family had an adopted daughter, unaware that Vanessa Reed was a servant¡¯s child. ¡°Why would the Rivers family adopt their servant¡¯s daughter?¡± I asked curiously, setting my ss down. Reba leaned forward, her voice dropping slightly as if sharing a secret. ¡°My brother said that years ago, Mrs. Rivers was attacked by robbers. Their servant took the knife for her and died. Before dying, she made Mrs. Rivers promise one thing.¡± At this, Reba paused, casting a meaningful nce at me. The sudden silence hung heavy between us. I blinked in confusion. ¡°Why did you stop?¡± (Reba¡¯s POV) 213 25 Puntos I studied Olivia¡¯s face, wondering how she would react to what I was about to reveal. My friendship with her stretched back to childhood, and I¡¯d always been protective of her gentle nature. ¡°Do you know what that dying servant asked Mrs. Rivers to promise her?¡± I asked, my voice deliberately measured. Olivia¡¯s amber eyes widened with curiosity, waiting for me to continue. The bar¡¯s dim lighting cast shadows across her face, highlighting the delicate features that had captured Connor Rivers¡® heart years ago. I took a deep breath, preparing to share the information that might exin Vanessa¡¯s hostility toward my friend. ¡°Do you know what that dying servant asked Mrs. Rivers to promise her?¡± Comentarios Readplete version only at find[?]ovel Whisper 38 Chapter 23: Dangerous Encounters¨C1 Chapter 23: Dangerous Encounters (Olivia¡¯s POV) I sat between Reba and Lily at our corner table, the bar¡¯s ambient lighting casting a warm glow over our faces. The fruity scent of my cocktail mingled with the low hum of conversation around us. Reba leaned closer, her voice dropping to a conspiratorial whisper. ¡°Back then, Vanessa¡¯s mother didn¡¯t just beg Mrs. Rivers to take in her daughter, but even shamelessly suggested that Connor Rivers should marry Vanessa in the future.¡± I nearly choked on my drink. ¡°What?¡± The revtion hit me like a physical blow. Suddenly, Vanessa¡¯s hostility made perfect sense. Lily¡¯s voice rose sharply, her eyes widening. ¡°No way! She actually dared to say that?¡± Reba shrugged, twirling the straw in her ss. ¡°No one knows what Mrs. Rivers said in reply. But in the end, the servant epted the so¨Ccalled ¡®debt of gratitude¡® as just letting her daughter be adopted.¡± Lily snorted disdainfully, tossing her hair back. ¡°Of course, Mrs. Rivers only has one son. How could she let him marry a servant¡¯s daughter?¡± ¡°Exactly,¡± Reba echoed, nodding firmly. ¡°Connor is the Rivers family¡¯s sole heir. Marrying a maid¡¯s daughter is impossible.¡± I sipped my wine pensively, my mind swirling with these unexpected revtions. The pieces were falling into ce ¨C Vanessa¡¯s cold res, her barely concealed ¨C contempt, her stiff formality when Connor introduced us. ¡°So that¡¯s why she hates me,¡± I murmured, more to myself than to my friends. What I didn¡¯t notice was the pair of violet eyes fixed upon me from across the room ¨C Vanessa Reed herself, her face a mask of cold fury as she overheard every word. After a few more drinks, I excused myself to use the restroom. ¡°I¡¯ll be right back,¡± I told N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on Find_Novel(. Reba and Lily, sliding out of the booth. ||| O < out. I smiled, typing a quick reply. Suddenly, two men blocked my path. One was burly with a shaved head, his muscr arms covered in tattoos. He wore a ck tank top that strained against his chest. The other wasnky with bleached¨Cblonde hair and a cigarette dangling from his lips. The tattooed one whistled, his eyes traveling up and down my body. ¡°Hey pretty girl,e y with us, hm?¡± Without missing a beat, I smoothly switched my phone to recording mode and slipped it into my pocket. Years of legal training had taught me the value of evidence. The blonde one leaned against the wall, his eyes gleaming with something predatory. ¡°You¡¯re a real beauty. Must be a wild ride.¡± I kept my expression neutral, though disgust churned in my stomach. ¡°Did you just eat something rotten in the bathroom? Your mouth stinks.¡± The blonde¡¯s face twisted with anger, but quickly morphed back into a leering grin. ¡°How much for a night? Name your price.¡± I crossed my arms calmly, assessing the situation. The corridor was narrow, with both men effectively blocking my path back to the main area. I could feel my wolf stirring inside me, sensing danger. ¡°Funeral vigil: 5,000 dors a night,¡± I replied coolly. ¡°Wailing service, add 2,000. Band with traditional music, 2,800. Basic cremation, 499. Wooden coffin, 500 extra.¡± Their leers faltered, confusion crossing their faces. ¡°If the bones aren¡¯t crushed post¨Ccremation, add 1,200,¡± I continued, my voice steady. ¡°Who in your family died? More than one corpse? Discounts avable. Spend 10,000, save 1,000.¡± The blonde spat on the floor, his face contorting with rage. ¡°f*****g b***h! ying hard to get?¡± < Chapter 23 Dangerous En. ¨C +8 Points The tattooed one ¨C Brock, I¡¯dter learn advanced toward me, his hands moving to unbuckle his belt. ¡°Acting all pure? Bet you¡¯ve been with plenty of men. Stop pretending. Let¡¯s do it right here!¡± He nodded to his aplice. ¡°Drag her into the men¡¯s room and have some real fun.¡± Both lunged toward me simultaneously. In that split second, everything slowed down. My self¨Cdefense training kicked in automatically. I pivoted on my heel and kicked out with all my strength, my foot connecting squarely with Brock¡¯s groin. The impact was devastating. A shrill scream tore from his throat as he crumpled to the ground, clutching his crotch in agony. His face instantly drenched in sweat, all color draining away. The blonde ¨C Tyler ¨C cursed furiously and threw a wild punch at my head. I ducked under his arm, grabbed it, and twisted sharply until a sickening c***k announced his shoulder dislocating. His scream joined Brock¡¯s, echoing through the corridor. Both men were down, writhing in pain on the dirty floor. Whisper 39 Chapter 23: Dangerous Encounters¨C2 I calmly pulled a tissue from my purse and wiped my hands, my lips curling in disdain. ¡°Seriously? Not even worth the warm¨Cup.¡± Tyler, despite his dislocated shoulder, tried to strike back with his other arm. I easily sidestepped, grabbed his wrist, and flipped him over my shoulder. He mmed hard onto the floor, the impact knocking the wind from his lungs. I ced my high heel on his cheek, applying just enough pressure to make him freeze. ¡°Go practice some more before picking fights.¡± Looking over at Brock, I noticed his pants darkening with spreading blood. I clicked my tongue, a cool observation crossing my mind. Oops, maybe I kicked too hard. Did I just rupture his balls¡­? Themotion had finally drawn attention. Bar staff rushed over, their faces showing shock at the scene before them woman in heels. ¨C two grown men incapacitated by a single Brock was whimpering now, curled into a fetal position. ¡°Call an ambnce! f**k! It hurts so bad!¡± A crowd had gathered, including Lily and Reba, who hade looking when I was gone too long. Lily¡¯s jaw dropped as she took in the scene. ¡°Holy s**t! Your legendary defensive moves are back in action?¡± Reba¡¯s eyes moved from the groaning men to me, her expression a mix of concern and admiration. ¡°Liv, are you alright?¡± I smirked lightly, tucking back a strand of hair that had fallen across my face. ¡°Fine. With these guys? They couldn¡¯t even touch a strand.¡± Lily¡¯s eyes shone with undisguised awe. ¡°You¡¯re a total badass! Should¡¯ve learned self¨Cdefense with you back then.¡± The police and ambnce arrived shortly after. The two men were loaded onto stretchers, still moaning in pain. The officers took statements from witnesses while the bar manager exined what had happened. < Chapter 23: Dangerous En¡­.. +8 Points > Lily, Reba, and I were escorted to the police station to give formal statements. I remained calm throughout, my legal training serving me well in this unexpected situation. Hidden behind a pir, Vanessa Reed watched the entire scene unfold with a cold sneer. Useless trash. Two against one and still beaten bloody. Clearly, I wasn¡¯t the weakling she had assumed. Next time, she would hire more people ¨C real thugs, professional hitmen. She would ensure that Connor Rivers¡® precious little fianc¨¦e would suffer properly. Her violet eyes gleamed with malice as she slipped away from the scene, already formting her next move against the woman who dared to take what she considered rightfully hers. At the police station, I sat calmly in the interview room, giving my statement with professional precision. The officer across from me looked impressed by my ¡°The surveince footage confirms your ount, Ms. Winters,¡± he said, closing his notebook. ¡°Those men clearly initiated the harassment and assault.¡± Inodded, maintaining my professional demeanor. ¡°I only acted in self¨Cdefense.¡± Just then, another officer entered with a message from the hospital. His expression was grave as he handed a note to his colleague. ¡°There¡¯s aplication,¡± the first officer said after reading it. ¡°Mr. Harding¡¯s injuries are severe. He has a ruptured testicle that requires surgical evaluation.¡± My heart sank slightly, but I kept my face neutral. As awyer, I understood the potential legal implications immediately. ¡°If both testicles were damaged and needed removal,¡± the officer continued, ¡°this might escte to a case of excessive self¨Cdefense, possibly constituting intentional assault.¡± The door opened again, and Connor strode in, his ice¨Cblue eyes immediately finding mine. Relief washed over me at the sight of him. Th? link to the orig?n of this information r?sts ?n Find_Novel(. ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± he demanded, his voice carrying the unmistakable authority of an Alpha. The officer exined the situation, concluding that they couldn¡¯t release me until the ||| < Chapter 23 Dangerous En. hospital determined the extent of Brock¡¯s injuries. Connor¡¯s jaw tightened. ¡°This is ridiculous. She was defending herself against attempted s****l assault.¡± +8 Points > He pulled out his phone, clearly ready to call in favors to get me released immediately. I ced my hand on his arm, stopping him. ¡°It¡¯s okay,¡± I said calmly. ¡°Let me handle this.¡± I turned back to the officers, my professionalposure unshaken. ¡°One ruptured is minor injury, two is serious. If both were removed, yes, it could be injury beyond necessity, possibly intentional harm.¡± Then I unlocked my phone and confidently yed back the recording ¨C the filthy threats and ns for r**e captured in full. The officers¡® expressions changed as they listened, disgust and anger recing their previous skepticism. My eyes were clear and cold as I ced the phone on the table. ¡°Officer, I have evidence these two attempted s****I assault. My resistance was justified against violent crime. It does not constitute excessive self¨Cdefense.¡± Fixing my gaze steadily on the police officer, I added resolutely, ¡°I am now formally reporting an attempted rape.¡± My voice was firm and unwavering. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > M Vote 259 Whisper 40 Chapter 24: Darkness and Secrets¨C1 Chapter 24: Darkness and Secrets (Olivia¡¯s POV) The police officer¡¯s face remained impassive as he delivered his verdict. ¡°We¡¯ve received your report. We will open an investigation on the charge of attempted assault, but your case of excessive force will also be filed. Since it¡¯s a criminal vition, whether it constitutes justified defense will be determined by the court.¡± I nodded, keeping my expression neutral despite the frustration bubbling beneath the surface. ¡°Understood.¡± My voice remained steady, betraying none of the turmoil I felt. As awyer, I knew the system well enough to understand that this was standard procedure, even if it felt unjust. Afterpleting the necessary paperwork and posting bail, I finally stepped out of the police station. The night air felt cool against my skin after hours in the stuffy interview room. Connor¡¯s sleek ck SUV waited at the curb, its engine purring softly. He opened the passenger door for me, his ice¨Cblue eyes scanning my face with concern. Once inside, he immediately turned to me, his expression intense. ¡°I¡¯ll make a call to have this case withdrawn.¡± His tone left no room for argument, but I shook my head firmly. My honey¨Cbrown hair caught the moonlight streaming through the window. ¡°No need. I have confidence I can walk away from this unscathed.¡± Connor¡¯s jaw tightened slightly, but he didn¡¯t press the issue. Instead, he started the car and pulled away from the curb, the police station shrinking in the rearview mirror. The streets of Riverdale were nearly empty at this hour, streetlights casting long ? ‰c You can try to lean on me.¡± His words hung in the air between us. I remained silent, watching the city lights blur past the window. After a long moment, I exhaled softly. ¡°After my mother passed away, I was lost for a long time. Then my father remarried. After that, I felt like in this world, there was no one truly close to me anymore.¡± The confession slipped out before I could stop it, my voice barely audible in the quiet car. The words melted into the night¡¯s silence. Sitting side by side, Connor couldn¡¯t see the sorrow hidden in my amber eyes. I forced myself to sound casual, as if discussing Fresh chapters posted on find{n}ovel something trivial rather than the wound that had shaped my entire life. ¡°So, I got used to carrying everything by myself. Because I really don¡¯t know who I can still rely on.¡± I could feel Connor¡¯s gaze on me, though I kept my eyes fixed on the passing scenery. The weight of his attention was almost physical. ¡°You still have me.¡± His words were simple but filled with an intensity that made my chest tighten. Yet I couldn¡¯t bring myself to respond. Reba¡¯s earlier revtions about Vanessa Reed had nted a seed of doubt I couldn¡¯t ignore. Connor¡¯s foster sister ¨C the daughter of a servant who had sacrificed herself for Mrs. Rivers ¨C probably harbored deep feelings for him. Although Connor had scolded Vanessa for her rudeness yesterday, I sensed his anger stemmed more from her embarrassing the Rivers family than from any desire to defend me. Deep down, I knew my ce in his heart couldn¡¯tpare to his bond O < < Chapter 24 Darkness and¡­. with the ¡°sister¡± he¡¯d grown up with. +8 Ports If Vanessa and I ever truly shed, I had little doubt which side Connor would choose. To protect myself from future heartbreak, I resolved not to rely too heavily on his protection. Connor seemed to feel my hesitation keenly. A trace of frustration crossed his features before he gently reached out, rubbing my head with rare tenderness. ¡°Livvy, remember, no matter what, I will always stand on your side.¡± I lowered my head, unable to meet his gaze. ¡°Mm.¡± My nomittal response hung between us for the remainder of the drive. (Third person¡¯s POV) After escorting Olivia home to Moonlight Manor, Connor immediately pulled out his phone and dialed Frank Langley. ¡°I want the case of ¡®excessive force¡® against Olivia Winters withdrawn. Immediately.¡± His voice carried the unmistakable authority of an Alpha ustomed to having hismands obeyed without question. ¡°Consider it done,¡± Frank replied promptly. Connor ended that call and immediately dialed his assistant. ¡°Henry, find out which hospital those two men who harassed Livvy are at. Deal with them.¡± The words were spoken calmly, but the underlying menace was clear. In Harbor City Memorial Hospital, Brock Hardingy weakly in his bed, having just emerged from surgery. His tattooed armsy limply at his sides, his face still pale from blood loss and anesthesia. ||| Whisper 41 Chapter 24: Darkness and Secrets¨C2 In the adjacent bed, Tyler Jenkins shifted ufortably, his dislocated arm now set in a cast. Both men looked up sharply when the door opened. A man entered, his face concealed by a mask. Despite the disguise, they recognized him immediately the same person who had transferred fifty thousand dors to each of them to harass Olivia Winters. Brock¡¯s voice trembled with fury. ¡°Damn you, why didn¡¯t you say she knew self¨Cdefense? She kicked my balls to pieces I¡¯m ruined for life!¡± Victor Stone snapped impatiently, his eyes cold above the mask. ¡°Shut up. You¡¯ll each get another three hundred thousand dors. When the police question you, say it was your own lust that made you det. Don¡¯t mention anyone hired you, understand?¡± Tyler nodded eagerly, blonde hair falling into his eyes. ¡°Okay¡± For him, three hundred thousand was a fortune worth any risk. But Brock wasn¡¯t so easily satisfied. ¡°Three hundred thousand? You think I¡¯m a beggar? I want a million!¡± Victor secretly breathed a sigh of relief. Vanessa had authorized anything under five million to keep them quiet. He¡¯d been prepared to go as high as two million, so one was a bargain. ¡°Fine,¡± Victor said coldly. ¡°Give me your ount number. The money will be transferred soon. But if either of you leak a word, you won¡¯t get a penny, and you won¡¯t live long enough to regret it.¡± His voice dropped to a menacing whisper. ¡°Think carefully. If you admit, guilt, the worst is a few years in prison. But if you expose us, I¡¯ll make sure you leave the morgue feet first.¡± Chapter 24 Darkness and Both thugs shuddered in terror, instantly cowed. Anyone who could casually throw around millions was clearly not someone to cross. After Victor left, another visitor arrived: Frank Langley, Connor Rivers¡® senior assistant. His cold demeanor filled the room immediately. Seeing a stranger, Brock stiffened, thinking Victor had returned. ¡°What now-¡± He stopped short when he realized this wasn¡¯t the same person. Frank¡¯s eyes were icy as he surveyed the two injured men. ¡°Someone else was just here?¡± ¡°No,¡± Brock lied immediately, ¡°Who are you? What do you want?¡± Frank¡¯s tone was frosty. ¡°Why did you harass Miss Wintersst night?¡± Brock forced a grin, trying to appear casual despite his pain. ¡°Just drunk and saw a pretty girl, couldn¡¯t help ourselves.¡± Tyler nodded frantically, eager to support the story. ¡°Yeah, she¡¯s really gorgeous.¡± Frank¡¯s face darkened in disgust. ¡°Watch your filthy mouths. If you say another disgusting word, I¡¯ll have your tongues cut out.¡± Two ck¨Csuited bodyguards stepped forward menacingly behind him, making the two thugs pale with fright. Frank pressed again, his voice dangerously soft. ¡°Tell the truth.¡± Remembering Victor¡¯s threats, they dared not reveal anything. Both stubbornly stuck to their story: they were drunk and acted on impulse. Frank saw no point in pushing further and left with the bodyguards, his expression grim. Chapter 24 Darkness and (Olivia¡¯s POV) Follow current nov?ls on ?ovelFind The next morning, sunlight streamed through my bedroom window at Moonlight Manor. I was just finishing my breakfast when my phone rang. It was the police, informing me that the excessive force case against me had been dropped. I wasn¡¯t surprised, knowing this was Connor¡¯s doing. Although I was confident I could have defended myself in court and proven it was justified defense, I saw no reason to resist his help in this instance. After ending the call, I dialed Connor¡¯s number. He answered on the first ring. ¡°Thank you,¡± I said simply. His tone was faintly displeased. ¡°Livvy, there¡¯s no need to thank me. I never want to hear ¡®thank you¡® from you again.¡± I stood by the window, sunlight warming my face as I gazed out at the manicured gardens of Moonlight Manor. ¡°Alright, I understand.¡± Connor added, his voice dangerously low and full of menace. ¡°Those two who bullied youst night¨CI will make them pay.¡± A chill ran down my spine at his tone. I worried he might resort to illegal means and quickly tried to dissuade him. ¡°They¡¯ve already paid the pricest night, and thew will punish them. You don¡¯t need to do anything more. Leave the rest to justice.¡± But his tone only grew colder, the oppressive aura palpable even over the phone. ¡°Anyone who hurts you, I won¡¯t spare.¡± I listened in silence, unable to find the right words to respond. A thought crossed my mind, unbidden and unwee: but what if the person who hurt her was Vanessa Reed? Would he still be so resolute then? Comments Whisper 42 Chapter 25: Reunion at the Moon Crest Stables Chapter 25: Reunion at the Moon Crest Stables (Olivia¡¯s POV) The warm afternoon sun bathed Riverdale in a golden glow as I sat across from Reba and Lily at our favorite dessert caf¨¦. The sweet scent of pastries filled the air, mingling with the rich aroma of freshly brewed coffee. It felt surreal to be back in my hometown after three years in Harbor City¨Cthree years of emotional turmoil that I was finally beginning to leave behind. ¡°I¡¯m dying,¡± Lily groaned dramatically, her head resting on the table. Her usually perfect hair was disheveled, and dark circles shadowed her eyes. ¡°These days it¡¯s either shopping or clubbing, I¡¯m bored already.¡± Reba gently patted Lily¡¯s shoulder, her touch as soft as her personality. ¡°Maybe we should take it easy today?¡± I smiled, savoring the familiar banter between my two best friends. Since returning to Riverdale, they had whisked me away on a whirlwind of activities¨Cshopping sprees, restaurant hopping, and nightclub adventures. My ns to submit my resume to Moow Legal Services had been temporarily shelved in favor of reconnecting with the people and ces I¡¯d missed. Suddenly, Lily¡¯s head shot up, a mischievous glint recing the exhaustion in her eyes. ¡°Last night, I puked all over Ethan Quinn, that unlucky bastard! Hahaha! I vaguely remember his whole face turning green!¡± she eximed, dissolving into fits of I couldn¡¯t help but join in, the mental image too hrious to resist. It felt good tough freely again, without the weight of Ethan Grey¡¯s indecision hanging over me. Reba¡¯s gentle chuckle joined our louderughter. ¡°Lily, wasn¡¯t your brother mad at you?¡± Lily snorted, but there was a surprising softness in her expression. ¡°Actually, Ethan Quinn is finally acting like a proper brother. After I puked on him, he changed clothes, < Chapter 25 Reunion at th took a shower, and even cooked me some hangover soup.¡± ¡°Wow, that¡¯s progress,¡± I remarked, genuinely surprised. The Ethan Quinn I remembered was notoriously self¨Ccentered. Lily nodded, absently stirring her iced coffee. ¡°We¡¯vee a long way since I was nine and he was fourteen. Remember how he used to be such a little s**t?¡± Reba smiled knowingly. ¡°You weren¡¯t exactly an angel either, Lily.¡± ad Points ¡°He started it!¡± Lily protested, her eyes shing with the same defiance I imagined she¡¯d shown as a child. ¡°The first time we met, he pulled my braids and told me to get lost.¡± ¡°And you bit him?¡± I guessed, knowing Lily¡¯s fiery temperament. She grinned triumphantly. ¡°Right on the wrist. He still has the scar.¡± The mental image of a tiny Lily fiercely defending herself against her teenage stepbrother made meugh again. ¡°You must have been sent by heaven just to torment him.¡± ¡°Serves him right for bullying me all those years,¡± Lily dered, raising her coffee in a mock toast. As ourughter subsided, Lily¡¯s eyes suddenly lit up with renewed energy. She sat up straight, all traces of her hangover apparently forgotten. ¡°Anyway, shall we go to the stables this afternoon? I haven¡¯t ridden in ages, and I miss it.¡± The suggestion immediately resonated with me. During my three years in Harbor City, I¡¯d barely had time for myself, let alone for leisure activities like horseback riding. ¡°I haven¡¯t been riding in the three years I was in Harbor City,¡± I admitted, a wistful smile ying on my lips. ¡°I really miss the days when we used to race horses together.¡± ??? ????? ???????s ??? ?????s??? ?? find¡¤novel Reba¡¯s gentle smile widened. ¡°The stables have some new horses you haven¡¯t seen yet, Liv. You¡¯ll love them.¡± Lily was already pulling out her phone, scrolling through her contacts with a mischievous grin. ¡°I¡¯ll call Ethan Quinn to ask him to bring Connor as well.¡± Points My heart skipped a beat at the mention of Connor Rivers. Since returning to Riverdale, I¡¯d seen him several times, each encounter reminding me of his unwavering support during my darkest moments in Harbor City. ¡°Do you think they¡¯ll be free on such short notice?¡± I asked, trying to sound casual despite the flutter in my stomach. Lily winked at me knowingly. ¡°Trust me, Connor will make time for you.¡± An hourter, we arrived at Crescent Moon Stables, thergest equestrian facility in Riverdale, owned by Reba¡¯s family. The familiar scent of hay and horses greeted me as we stepped out of Lily¡¯s car, bringing back a flood of childhood memories. ¡°I¡¯ll go check which horses are avable,¡± Reba said, heading toward the main office with the natural confidence of someone who belonged there. Lily linked her arm through mine, leading me toward the changing rooms. ¡°Come on, let¡¯s get you looking fabulous before the boys arrive.¡± Inside the spacious locker room, I changed into the riding attire Reba had prepared for me¨Ca light grey standing¨Ccor fitted jacket that hugged my curves perfectly, paired with white tight¨Cfitting pants and sleek ck riding boots. As I twisted my honey¨Cbrown hair into a neat bun, I caught a glimpse of myself in the full¨Clength mirror. The woman staring back at me looked different from the heartbrokenwyer who had fled Harbor City. There was a new confidence in her amber eyes, a quiet strength that hadn¡¯t been there before. ¡°You look amazing,¡± Lily dered, appearing behind me in her own riding outfit¨Ca bold red jacket that matched her vibrant personality. ¡°Connor won¡¯t be able to take his eyes off you.¡± I felt a blush creeping up my cheeks. ¡°That¡¯s not why I¡¯m here.¡± ¡°Sure it isn¡¯t,¡± Lily teased, adjusting her ponytail. ¡°Just like I didn¡¯t identally spill my drink on Cassandra Evans at that charity gst year.¡± ¡°You didn¡¯t!¡± I gasped, both horrified and secretly delighted. Lily¡¯s innocent smile didn¡¯t fool me for a second. ¡°Her white dress turned such a lovely shade of red wine. Total ident, of course.¡± M Vote 259 that Wat Whisper 43 Chapter 26: Dangerous Rides¨C1 Chapter 26: Dangerous Rides (Olivia¡¯s POV) The wind whipped through my hair as Moonbeam and Ipleted our secondp around the sprawling grounds of Crescent Moon Stables. Connor rode beside me on his powerful bay stallion, his posture rxed yetmanding. The afternoon sun cast a golden glow over thendscape, highlighting the lush green fields that stretched as far as the eye could see. As we slowed our horses to a walk and approached the starting point, I noticed that Lily, Ethan Quinn, and Reba were nowhere to be seen. They had likely ventured deeper into the property, enjoying their own rides across the vast terrain. Only Vanessa Reed remained at the starting area, her violet eyes tracking our approach with unsettling intensity. She wore a casual outfit¨Cfitted jeans and a light purple top thatplemented her eyes¨Crather than proper riding attire. ?????? ???? find(?)ovel The moment we dismounted, Vanessa rushed forward, her face transforming into a sweet smile that didn¡¯t quite reach her eyes. ¡°Wow, Sister Winters, you look so magnificent when riding,¡± she gushed, her voice dripping with honey. ¡°Could I learn horseback riding from you?¡± I blinked in surprise. Just moments ago, I had overheard her coquettishly insisting that only her foster brother Connor could teach her to ride. This sudden change in preference caught mepletely off guard. ¡°There¡¯s a professional riding instructor nearby,¡± I offered politely, gesturing toward the main stable building. ¡°I can call them over to teach you.¡± Vanessa¡¯s perfectly glossed lips formed a practiced pout, her expression shifting to one of spoiled reluctance. ¡°But the instructor would pressure me, and I don¡¯t know them. I¡¯m afraid they¡¯ll scold me.¡± She batted her eyshes. ¡°You¡¯re so nice, Sister Winters, you surely won¡¯t scold me, right?¡± Her coquettish tone felt inappropriateing from someone who was practically a stranger. I instinctively turned toward Connor, seeking his guidance in this awkward Chapter 26 Dangerous Ri situation. +6 Points By some coincidence, Connor nced back at me at the exact same moment. His ice¨Cblue eyes met mine, and I saw a flicker of something unreadable pass through them before he gently passed the decision back to me. ¡°Livvy, would you like to teach her?¡± he asked, his deep voice neutral. I hesitated, weighing my options carefully. Vanessa was Connor¡¯s foster sister, which meant she would eventually be my pack sister once Connor and Ipleted our mating bond. Although our first meeting had been decidedly frosty, she had apologized for her behavior, and now appeared genuinely amiable. My naturally kind disposition resisted the urge to overthink the situation or assume malice from another she¨Cwolf. Perhaps I had been too quick to judge her before. ¡°Alright,¡± I finally nodded. ¡°I can teach you some basics today, help you get a feel for it. Later, your brother can enroll you in proper lessons.¡± Vanessa¡¯s smile brightened instantly, her violet eyes sparkling with what appeared to be genuine delight. ¡°Really? Thank you, Sister Winters.¡± Her honeyed tone made me momentarily doubt my previous suspicions. Maybe I had been too wary of the younger wolf. Perhaps she truly wanted to make amends and build a rtionship with her future sister¨Cinw. Connor stepped closer to me, his tall frame casting a shadow over mine. ¡°Thank you, Livvy,¡± he said softly, his ice¨Cblue eyes warming slightly as they met mine. Then his gaze shifted to his foster sister, and the temperature seemed to drop several degrees. His voice took on a cold,manding tone that carried the unmistakable authority of an Alpha. ¡°Learn well from her and listen to what she says. Do whatever she tells you. careful.¡± Be ¡°I know, brother,¡± Vanessa replied with a sugary, obedient smile that didn¡¯t quite reach her eyes. I led Moonbeam a few steps away and beckoned to Vanessa. ¡°Come with me.¡± Vanessa followed closely, her movements almost predatory despite her attempt to 3 to Moonbeam¡¯s left side. ¡°Mount from the left, step into the stirrup with your left foot, then swing your right leg over.¡± While Vanessa wasn¡¯t dressed in proper equestrian attire, her sporty outfit was serviceable enough for a basic lesson. I offered my hand for support, and with my steady guidance, she mounted safely. Standing beside the horse, I gently took hold of Moonbeam¡¯s bridle and began leading her into a slow walk. The docile white mare moved calmly, her steps unhurried and smooth. ¡°Are you getting used to it?¡± I called up to Vanessa. The moment we moved out of Connor¡¯s line of sight, Vanessa¡¯s sweet facade vanished like morning mist under a hot sun. Her violet eyes grew cold as she responded tly, ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s fine.¡± ¤ß Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 44 Chapter 26: Dangerous Rides¨C2 I didn¡¯t mind this abrupt shift in demeanor. In fact, I found this blunt honesty +8 Points preferable to the forced intimacy she had disyed earlier. At least now I knew where we stood. ¡°For beginners, posture matters most,¡± I exined, maintaining my gentle tone. ¡°Sit upright in the saddle.¡± I handed her the reins, continuing my instruction. ¡°To make the horse walk, don¡¯t pull back hard. Loosen the tension so the horse feels less pressure¨Cit will then move forward naturally.¡± Vanessaplied, lightly gripping the reins with her left hand while keeping her right hand tightly closed. Moonbeam responded to the subtle cue, obediently walking forward at a leisurely pace. ¡°That horse¡¯s name is Moonbeam,¡± I said softly, stroking the mare¡¯s neck affectionately. ¡°She¡¯s very gentle, so don¡¯t be afraid.¡± ¡°Is that so?¡± Vanessa¡¯s voice was icy, tinged with a strange undertone that made me nce up sharply. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m right here, nothing bad will happen,¡± I reassured her warmly, choosing to ignore the odd note in her voice. Vanessa curled her lips into a faint, unreadable smile. ¡°Well, thank you so much.¡± The words dripped with false gratitude, but I chose to ignore that too. This was about teaching her the basics of riding, not about bing best friends. ¡°If you want her to move faster, gently squeeze her nks with your calves,¡± I continued with my instruction. ¡°The more pressure, the faster she¡¯ll go. When she starts running, remember to rx your legs.¡± This update is avable on find[?]ovel I looked up at Vanessa, noticing that she seemed distracted, her attention focused on something I couldn¡¯t discern. Her right hand remained suspiciously closed, as if holding something. ¡°Understand?¡± I asked, seeking confirmation. < Chapter 26 Dangerous Ri ¡°Yes,¡± Vanessa answered sinctly, her attention clearly elsewhere. We gradually moved farther from our starting point, following a gentle path that curved around a copse of trees. Vanessa grew increasingly focused on something I couldn¡¯t see, her posture tense despite the gentle rhythm of Moonbeam¡¯s gait. ¡°How does it feel so far?¡± I asked, trying to engage her. ¡°Isn¡¯t riding exhrating?¡± ¡°Mm, it¡¯s alright,¡± Vanessa replied perfunctorily, barely acknowledging my question. The sun had begun its descent toward the horizon, casting dazzling hues of orange and pink across the sky. A soft breeze swept across the vast grasnd, carrying the sweet scent of wildflowers. I found myself rxing into the moment despite Vanessa¡¯s cold demeanor. ¡°What a beautiful day,¡± I sighed contentedly, admiring the sunset. After we had walked for about fifteen minutes, I decided it was time to return. Vanessa had mastered the basics of sitting and guiding the horse, and Moonbeam had been perfectly behaved throughout the lesson. ¡°We should head back now,¡± I said, gently tugging on the bridle to turn Moonbeam around. Vanessa¡¯s lips curved into a cryptic smile, her demeanor shifting to something that made me suddenly uneasy. There was a predatory gleam in her violet eyes that sent a chill down my spine. In the next instant, chaos erupted. I caught a glimpse of Vanessa¡¯s quick movement toward Moonbeam¡¯s nk, but before I could react, the normally docile mare suddenly reared and bolted uncontrobly. It was as if she had gone mad, charging forward wildly with a panicked whinny. Vanessa clung desperately to the reins, her terrified screams piercing the air. ¡°Ah! Help! Help me!¡± I froze in shock, my mind nk with disbelief. How could gentle Moonbeam suddenly turn violent? The mare had never behaved like this in all the years I had known her. The entire incident unfolded within mere seconds¨Ctoo fast for me to grasp the reins < Chapter 26 Dangerous Ri. + Points or intervene in any way. Moonbeam was already galloping away at full speed, with Vanessa bouncing precariously in the saddle. As my brain rebooted from the shock, I quickly pulled out my phone and called the stable¡¯s emergency rescue team, my heart racing with panic and guilt. ¡°Emergency at the east field!¡± I shouted into the phone. ¡°Runaway horse with a beginner rider! Send help immediately!¡± Vanessa, after being recklessly carried for some distance, finally released her grip and tumbled dramatically onto the grassy in. She rolled far away from the crazed horse, which kept galloping in panic toward the tree line. She appeared tond hard, her body limp on the ground as I watched in horror. Even from this distance, I could see that she wasn¡¯t moving.. ¡°Oh my God,¡± I gasped, breaking into a run toward her fallen form. ¡°Vanessa!¡± The rescue staff arrived swiftly in an all¨Cterrain vehicle; medical equipment at the ready. They reached Vanessa before I could, quickly assessing her condition and hoisting her onto a stretcher. Connor and the others must have heard themotion, as they came galloping over the rise, faces dark with worry. Connor dismounted in one fluid motion before his horse had fully stopped, rushing to his foster sister¡¯s side. Seeing Vanessa¡¯s condition¨Cpale, seemingly unconscious, with a trickle of blood from a cut on her forehead¨CConnor¡¯s brows knit tightly. His jaw clenched as he spoke quietly to the medical staff. Then his gaze turned sharp as he fixed on me. The intensity of his ice¨Cblue my stomach drop with dread. eyes made I returned his look in a daze, my eyes clouded in confusion and helpless panic. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > 259 H Whisper 45 Chapter 27: Dangerous usations¨C1 Chapter 27: Dangerous usations (Olivia¡¯s POV) followed the rescue team out of Crescent Moon Stables in a daze. My mind kept reying the horrifying moment when Moonbeam suddenly went wild, throwing Vanessa to the ground. Nothing made sense. Thete afternoon sun cast long shadows across the grounds as Reba and Lily rushed toward me, their faces etched with concern. ¡°Liv!¡± Lily grabbed my hand, her fingers squeezing mine tightly. ¡°What happened? Are you okay?¡± I stared at her, still struggling to process the chaos of the past few minutes. My voice sounded hollow even to my own ears. ¡°I don¡¯t know either. Just now, Vanessa asked me to teach her to ride. Everything was fine, then suddenly Moonbeam went crazy. Vanessa was thrown off and looks badly hurt.¡± Reba¡¯s brow furrowed as she nced toward the stables where staff members were attempting to calm the still¨Cagitated Moonbeam. ¡°That doesn¡¯t make any sense,¡± she said slowly. ¡°Moonbeam always gets monthly check¨Cups. The stable hands had her examined again this morning before bringing her out ¨C all indicators were normal. How could she suddenly go mad?¡± Lily¡¯s grip on my hand tightened, her eyes narrowing with suspicion. ¡°Could it be Vanessa¡¯s doing? I remember she insisted on Alpha Connor teaching her at first, she never liked you. Why would she suddenly want you to teach her?¡± The question hung in the air between us. I hadn¡¯t considered that possibility, but now that Lily mentioned it, Vanessa¡¯s behavior had been strange from the start. Reba turned as one of the stable hands approached us. ¡°We¡¯ve subdued Moonbeam and given her a tranquilizer,¡± he reported. ¡°We¡¯ll do a thorough examination to figure out what triggered her.¡± THE * Chapter 27 Dangerous Ac Reba nodded, then turned back to me, cing a gentle hand on my shoulder. ¡°Liv, don¡¯t me yourself. This isn¡¯t your fault.¡± +3 Points Her words were meant tofort, but they only intensified the confusion swirling inside me. If it wasn¡¯t my fault, and it wasn¡¯t Moonbeam¡¯s natural behavior, then what had happened? My gaze drifted in the direction where the rescue team had disappeared with Vanessa. I recalled her strange smile just before Moonbeam went wild. That smile hadn¡¯t been fearful or nervous¨Cit had been almost¡­ anticipatory. A cold realization washed over me. Had Vanessa orchestrated this entire incident? But why would she go to such extremes? Then I remembered Connor¡¯s prating gaze after the ident¨Cthe silent questions in his ice¨Cblue eyes. Understanding dawned with sickening rity. Vanessa had risked her own safety to create this ¡°ident,¡± to drive a wedge between Connor and me. We¡¯d only met twice, yet she was willing to endanger herself just to frame me. The thought left me stunned. Vanessa truly was unhinged. (Vanessa¡¯s POV) The ambnce siren wailed as we sped toward the hospital. I kept my face deathly pale, tears streaming down my cheeks as I clutched Connor¡¯s hand with desperate strength. ¡°Con, it hurts so much¡­¡± I whimpered, making my voice tremble with pain and fragility. Connor¡¯s expression softened as he looked down at me, his ice¨Cblue eyes filled with concern. Hisrge hand gently squeezed mine. Follow current nov?ls on f¦É?dn¦Ïvel ¡°We¡¯re almost at the hospital. The doctors will take care of you.¡± I let my tears fall harder, choking back sobs that made my entire body shake. The pain in my tailbone and arm was excruciating, but it would be worth it if it meant keeping Connor away from that b***h Olivia. ¡°It really hurts¡­ When I fell off the horse, I was so scared. I was terrified I¡¯d never see Chapter 27 Dangerous Ac. you again¡­¡± Points I tightened my grip on his hand, letting vulnerability seep into my voice. This was the Connor I knew¨Cprotective, caring, my Connor. ¡°Con, did I cause you trouble? Everyone was having fun, but then this happened because of me. Did I ruin everything?¡± (Connor¡¯s POV) ¡°Don¡¯t say that,¡± I reassured her softly, stroking her hair away from her tear¨Cstained face. Despite my suspicions about the nature of the ident, seeing Vanessa in pain stirred my protective instincts. She had been part of my family since we were children, and old habits died hard. ¡°Just like when you were little, still so clingy.¡± I could sense that her injury was likely self¨Cinflicted. Vanessa had always been maniptive, willing to hurt herself to get what she wanted. But seeing her tears and obvious pain, I couldn¡¯t help but feel a twinge of sympathy. The ambnce pulled up to the emergency entrance, and medical staff rushed to transfer Vanessa onto a gurney. I followed closely, my mind divided between concern for my foster sister and thoughts of Olivia. (Olivia¡¯s POV) By the time I arrived at the hospital, Vanessa had already undergone a series of examinations. The doctor informed us that her injuries, while painful, weren¡¯t life¨Cthreatening: a stable fracture of her tailbone, soft tissue damage, a slightly dislocated elbow, and multiple abrasions. Thankfully, there was no internal bleeding. Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 46 Chapter 27: Dangerous usations¨C2 After her wounds were treated and she received a painkiller injection, her cries of agony finally subsided. I approached her ward quietly, hesitating at the door when I heard her speaking to Connor. ¡°Con, my arm is in a cast, I can¡¯t feed myself. Can you feed me, please?¡± Her voice was coquettish, almost childlike. I stopped, uncertain whether I should enter. Part of me wanted to turn around and leave, to avoid another confrontation with Vanessa. ¡°I¡¯ll call a nurse for you,¡± Connor replied, his tone calm but gentle. ¡°No, I want you to feed me,¡± Vanessa whined insistently. ¡°Why won¡¯t you?¡± I remained frozen outside the door, feeling like an intruder on their private conversation. ¡°Be good, you¡¯re not a child anymore,¡± Connor said patiently but firmly. ¡°And besides, I already have a fianc¨¦e. I¡¯m about to get engaged to Livvy. We should maintain some boundaries.¡± My heart stirred gently at his words. I hadn¡¯t expected Connor to draw such a clear line out of respect for me, especially when Vanessa was injured and vulnerable. ¡°Even siblings have to avoid suspicion?¡± Vanessa¡¯s tone abruptly sharpened, rising several octaves with undisguised resentment. ¡°Con, so Olivia Winters is such a petty woman? She hurt me and yet you care more about her feelings than mine?¡± I turned away silently, ready to leave. I didn¡¯t have the shamelessness to force myself into a situation where I was clearly unwanted. If Vanessa despised me so much, there was no point in staying. Just then, a nurse carrying an IV bag approached, politely asking me to step aside so she could enter the room. The movement caught Connor¡¯s attention, and both he and Vanessa turned to see me standing in the doorway. With a soft sigh, I followed the nurse inside. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Vanessa spat, her eyes shing with undisguised O < < Chapter 27 Dangerous Ac¡­ loathing. Almost simultaneously, Connor¡¯s gentle voice sounded, ¡°Livvy, you¡¯re here.¡± + Points The nurse busied herself with Vanessa¡¯s IV while I stood awkwardly near the foot of the bed. Vanessa red at me with venom, as if stabbing me with invisible daggers. I met her gaze unflinchingly, my voice frosty and sharp when I finally spoke. ¡°Are you telling people I made that horse bolt and hurt you?¡± (Vanessa¡¯s POV) I hadn¡¯t expected this. I thought Olivia would panic after the ident, maybe even plead for forgiveness. Herposed confrontation caught me slightly off guard¨Cbut only for a moment. Slipping back into my performance, I turned away from her and looked at Connor with tear¨Cfilled eyes. I made my voice tremble pitifully. ¡°Con, I know I left a bad impression the first time we met. So today at the stables, I wanted to get closer to Olivia, since she¡¯s my future sister¨Cinw. That¡¯s why I asked her to teach me to ride.¡± I let fresh tears spill down my cheeks, enjoying the way they enhanced my vulnerable appearance. ¡°I didn¡¯t expect she hated me so much. When I wasn¡¯t looking, she suddenly kicked the horse hard, making it run wild. I was terrified.¡± I choked back a sob, making sure my voice broke at just the right moment. ¡°Olivia, I can understand if you dislike me, but why would you try to hurt me like that?¡± Having delivered my usation, I furtively nced at Connor¡¯s expression, hoping to see anger directed at Olivia. But Connor only frowned slightly, his face frustratingly unreadable. ¡°Livvy, what exactly happened this afternoon at the stables?¡± he asked, his tone still gentle. Hidden under the nket, my uninjured hand clenched into a tight fist. Jealousy scorched through my heart like wildfire. ? 2 24 < Chapter 27 Dangerous Ac.. 48 Points 2 N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on F¦Énd£Îovel How could he not side with me immediately? In the past, anyone who bullied me faced his ruthless protection: expulsion from territories, physical confrontations, even permanent injuries for a stalker who harassed me. Now, supposedly ¡°hurt by Olivia,¡± lying here with a fractured tailbone and arm in a cast, he still doesn¡¯t me Olivia first, but instead calmly asks her side. The unfairness and envy nearly made me explode; I wished desperately to leap up and tear Olivia apart with my bare hands. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > 259 H Vote Whisper 47 Chapter 28: Trust and Temptations¨C1 Chapter 28: Trust and Temptations (Olivia¡¯s POV) I nced lightly at Vanessa, then turned to Connor with an unreadable expression. The hospital room felt suffocating with tension. ¡°If I say Vanessa is lying, would you believe me?¡± I asked quietly. Connor froze, his ice¨Cblue eyes widening slightly. The silence stretched between us, heavy and ufortable. I mocked myself inwardly. How could I have been foolish enough to ask such a question? Of course he would choose Vanessa. She was the girl who had grown up with him, the one he saw as a sister. I was merely a mate¨Cto¨Cbe he hadn¡¯t seen for three years, with little emotional foundation between us. Anyone would expect Connor to choose Vanessa. Yet, after only a moment¡¯s hesitation, Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes grew firm as he dered, ¡°I believe you.¡± I stood frozen, hardly daring to believe my ears. He actually chose to trust me over Vanessa? Shock flickered across my face while Vanessa¡¯s expression turned ashen in an instant. ¡°Con, she¡¯s talking nonsense!¡± Vanessa protested, her voice trembling with emotion. ¡°How can you believe her instead of me?¡± Connor¡¯s gaze turned cold and sharp as he cut her off. ¡°Enough.¡± The single word sliced through the room like a de. ¡°From the first time you met Livvy, you¡¯ve shown her a strange hostility,¡± he continued, his voice dropping to a dangerous timbre. ¡°When you said she kicked the horse just now, I already suspected you were lying.¡± His voice grew even colder. ¡°Livvy is not that kind of person. That, I know very well. You yourself admitted she has no grudge against you, so why would she harm you?¡± I quietly watched him, feeling aplex, bittersweet swirl inside. I had thought that between Vanessa and me, he would never hesitate to side with her. Yet now, he was so resolute, so unwavering in his trust. My nose tingled with sourness, my eyes stinging with tears I couldn¡¯t voice. Connor then looked at Vanessa with an icy expression. ¡°Vanessa Reed, don¡¯t forget, your surname is Reed.¡± The implication was crystal clear: Vanessa was merely a foster child, not a true Rivers, so she should not act recklessly under the Rivers pack¡¯s name. Hearing this, Vanessa¡¯s face grew paler, her lips trembling, tears streaming down uncontrobly. She opened her mouth, but no sound came out. Connor turned away indifferently. ¡°Rest well. I¡¯m leaving.¡± As he headed for the door, I looked coldly at the sobbing Vanessa and sighed softly, ¡°Why do this to yourself?¡± Outside the hospital, in the open¨Cair parking lot, Connor walked beside me, his eyes full of apology. ¡°Livvy, I¡¯m sorry,¡± he said quietly. I turned to him, genuinely confused. ¡°Why are you apologizing to me?¡± Connor sighed, running a hand through his dark hair. ¡°It¡¯s my pack¡¯s fault for not teaching Vanessa well. I don¡¯t know why she would nder you like this. Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll find out.¡± I gave a faintugh. ¡°No need. I already know why.¡± Connor looked puzzled, his brows drawing together. I met his gaze calmly. ¡°Connor, can¡¯t you really see Vanessa¡¯s thoughts?¡± He frowned. ¡°What do you mean?¡± ¡°She targets me because of you,¡± I said unhurriedly. ¡°She likes you, and she sees me The source of th?s content is find?novel as a rival. She did all this to create discord between us.¡± Connor fell silent, his expression thoughtful as he processed my words. I continued < Chapter 28 Trust and Te¡­ walking forward, the cool evening air refreshing after the stifling hospital atmosphere. +8 Points Connor hurriedly caught up with me. ¡°Then from now on, I will keep my distance from her.¡± I paused slightly, turning to face him. ¡°Why?¡± ¡°You said she likes me,¡± Connor replied earnestly. ¡°I never realized before. I only saw her as a sister, but now that I know her feelings, of course I¡¯ll distance myself.¡± His ice¨Cblue eyes softened as they met mine. ¡°Livvy, I want to give you a sense of security.¡± I shook my head slightly, then asked softly, ¡°But why did you believe me unconditionally just now? Vanessa grew up with you. You should have trusted her more, so why me?¡± Connor looked deeply into my eyes, his voice gentle yet resolute. ¡°Because, as I said, you are not that kind of person.¡± ¡°Is that all?¡± I pressed, needing to understand. Under the dim streetlights casting warm amber through the windshield, the look in Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes was full of undisguised affection. He spoke slowly but firmly. ¡°And because I love you. Love means unconditional trust.¡± My heart trembled violently. I turned away in a panic, cheeks flushed crimson, unable to speak. Was that¡­ a confession? Seeing my reddened ears, Connor smiled quietly to himself. I could feel his gaze on me, warm and tender. The following day, the examination results on Moonbeam came back. All indicators were normal, but a fresh scratch wound was found on the back of the mare¡¯s neck, likely caused by a sharp brooch or pin, in a location only essible by a rider. Comments B Vote 259 Whisper 48 Chapter 28: Trust and Temptations¨C2 Upon learning this, Connor did not visit Vanessa again. Instead, the Rivers Pack arranged top¨Ctier nurses and servants to care for her in the hospital, but Connor stayed by my side daily. He apanied me to try on engagement dresses, select tinum jewelry, and n our engagement ceremony. No matter how Vanessa cried or made trouble, Connor never returned to see her. I had once thought Vanessa¡¯s scheme would sabotage my engagement, but ironically, her plotting backfired spectacrly. Not only did it fail to estrange Connor, it actually elerated his confession and deepened hismitment. Though I could not yet say I loved Connor¨Cmy heart still wounded by Ethan Grey¨Cl was undeniably moved by his unconditional trust and affection. The engagement date was set for the fifteenth of next month, with over a month to prepare. One day, Connor apanied me to a luxury boutique¡¯s VIP room. Models in thetest couture walked before us as we sat side by side on a plush sofa. Connor leaned close and whispered by my ear, his breath warm against my skin. ¡°That pale blue dress looks nice.¡± I nodded, trying to ignore the flutter in my stomach at his proximity. ¡°I like that one too, and also the cream¨Ccolored jacket.¡± Just then, my phone chimed with new messages. Respecting my privacy, Connor turned away politely. I opened my inbox to find several photos: Cassandra Evans and Ethan Grey in what seemed to be a mountain retreat popr among wealthy visitors, smiling intimately. Then came a message from Cassandra: ¡°He refused to apany you, but I came on your behalf. The mountain retreat is beautiful¨Ctoo bad you won¡¯t get to see it.¡± N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on find(?)ovel I rolled my eyes. ¡°I¡¯m not dead,¡± I thought, ¡°why wouldn¡¯t I see it?¡± During my three years with Ethan, I had longed for such a trip, but work and his refusals had made it impossible. Now, if I wished to travel, all it took was a word to Chapter 28 Trust and Te¡­. Connor. +8 Points > I nearly blocked Cassandra, but then changed my mind. Watching Cassandra¡¯s petty provocations was almost amusing¨Clike keeping a digital pet. Smirking, I put my phone away. (Ethan¡¯s POV) Cassandra nestled against my chest in our mountain cabin, her fingers tapping away at her phone. I watched as she carefully edited photos of us before sending them. ¡°What are you doing?¡± I asked, though I already knew the answer. ¡°Just sharing our wonderful trip with friends,¡± she replied with a sweet smile that didn¡¯t reach her eyes. I didn¡¯t stop her. Secretly, I was eager for Olivia¡¯s reaction¨Canger, jealousy, a call or message, perhaps a plea for reconciliation. It had been days since Ist heard from her. So I watched silently as Cassandra sent the message, hoping it would provoke Olivia into reaching out. But after the message was sent, hours passed, then an entire day, with no reply from Olivia at all. ¡°Did she block me?¡± Cassandra muttered in confusion, checking her phone repeatedly. ¡°But if she did, the message wouldn¡¯t have gone through.¡± I tried to console myself. ¡°Maybe she just didn¡¯t see it.¡± Yes, that had to be it¨Cif she saw it, she couldn¡¯t possibly be so indifferent. The Olivia I knew would care. She would react. Wouldn¡¯t she? As another day dragged on without a word, I grew restless. The mountain retreat that had seemed so peaceful now felt suffocating. Cassandra had gone for a spa treatment, leaving me alone with my thoughts. I paced the cabin, checking my phone every few minutes. Nothing. Chapter 28 Trust and Te. Finally, I couldn¡¯t stand it anymore. I took out my phone, face clouded with dark suspicion, and called Parker Davis. ¡°Sir?¡± His voice was professional, detached. ¡°Find out Olivia Winters¡® address back in Riverdale,¡± I ordered coldly. 3 Watch Ads (0/20) > 259 M Vote +8 Points Whisper 49 < Chapter 29 Predators and + Points> Chapter 29: Predators and Prey¨C1 Chapter 29: Predators and Prey (Ethan¡¯s POV) Parker Davis proved highly efficient, acquiring Olivia Winters¡® Riverdale address by the very next day. I studied the information on my phone screen, my jaw tightening. ¡°Riverdale Terrace Apartments,¡± I muttered, recognizing the location immediately. ¡°Just an ordinary neighborhood.¡± The address was clearly in Riverdale territory ¨C Connor Rivers¡® domain. My fingers tightened around my phone as I considered the implications. Coincidentally, I was scheduled to head there soon to negotiate investments with the Silverridge Pack. A dark satisfaction spread through me. Perfect timing. ¡°Sir, I¡¯ve also confirmed she¡¯s been staying there regrly,¡± Parker added, his voice professionally detached. ¡°Would you like me to arrange transportation for your visit to Riverdale?¡± I dismissed him with a wave. ¡°I¡¯ll handle it myself.¡± As Parker left my office, I leaned back in my chair, a predatory smile forming on my lips. The mountain retreat had been a waste of time. Cassandra¡¯s petty games with those photos had yielded nothing ¨C n¨® reaction from Olivia at all. ¡°Olivia,¡± I thought, a dark glint shing in my eyes, ¡°since you won¡¯te find me, then this time, I¡¯lle find you.¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) The email notification chimed on my phone, drawing my attention away from the legal brief I¡¯d been reviewing. My heart skipped when I saw the sender: Moow Legal Services. I opened it immediately, scanning the contents with growing excitement. They were responding to my resume submission, asking if I could attend an interview the following day. ¡°Yes!¡± I whispered, quickly typing my eptance. 1/3 Newest update provided by FindN0vel < Chapter 29 Predators and +8 Points This was exactly what I needed ¨C a fresh start away from Harbor City, away from Ethan Grey and all the painful memories. Moow was known as the most prestigiousw firm in Riverdale, with an excellent reputation throughout the legal industry. I began preparing immediately, reviewing my case notes and rehearsing potential interview questions. Working at Moow for a few years would greatly benefit my future career advancement. More importantly, it would give me purpose beyond my The next morning, I rose early, carefully selecting my outfit ¨C a crisp white shirt beneath a ck suit, the ssic attire of a professionalwyer. I applied a light touch of makeup, just enough to look polished without appearing overdone. As I prepared to leave, I nced around my temporary amodations. If this job worked out, I¡¯d need something more permanent. I recalled how, in my freshman year, my cousin Alexander Winters had gifted me a fully¨Cfurnished apartmentplex just across from Riverdale University to ease my studies. The property had remainedrgely unused since I¡¯d moved to Harbor City. Now, with Moow nearby while my family pack house was over ten miles away, that apartment would be perfect. Living there alone, I could avoid facing my father Richard Winters and stepmother Natalie Winters, embracing the solitude and peace I desperately needed. The Moow Legal Services headquarters was an impressive ss and steel structure in downtown Riverdale. I arrived fifteen minutes early, taking deep breaths to calm my nerves before entering. The receptionist directed me to a conference room where I was greeted by a formal interview panel consisting of HR manager Amber Foster and litigation supervisor Heather Phillips. ¡°Miss Winters, thank you foring in today,¡± Amber said warmly, gesturing for me to take a seat. Heather Phillips studied me with sharp, assessing eyes. She was in herte thirties with a sleek bob haircut and the unmistakable aura of a career¨Cfocused professional, < Chapter 29 Predators and¡­ +3 Points > ¡°Your resume is quite impressive,¡± she noted, tapping my file. ¡°Three years at Grey Law Center in Harbor City. Why leave such a prestigious position?¡± I maintained eye contact, my voice steady. ¡°I¡¯m looking for new challenges and growth opportunities. Moow¡¯s reputation for handlingplex litigation is unparalleled.¡± The questions continued, ranging from my academic background to specific legal cases I¡¯d handled. My prestigious education and solid experience allowed me to answer all their professional questions fluently and confidently. As the interview progressed, I noticed Heather¡¯s expression shifting from professional assessment to genuine interest. When we discussed sry expectations, I stated my requirements clearly, prepared for negotiation. To my surprise, Heather nodded immediately. ¡°That¡¯s perfectly reasonable given your qualifications. We can match that exactly ¨C base sry plus casemission.¡± The entire interview progressed more smoothly than I had dared hope. I had braced myself for tough bargaining over pay, yet the firm agreed readily to my terms. As I gathered my portfolio to leave, Heather smiled warmly. ¡°Miss Winters, see you tomorrow.¡± I returned the smile politely, a weight lifting from my shoulders. ¡°See you tomorrow.¡± (Heather¡¯s POV) I watched Olivia Winters walk confidently toward the elevator, her posture perfect, her movements graceful. Standing by the window, I sighed quietly with some regret. ¡°What a pity. I actually quite admire this Miss Winters.¡± Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 50 Chapter 29: Predators and Prey¨C2 She was exactly the kind ofwyer I would normally champion ¨C intelligent, well¨Cspoken, with impressive credentials and a quiet confidence. Under different circumstances, I might have taken her under my wing. Points But circumstances weren¡¯t different. I had my orders from Vanessa Reed, and my own ambitions to consider. Those Rivers packwsuits worth millions would secure my position at Moow for years toe. Still, as I watched Olivia disappear into the elevator, I couldn¡¯t help feeling a twinge of guilt for what was toe. (Olivia¡¯s POV) On my first day officially joining Moow, Amber Foster met me in the lobby, her professional smile firmly in ce. ¡°Wee to Moow, Miss Winters. Let me show you around.¡± She escorted me through the firm¡¯s vast headquarters, introducing me to colleagues and exining the workce structure. The building was impressively organized, divided into distinct departments. ¡°Business Department handles client outreach and securing cases,¡± Amber exined as we passed a bustling open office. ¡°Litigation is where you¡¯ll be, focusing on court disputes. We also have Non¨Clitigation for corporate advisory, debt collection, and contract review services. And of course, Finance and HR, which function like any corporate departments.¡± Each area had its own supervisor, with Heather Phillips overseeing Litigation while actively practicingw herself. Altogether, Moow¡¯s main office housed over twentywyers, each with their own specialties and case loads. ¡°Normally, every two attorneys share a private office,¡± Amber continued, leading me down a hallway lined with ss¨Cwalled offices. ¡°Here¡¯s yours.¡± She opened the door to reveal a spacious office with two desks. A man in his forties looked up from hisputer and smiled. ¡°Olivia, this is Gregory Thompson, your office partner,¡± Amber introduced. ¡°Gregory, < Chapter 29 Predators and this is Olivia Winters, our newest litigation attorney.¡± Gregory stood and extended his hand. ¡°Wee aboard.¡± As I settled at my desk, Heather appeared in the doorway, wearing an apologetic expression. +8 Points ¡°Olivia, usually eachwyer has an intern assistant,¡± she exined. ¡°But two interns recentlypleted their training and left, so we haven¡¯t filled the vacancies yet. You¡¯ll have to manage solo for now ¨C sorry for the extra work.¡± I nodded calmly. ¡°No problem. I can handle the workload independently.¡± ¡°Good,¡± Heather smiled before leaving. Newest update provided by Find~Novel Gregory looked up from hisputer screen with a friendly nod. ¡°Hello there. I¡¯m Gregory Thompson. We¡¯ll be colleagues from now on.¡± ¡°Nice to meet you,¡± I replied politely, beginning to organize my workspace. The morning passed quickly as I familiarized myself with Moow¡¯s case management system. At noon, my phone buzzed with notifications from the office group chat. A male colleague whose name I didn¡¯t recognize yet had posted: ¡°Hey everyone! We have two new faces joining us this week ¨C Olivia Winters and Grace Winters. Let¡¯s wee them properly! Dinner after work today, new folks treating!¡± Several colleagues immediately responded with enthusiastic agreement. I frowned slightly, puzzled by this unexpected ¡°tradition.¡± Was this customary at Moow? To rify, I quietly asked Gregory, who was reviewing documents at his desk. ¡°Is it normal for new hires to treat everyone to dinner?¡± I asked. Gregory looked surprised, then shook his head. ¡°No, there¡¯s never been such a ¡®tradition¡® before.¡± ¡°I see,¡± I murmured, staring at the active chat window. Something felt off beneath this seemingly cordial wee. The timing, the insistence, the way several senior staff members had quickly endorsed the idea¡­ My Chapter 29. Predators and instincts, honed through years of navigating pack politics, warned me that this wasn¡¯t simple collegiality. Watch Ads (0/20) > 259 H Vote < Chapter 30. Encounter at t¡­. Whisper 51 Chapter 30: Encounter at the Restaurant¨C1 Chapter 30: Encounter at the Restaurant (Olivia¡¯s POV) The Silver Moon Steakhouse buzzed with activity as I entered with my new colleagues from Moow Legal Services. The restaurant¡¯s elegant interior gleamed with polished wood and soft lighting, creating an atmosphere of refined luxury. Ourrge group was escorted to a private room, nearly filling it to capacity. I noticed that only the top VIP rooms remained unupied, likely reserved for the truly elite of Riverdale. ¡°Lawyer Winters, you¡¯re so generous¨CSilver Moon Steakhouse!¡± A young femalewyer named Rachel teased with a bright smile as we settled around therge table. ¡°Last time we came here, it was the Alpha treating us duringst year¡¯s annual party.¡± I maintained a pleasant expression, though I wondered which Alpha she was referring to. Connor? Or perhaps Alexander? Heather Phillips, the Litigation Department Supervisor, adjusted her sleek bob haircut andughed lightly. ¡°Lawyer Winters is young and promising. Looks like you¡¯ve made a fortune over the years; there are over twenty of usbined from all departments. Are you going to bleed money tonight?¡± Her tone was joking, but I detected something calcted beneath her friendly demeanor. I remembered how quickly she¡¯d hired me, how readily she¡¯d agreed to my sry requirements. Gregory Thompson, my office partner, chimed in good¨Cnaturedly from across the table. ¡°Lawyer Winters is truly capable.¡± His kind eyes crinkled at the corners, seemingly genuine in hispliment. But before I could respond, another voice cut through the pleasant atmosphere. ¡°Oh, Lawyer Winters, can you really afford this?¡± I turned to see Valerie Pierce, a sharp¨Ctongued litigationwyer with naturally narrowed eyes that seemed perpetually judgmental. From the moment I¡¯d met her at the office, I¡¯d sensed her hostility. < Chapter 30: Encounter at t.. +8 Points > ¡°Silver Moon is two or three hundred per person¨Cadd wine, and tonight¡¯s bill might be three months of your sry,¡± she continued with a smirk. ¡°Shouldn¡¯t we switch to somewhere cheaper, so you don¡¯t have to fake it?¡± The table fell silent, colleagues exchanging ufortable nces. I kept my expression neutral, refusing to show any reaction to her obvious baiting. ¡°No worries, I can afford it,¡± I replied calmly. Valerie¡¯s eyes narrowed further. ¡°Wow, so Supervisor Phillips was right, you really raked in money these years. Care to share your money¨Cmaking tricks with everyone?¡± Her sarcasm was thick enough to cut with a knife. I could feel my wolf bristling inside me, but I maintained myposure. ¡°What tricks do we have? We¡¯re allwyers; if you get a big case, you make more, small cases pay less,¡± I responded evenly. ¡°Actually, I surely don¡¯t make as much as you, Lawyer Pierce. I¡¯ve been working for three years and still can¡¯t afford a decent car. I heard you already bought a property in Riverdale.¡± This wasn¡¯t entirely untrue. My sry alone wouldn¡¯t buy a nice car. Of course, I didn¡¯t mention the garage full of luxury vehicles from my father, my cousin Alexander, and Connor¡¯s recent gift of the cier blue Bentley Continental GT I now drove. Valerie¡¯s expression shifted to one of even deeper contempt. She clearly thought I was a low¨Cranking wolf pretending to be wealthy, when in reality, I was simply being modest about my actual status as the Winters Pack heiress. ¡°Let¡¯s order, everyone pick what you like,¡± I suggested, smoothly changing the subject. Th? link to the orig?n of this information r?sts ?n Find1Novel Valerie quickly grabbed the menu but made a show of passing it to Heather first. ¡°Supervisor Phillips, you go ahead.¡± Heather smiled, her eyes briefly meeting Valerie¡¯s in what seemed like silentmunication. She proceeded to order three of the restaurant¡¯s most expensive signature venison dishes, each costing hundreds. ¡°And let¡¯s add the chef¡¯s special moonlight wine,¡± she added with a smile in my direction. Valerie followed suit, ordering two more pricey dishes and another bottle of premium wine. Others around the table began orderingvishly as well, clearly taking ¤³ < Chapter 30: Encounter at t¡­. advantage of the situation. +8 Points> I felt a gentle tug on my sleeve and turned to find Jade Mitchell, the shy new intern, looking distressed. Her face was flushed as she leaned close to whisper, ¡°Lawyer Winters¡­¡­.I can¡¯t afford to split this meal. It¡¯s too expensive.¡± The poor girl assumed this would be a split bill. Given her entry¨Clevel sry, her share would likely consume her entire month¡¯s pay. I gently patted her hand, offering a reassuring smile. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯m treating everyone tonight. You won¡¯t pay a cent.¡± Her eyes widened, cheeks reddening further. ¡°Really? Thank you so much, Lawyer Winters.¡± By the time everyone had ordered, the bill would clearly be astronomical. Ten people, thousands in food, over three thousand more in drinks¨Cfar beyond normal spending for a wee dinner. I nced at the running tally and smiled faintly. This was obviously a ploy to fleece me as the neer. But with my bank card restored by my father Richard Winters, this amount was insignificant. I decided to treat it as a fee to smooth workce rtions. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 52 Chapter 30: Encounter at the Restaurant¨C2 Midway through the meal, I excused myself to use the restroom. As I stood, Valerie called out mockingly, ¡°Lawyer Winters, where are you going? Running away without paying the bill? Hahaha.¡± The table erupted in awkwardughter. I turned to her, my face cool and voice icy. ¡°Going to the restroom. Or do you want to follow me if you¡¯re so worried?¡± Valerie¡¯s smile faltered slightly. ¡°Just joking, no need to take it seriously.¡± The rightful source is find?novel I ignored her and stepped out of the private room, walking toward the restroom. As I passed the elevator, I unexpectedly locked eyes with a familiar face. Connor Rivers stood there, surrounded by several sharply dressed pack members. His ice¨Cblue eyes registered surprise before warming instantly at the sight of me. ¡°Livvy? What brings you here?¡± he asked, quickly approaching me. His group had clearly just finished dinner on an upper floor. I smiled lightly, genuinely pleased to see him. ¡°Connor, what a coincidence. I¡¯m here treating my new colleagues.¡± Knowing I¡¯d just started at Moow, his tone softened with concern. ¡°How¡¯s your first day? Are you doing well?¡± I decided to conceal the petty bullying. No need to burden him with such trivial matters. ¡°Everything¡¯s good.¡± ¡°Almost done? I can give you a ride,¡± he offered. ¡°Still early, go ahead,¡± I declined politely. He nodded, then added gently, ¡°It¡¯s far from your apartment. Did you call a pack escort?¡± I shook my head. ¡°No, I¡¯ll just head back to the apartment nearby.¡± ¡°Alright. Be careful on your way.¡± ¡°I will.¡± We parted with a warm air lingering between us. I continued to the restroom, my < Chapter 30 Encounter at t¡­ mood considerably lightened by our brief encounter. When I returned to the private room, the meal continued with more forced camaraderie and subtle digs from Valerie. Finally, as the evening wound down, I approached the cashier to settle the bill. ¡°Your bill has already been settled,¡± the staff informed me with a respectful smile. *P Who else but Connor? I smiled with gratitude and pulled out my phone to text him: ¡°Connor, thank you.¡± His reply came quickly: ¡°No need for thanks with me.¡± Then another message appeared: ¡°Are you done? I¡¯m waiting in the outdoor parking lot by the exit. I don¡¯t feel safe letting you go home alone at night.¡± My heart warmed at his quiet protectiveness. I replied, ¡°Almost done. I¡¯ll be there soon.¡± Soon, my colleagues began spilling out of the room. Some male coworkers, drunk on expensive wine, needed cabs that I kindly helped arrange. Valerie strutted to her Honda Civic in the parking lot, lowering her window smugly as she called out, ¡°Lawyer Winters, I¡¯m heading off first. Good luck getting home, bye.¡± I smiled cidly. ¡°Good night.¡± When most had left, I gently inquired about Jade¡¯s address, concerned about the young intern getting home safely. She said shyly, ¡°No need, I live nearby, just a few blocks away. Lots of people outside, super safe even for a beta like me.¡± I nodded. ¡°Alright, see you tomorrow.¡± Jade hesitated, then ran back blushing. ¡°Lawyer Winters, thank you again for today. You¡¯re really kind. I heard you don¡¯t have an assistant yet. If you need help with briefs or files, just let me know.¡± My lips curved into a soft/smile. ¡°Thank you. I will.¡± After the intern scurried away, I headed to the parking lot where Connor waited in his luxury SUV. I slid into the passenger seat, immediately enveloped in the vehicle¡¯s Chapter 30 Encounter at t¡­ ¡°Thank you for waiting,¡± I said as he pulled out of the parking space. ¡°Where to?¡± he asked, his eyes focused on the road. 46 Points I gave him the address of my apartment opposite Riverdale University. ¡°I¡¯m nning to live there permanently for work convenience.¡± Connor nodded approvingly. ¡°Good. I¡¯lle visit often.¡± We drove infortable silence until we reached my building. As he pulled up to the entrance, I smiled. ¡°Alright, I¡¯m heading upstairs now. Bye.¡± Just as I was about to get out, my phone buzzed. I nced at the screen, my brows suddenly knitting tight. ¡°[Olivia, I¡¯m in Riverdale. Want to meet?]¡± The text was from Ethan Grey. 2 Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 53 < Chapter 31: Encounter at t¡­. +8 Points X Chapter 31: Encounter at the Gate¨C1 Chapter 31: Encounter at the Gate (Olivia¡¯s POV) The morning sun had barely risen when I arrived at Moow Legal Services. I¡¯d deliberatelye early, hoping to make a good impression on my second day. Heather Phillips intercepted me in the hallway, her sleek bob swinging as she approached with two thick file folders. Checktest chapters at Find_Novel(. ¡°Olivia, good timing,¡± she said briskly. ¡°This client wants to appeal. The previous attorney has resigned, so now this is transferred to you. The appeal deadline is approaching fast. You¡¯d better draft the appeal and get the documents ready for court today.¡± nodded, taking the first folder. Before I could respond, she thrust the second folder into my hands. ¡°And thisbor injury case. You need to apany the client for the injury certification and disability assessment. Try to get it done today or tomorrow, don¡¯t drag it into next week.¡± ¡°I understand,¡± I replied, grateful for the immediate work. ¡°I¡¯ll handle both right away.¡± Heather gave me a curt nod before striding away, leaving me with my arms full of case files. I made my way to my office, already mentally organizing my approach. More cases meant more but felt a surge of determination. This was my chance to prove myself. < Chapter 31 Encounter at t I dove into the appeal case first, knowing its deadline was more pressing. The previouswyer had left minimal notes, forcing me to reconstruct the entire case strategy from scratch. Hours passed without my notice. I skipped lunch, too absorbed in my work to feel hunger. By mid¨Cafternoon, I had drafted the appeal and organized the supporting evidence. 48 Points I called thebor injury client and arranged to meet tomorrow morning for the medical assessment. That would give me the evening to finish preparing the appeal documents. The office gradually emptied as evening approached. First the interns left, then the administrative staff, followed by the otherwyers. Even Gregory bid me goodnight around seven. ¡°Don¡¯t stay toote,¡± he cautioned kindly. I smiled and nodded, but returned immediately to my work. By the time I finished, darkness had fallenpletely. The building was eerily silent, with only the asional hum of the air conditioning system breaking the quiet. I nced at my watch¨Cnearly ten o¡¯clock. My stomach growled, reminding me I hadn¡¯t eaten since breakfast. After tidying my desk and organizing the files for tomorrow, I turned off the lights, locked the office, and headed out into the night. The cool evening air felt refreshing after hours in the climate¨Ccontrolled building. I started walking toward my apartment, calcting it would take about ten minutes on foot. My phone rang, Connor¡¯s name lighting up the screen. ¡°Hello?¡± I answered, my voice betraying my fatigue. ¡°Livvy, have you gone home?¡± Connor¡¯s gentle voice came through clearly. ¡°Just got off work, on my way,¡± I replied honestly. ¡°Have you eaten?¡± he asked, concern evident in his tone. Chapter 31 Encounter at t.. I sighed. ¡°Not yet. I¡¯ll order takeout when I get home.¡± +8 Points > A warm chuckle filtered through the phone. ¡°Miss Winters, your delivery is already on its way.¡± I blinked in confusion. ¡°You ordered food for me?¡± ¡°Delivery boy Rivers himself, arriving in fifteen minutes at yourpound gate,¡± he replied, his voice softening further. I smiled despite my exhaustion. The timing would be perfect¨CI¡¯d reach my gate in about ten minutes. ¡°Did you put a tracker on me, Con?¡± I teased. ¡°You know invasion of privacy is illegal.¡± His voice dropped lower, taking on a seductive quality that made my heart skip. ¡°Then will Lawyer Winters arrest me? I¡¯m at your disposal.¡± Thosest four words-¡°at your disposal¡°-came out slow and deliberate, causing heat to rush to my cheeks. I coughed deliberately to hide my embarrassment. ¡°Ahem, you shouldn¡¯t talk and drive, it¡¯s dangerous.¡± Connor¡¯s light chuckle filtered through. ¡°Frank¡¯s driving.¡± I found myself speechless, amused by this yful side of him I rarely saw. We continued chatting easily as I approached my apartmentplex, my spirits lifting despite my exhaustion. ¡°I should be there in about five minutes,¡± I told him, smiling to myself. ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting,¡± he replied warmly. Suddenly, a cold male voice cut through the darkness. ¡°Olivia.¡± I stopped abruptly, my heart lurching in my chest. Following the sound, I spotted Ethan Grey standing under a tree, his tall figure partially hidden in shadow. The sight of him waiting there, silent and dangerous under the night sky, sent a chill down my spine. Comments M 259 Vote Whisper 54 < Chapter 31: Encounter at t¡­ 40 Points Chapter 31: Encounter at the Gate¨C2 ¡°I have to go now,¡± I said hurriedly into the phone before hanging up. I approached Ethan cautiously, maintaining a safe distance of about a meter. ¡°How did you find me here?¡± His lips curled into a sneer, his eyes glinting with menace. ¡°Hiding from me?¡± I frowned, irritation recing my initial shock. ¡°Why should I hide? I told you I was going home.¡± He took two aggressive steps forward, forcing me to retreat instinctively. This only seemed to deepen his irritation. ¡°You said you would go back to Riverdale for a while, but you never mentioned you wouldn¡¯t return to Harbor City,¡± he snapped. ¡°How long do you intend to throw this tantrum?¡± My patience, already thin from my long workday, evaporatedpletely. ¡°I¡¯m not making a scene. Ethan, we¡¯re over. Don¡¯t bother me again.¡± He scoffed coldly. ¡°We¡¯re over? Don¡¯t even think about it. This rtionship only ends when I say it ends.¡± I stared at him in disbelief, my expression darkening. ¡°Are you crazy? Don¡¯t you like Cassandra? Go find her. Why pester me?¡± His face rxed slightly, one eyebrow arching upward. ¡°Are you jealous?¡± Internally, I rolled my eyes, exasperated by his narcissism. ¡°Cassandra and I are just friends,¡± he insisted. ¡°Stop making trouble.¡± My lips curved into a mocking smile. ¡°Friends you sleep with?¡± His confident facade cracked momentarily, guilt flickering across his face. ¡°You¡¯re talking nonsense.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you sleep with her more than once since she returned?¡± I retorted sharply. ¡°I didn¡¯t say anything because 1 don¡¯t care anymore.¡± The words ¡°I don¡¯t care anymore¡± seemed to stab him unexpectedly. His chest visibly O < Chapter 31: Encounter at t¡­ tightened, a strange hurt crossing his features. +8 Points > ¡°You don¡¯t care?¡± he asked, his voice almost pitiful. ¡°But I do. I¡¯ve been thinking about you these days. Let¡¯s reconcile, Liv.¡± I regarded him coldly, full of disdain. His erratic mood swings¨Cone moment furious, the next pitiful¨Cbaffled mepletely. ¡°Impossible,¡± I stated, my tone frosty. Suddenly, Ethan¡¯s fragile calm snapped. ¡°Why!¡± he roared, his voice echoing in the quiet street. Passing strangers turned to stare, their curious looks making me feel deeply embarrassed. ¡°Can you stop shouting at the gate like a madman?¡± I hissed. ¡°If you don¡¯t mind humiliating yourself, I do.¡± Without warning, Ethan grabbed my wrist, his grip painfully tight. ¡°Come back with me, Liv!¡± I tried to wrench free. ¡°Let me go!¡± But his grip was too strong, his fingers digging into my skin. My eyes narrowed dangerously. ¡°If you don¡¯t let go, I won¡¯t be polite,¡± I warned, preparing to use the self¨Cdefense techniques I¡¯d learned years ago. Ethan stubbornly refused, clutching my wrist with one hand while his other moved to grasp my nape. ¡°I miss you so much,¡± he muttered, trying to force his lips toward mine. I braced myself to counterattack, muscles tensing for the strike I was about to deliver. ¡°Let her go!¡± The fierce shout pierced the night air. In the blink of an eye, Ethan was sent flying through the air as if hit by a sudden gust of wind. I stood utterly stunned, unable to process what had just happened. Standing protectively before me, still holding a thermal container in one hand, was O < < Chapter 31: Encounter at t Connor Rivers. His ice¨Cblue eyes were sharp with concern as they scanned my face. ¡°Livvy, are you okay?¡± he asked, his voice gentle yet urgent. I swallowed nervously, still in shock. ¡°Con, how did you do that?¡± Comments Content originallyes from F¦Énd£Îovel Whisper 55 Chapter 32: Territorial Confrontation¨C1 Chapter 32: Territorial Confrontation (Ethan¡¯s POV) 40 Ponts 2 Pain exploded through my body as I flew through the air. Three meters up, then sliding another meter across the rough pavement. The impact knocked the wind from my lungs. ¡°f**k!¡± I cursed, struggling to get to my feet. My blue eyes darkened with murderous rage as I red at the man who had kicked me. Connor Rivers. The Alpha from Riverdale. What the hell was he doing here with Olivia? Then I spotted it¨Cthe watch on his wrist. My blood ran cold as I recognized the Timber Wolf Chronograph. I¡¯d seen Olivia pack it in her suitcase before she left Harbor City. The expensive timepiece I¡¯d assumed was for some rtive. It was a gift for him. For this man. My stomach twisted into knots as Olivia stepped forward and took Connor¡¯s hand. Her face was calm, emotionless. ¡°Didn¡¯t you ask me why there¡¯s no chance for us to get back together?¡± she said coolly. ¡°Now I¡¯ll tell you. This is my fianc¨¦. So, can you get lost now?¡± Fianc¨¦? The word hit me like another physical blow. ¡°No, no!¡± I felt my eyes burning, a strange pressure building behind them. ¡°You are lying, Olivia. You must be lying.¡± Connor¡¯s lips curled with undisguised disdain. His ice¨Cblue eyes were cold as he looked down at me. ¡°?***t,¡± he muttered, The humiliation burned through me, but I didn¡¯t care. I staggered forward a few steps, my voice hoarse with desperation. ¡°Liv, please, stop making trouble, back with me, okay?¡± ||| O < Chapter 32 Territorial Co¡­. 40 Points X Connor immediately shifted, cing his body between Olivia and me. His protective stance was unmistakable. ¡°Get lost,¡± he said, his tone as icy as a winter gale. Rage surged through me. Who was he to stand between us? ¡°Get out of the way!¡± I barked. ¡°This is between me and her. She is mine, you-¡± Before I could finish, his fist smashed into my face with supernatural speed. Pain exploded across my cheek, and I felt the skin bruise instantly. ¡°f**k your mother!¡± I cursed, lunging toward him. Connor calmly set down the thermal container he¡¯d been holding. With deliberate precision, he removed his tie and stepped forward. What followed was nothing short of humiliating. His moves were practiced, precise, and ruthless. Each strike connected with painful uracy. I tried to fight back, but he was too fast, too strong. It was like fighting a hurricane. Through my pain, I saw Olivia watching. She stood with her arms crossed, her amber eyes gleaming in the moonlight. She looked¡­ amused. Like she was enjoying the spectacle of my beating. ¡°Impressive,¡± I heard her mutter. ¡°I¡¯ll have to ask him to teach me those moves someday.¡± Another blownded on my ribs. I doubled over, gasping. ¡°Alright, alright, that¡¯s enough,¡± Olivia finally said. ¡°I haven¡¯t had dinner yet.¡± Connor stopped immediately. He picked up the thermal container and gently ruffled her honey¨Cbrown hair. His touch was possessive yet tender. ¡°Go eat before it gets cold,¡± he said softly. Without sparing me a single nce, Olivia took the container and walked into her apartment building. I copsed on the ground, staring numbly at the starry sky overhead. Pain spread through my chest like countless needles, but it wasn¡¯t from the beating. 111 < Chapter 32 Territorial Co¡­ Only now did I fully realize¨COlivia had truly left me. + Points > She was holding another man¡¯s hand, looking only at him with those gentle eyes that once were reserved for me. She was utterly indifferent to my injuries, my humiliation. The physical pain was nothingpared to the agony in my heart. I felt something wet slide from the corner of my eye into my hair. Tears. I was crying as my body struggled to heal my physical wounds. But nothing could heal the wound in my soul. (Connor¡¯s POV) I watched the pathetic disy of the Grey pack heir lying on the ground. His face was a mess of bruises, blood trickling from his split lip. Raymond Brooks approached quietly from where he¡¯d been waiting with the car. ¡°Mr. Rivers, should I call for medical assistance for him?¡± he asked in a low voice. I nced disdainfully at the motionless Ethan and coldly wiped my hands on a handkerchief. ¡°Call it,¡± I said. ¡°If he dies at Livvy¡¯s doorstep, it would be such a bad omen for our engagement.¡± (Cassandra¡¯s POV) ¡°What do you mean Ethan¡¯s in the hospital?¡± I clutched my phone tighter, my heart racing. I hade with Ethan to Riverdale, nning to meet some old girlfriends while he handled his ¡°business.¡± Now Sophie was telling me he¡¯d been beaten and hospitalized. ¡°They say he got into a fight and lost badly,¡± Sophie¡¯s voice crackled through the phone. ¡°He¡¯s at Riverdale M¨¦morial.¡± I ended the call and rushed to the hospital, my mind racing with terrible scenarios. Who would dare attack an Alpha heir? O Vote 259 Read full story at f?i?n?d?n?o?v?e?l? Whisper 56 < Chapter 32. Territorial Co¡­ +8 Points > Chapter 32: Territorial Confrontation¨C2 When I finally found his room, I gasped in horror. His face was swollen beyond recognition, purple bruises covering every inch of visible skin. ??? ????? ???????s ??? ?????s??? ?? Find_Novel(. ¡°Ethan, what happened to you?¡± I sobbed, my green¨Cgold eyes filling with tears. He didn¡¯t answer. He just stared out the window, his expression one of utter despair. ¡°Who beat you? Did you call the police?¡± I choked out between sobs. Still nothing. I kept crying, babbling about how worried I was, how we needed to report this, how his mother needed to know. ¡°Could you just leave me alone?¡± he finally snapped, his voice hoarse. I wiped my tears, trying topose myself. ¡°I want to stay and take care of you.¡± ¡°No need,¡± he rejected coldly. ¡°I hired a nurse. You go.¡°. His dismissal hurt, but I could see something was deeply wrong. This wasn¡¯t just about physical pain. Something had broken inside him. (Ethan¡¯s POV) I didn¡¯t want to see Cassandra. Not now. Not when all I could think about was Olivia. Ever since she left, I¡¯d been haunted by thoughts of her day and night. The irony was painful¨Conly after losing her did I realize who I truly loved. I recalled how cruelly I had rejected her before. ¡°I will never marry you,¡± I had told her coldly. What if I offered marriage now? Would shee back? Would she be willing to be Mrs. Grey? A glimmer of hope flickered in my eyes amid the darkness of my hospital room. I would win her back. I had to. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I sat across from Connor at my small dining table, the thermal container between us. When I opened it, a rich aroma wafted out that made my mouth water instantly. < Chapter 32 Territorial Co¡­ ¡°Wow, it smells amazing,¡± I said, inhaling deeply. +8 Points> Inside were braised ribs and winter melon soup, both looking perfectly prepared. My amber eyes widened with surprise and joy. ¡°How did you know I love these?¡± I asked, looking up at him. Connor¡¯s lips tightened slightly, his ice¨Cblue eyes watching me intently. ¡°Try them.¡± I hesitated, sensing his mood had shifted. ¡°Are you upset?¡± His dark gaze locked onto mine, deep and unreadable. ¡°What do you think?¡± My eyes filled with confusion and a hint of grievance. ¡°I don¡¯t know how he found this ce. I never gave him the address.¡± Connor just gave a nomittal grunt, his jaw tight. I softened my tone, making my voice sweet and pleading. ¡°Don¡¯t be angry, Con.¡± He sighed resignedly, his expression softening slightly. ¡°How could I be angry with you?¡± ¡°Then why do you look unhappy?¡± I pressed. ¡°I saw him touch your hand,¡± he said tly. ¡°Hmm?¡± My eyes widened with surprise. ¡°Are you¡­ jealous?¡± ¡°Eat before it gets cold,¡± he said quickly, avoiding my gaze. I couldn¡¯t help but giggle mischievously. ¡°You really are jealous. And so fierce, you kicked him flying.¡± His face darkened immediately. ¡°Are you feeling sorry for him?¡± ¡°No, no, of course not,¡± I quickly denied. Then, remembering how effortlessly he had handled Ethan, I added excitedly, ¡°Your moves just now were awesome! Can you teach me someday? Next time I meet some thugs, I want to beat them up like that.¡± A trace of pain shed in his eyes. I knew he was thinking about the assault I¡¯d experienced before. ¡°Livvy, let me hire two bodyguards for you,¡± he said seriously. < Chapter 32. Territorial Co¡­ +8 Points I refused immediately. ¡°No need. I still have to work, and having bodyguards would be so awkward.¡± He didn¡¯t push the issue, understanding my need for independence. ¡°Alright, eat up. I¡¯ll teach you sometime.¡± I smiled gratefully and turned my attention to the food. The soup was rich and vorful, with a familiar taste I couldn¡¯t quite ce. Then I bit into the ribs. The vor exploded in my mouth, triggering a flood of memories. My eyes widened in shock, suddenly brimming with tears. ¡°This tastes exactly like my mother¡¯s cooking¡­¡± My voice choked, trembling with emotion. ¡°Con, where did you buy it?¡± Comments Whisper 57 < Chapter 33 Fang and Chapter 33: Fang and w¨C1 Chapter 33: Fang and w (Connor¡¯s POV) + Points? ¡°Want to know? After work tomorrow, I¡¯lle pick you up and take you somewhere.¡± with I teased Olivia with a mysterious smile, enjoying the way her amber eyes lit up curiosity. She leaned forward, her honey¨Cbrown hair falling in soft waves around her face. ¡°Where are you taking me?¡± I tapped her nose gently. ¡°It¡¯s a surprise.¡± The way she pouted made my wolf stir possessively inside me. I¡¯d never felt this way about anyone before¨Cthis overwhelming need to protect, to provide, to im. My wolf, Adam, recognized her as our mate long before I consciously admitted it to myself. Yet as life often goes, ns could never keep pace with sudden changes. The following day, Olivia spent the entire morning escorting a client to the Northern Territory Benefits Office for a work injury certification, not returning by car service until close to noon. (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°What¡¯s going on up ahead? So many people,¡± the driver muttered, slowing the car. ¡°Miss, you¡¯d better get off here. Can¡¯t drive further, but it¡¯s just a short walk.¡± I peered anxiously through the windshield. The normally quiet street leading to Moow Legal Services was jam¨Cpacked with a chaotic crowd. Police vehicles shed their lights, and people were gesturing wildly. ¡°That¡¯s fine,¡± I said, quickly paying the fare. ¡°Thank you.¡± As I stepped out of the car, an uneasy premonition gripped me. My wolf stirred restlessly beneath my skin, sensing danger in the air. I walked briskly toward the crowd, my heart beating faster with each step. Themotion centered around my workce. People were pointing at the building, O some covering their mouths in horror. ¡°What happened?¡± I asked a woman standing nearby. She shook her head, eyes wide. ¡°Something terrible inside thew firm. Police just arrived.¡± My heart tightened as I pushed forward through the crowd. Whatever was happening, my colleagues were in there. Suddenly, shrill screams erupted from the entrance. The onlookers scattered like frightened prey, plunging the street into chaos. A terrified woman in a business suit collided with me, her face pale with fear. ¡°I¡¯m sorry,¡± she gasped, trying to flee again. I grabbed her arm. ¡°What happened up there?¡± The woman¡¯s voice trembled. ¡°Don¡¯t go! A rogue wolf¡¯s gone crazy in thew firm, attacking people with a silver dagger! You better run!¡± She bolted away, leaving me rooted to the spot. A silver dagger¨Cthe most dangerous weapon against our kind. Silver prevented our healing abilities, making wounds potentially fatal. Instead of running away, I sprinted straight toward thew firm. My colleagues were in danger. My wolf pushed me forward, urging me to protect my packmates. As I reached the entrance, a cacophony of ferocious male growls, women¡¯s sobs, and shrieks filled my ears. The sight before me struck like a nightmare. Blood pooled beneath Gregory Thompson¨Cmy office colleague¨Cwhoy writhing with a bleeding wound at his waist. The silver was preventing his werewolf healing from activating. His face was contorted in agony, his normally kind eyes now zed with pain. Not far away, a frenzied man brandished a silver dagger wildly. His eyes were bloodshot with a faint amber glow¨Ca clear sign of an omega wolf in human form. His clothes were disheveled, his face twisted in rage. ¡°f**k all you damned packwyers!¡± he roared, spittle flying from his mouth. ¡°Since you want to ruin me, I¡¯ll take you all to hell with me!¡± ???s ??????? ?s ?????? ?? Find_Novel(. O < Chapter 33 Fang and ¡­ His voice cracked with despair and rage. ¡°I got nothing left to lose. A couple more dead wolves mean nothing!¡± +8 Points Like a rabid beast, he lunged at a woman in heels¨CValerie Pierce from the corporatew department. She screamed hysterically, backing away. ¡°Help! Please, I didn¡¯t handle your case! Don¡¯t kill me!¡± The rogue wolf¨CDerek Harlow, ording to the name tag still clipped to his jacket- no longer seemed to care who had wronged him. He had already stabbed Gregory, who had likely been thewyer on his case. Now he was consumed by blind bloodlust, attacking anyone in sight. Valerie, desperate, tried to hide among her colleagues, hoping to divert the madman¡¯s attention. No one dared intervene after witnessing Gregory¡¯s copse; the entire office was paralyzed by terror, their wolves cowering within rather than rising to fight against the silver weapon. Seeing Derek closing in on Valerie, my instincts kicked in. I kicked off my high heels, flung aside my ck zer, and shot forward with supernatural speed, my wolf Mending me strength. Just as Derek prepared to stab, Valerie grabbed the trembling intern Jade Mitchell from beside her, shoving her forward as a human shield. Jade¡¯s face was deathly pale, tears streaming down in terror. She squeezed her eyes shut, convinced this was the end, her submissive beta nature freezing her in ce. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > C Vote 259 ||| Whisper 58 Chapter 33: Fang and w¨C2 +8 Points > But the expected agony never came. Instead, gasps echoed through the room. Jade opened her eyes shakily and witnessed what was happening. I had confronted the silver dagger¨Cwielding attacker head¨Con, my wolf¡¯s reflexes fully engaged. Derek, lost in madness, iled his de without skill or caution. I dodged deftly, my movements fluid and precise, avoiding fatal strikes. Yet his de still caught my arm, shing through my white shirt sleeve. Blood instantly soaked the fabric, and pain bit into me as the silver burned my flesh, temporarily preventing my healing. My amber eyes hardened with determination. I wouldn¡¯t let him hurt anyone else. ¡°You f*****g want to die?!¡± Derek roared, charging again. I sidestepped with supernatural grace and seized his wrist in a sh, twisting viciously. A sickening c***k sounded, followed by Derek¡¯s scream of agony. The silver dagger ttered to the ground. A male colleague swiftly kicked the de away and picked it up, careful to avoid touching the silver directly. Disarmed, the attacker was no match for my enhanced strength. Inded a flurry of punches to his face, then a fierce kick to his head, sending him reeling. Before he could recover, I executed a swiftbination of kicks and a shoulder throw, smashing him onto the floor. The entire office looked on, stunned by my ferocity. The quiet, gracefulwyer they knew had transformed into a force of raw power and courage that hinted at my alpha bloodline. Momentster, the pack security forces and medical team arrived, hauling away the subdued rogue and rushing Gregory to the emergency healing center. The fear¨Cstricken employees finally dared to gather around me, their faces still pale and eyes wide with shock. Jade¡¯s cheeks were wet with tears, her voice trembling. ¡°Olivia¡­I thought I was going to die¡­ Thank you, thank you for saving me.¡± Even the usuallyposed Heather Phillips was pale. ¡°Ten years in this profession, III ¤ë r < Chapter 33. Fang and ¡­. 40 Points but I¡¯ve never faced anything like this. Being a packwyer really is a dangerous job.¡± Valerie, still shaken, fretted, ¡°Will Gregory¡­ survive?¡± Heather¡¯s tone was tight. ¡°He will be fine. The silver didn¡¯t prate too deeply.¡± Male colleagues now looked at me with awe, their wolves instinctively showing respect. ¡°Olivia, I never knew you had such fighting skills. That was incredible!¡± one said. Another chimed in. ¡°Thank you for saving all of us.¡± Someone elseughed nervously. ¡°Calling you gentle was my biggest mistake. You fight like a true Alpha¡¯s daughter.¡± Ignoring their praise, I fixed my icy gaze on Valerie. ¡°Just now, did you try to use Jade Readplete version only at F¦ÉndNovel as a human shield?¡± Valerie averted her eyes guiltily, her wolf submitting involuntarily to my dominant presence. ¡°I¡­ I was just trying to protect myself¡­¡± But everyone had witnessed her pushing the terrified intern forward. Their looks turned disdainful, pack loyalty demanding better. My tone was frosty. ¡°Some ¡®emergency self¨Cdefense.¡® Aren¡¯t you a packwyer? Don¡¯t you know that other wolves¡® lives can¡¯t be sacrificed to protect your own?¡± My fierce re cut like knives, my wolf¡¯s anger barely contained. ¡°You should be grateful I was here. If Jade died, you¡¯d be facing murder charges and pack expulsion.¡± Ashamed and pale, Valerie bit her lip in silence, her wolf cowering within. Jade gently interrupted, ¡°Olivia, your arm is still bleeding from the silver. Please go to the healing center.¡± I nced down at my blood¨Csoaked sleeve, pain and exhaustion dulling my anger as the silver continued to prevent my natural healing. Without another word to Valerie, I turned and left for treatment. After having my wound cleaned with moonlight herb solution and bandaged to neutralize the silver¡¯s effects, I stepped into the corridor to handle the paperwork and collect healing salves. ||| O r Chapter 33 Fang and ¡­ + Printe Just then, an icy voice cut through the air: ¡°Olivia Winters? What are you doing here?¡± It was Cassandra Evans, her face tight and unfriendly, crossing my path with unmistakable hostility, her wolf¡¯s scent radiating aggression. Watch Ads (0/20) > E Vote ||| Whisper 59 Chapter 34: Silver Wounds and Legal Politics Chapter 34: Silver Wounds and Legal Politics (Olivia¡¯s POV) I spotted them immediately as I walked down the hospital corridor. Ethan Grey and Cassandra Evans stood near the reception desk, their backs to me. Even from behind, I recognized Ethan¡¯s broad shoulders and Cassandra¡¯s elegant posture. The realization hit me quickly ¨C Ethan must be hospitalized here too. After the beating Connor gave himst night, he¡¯d likely be bedridden for at least two weeks. I wasn¡¯t surprised to see Cassandra with him. These days, wherever Ethan went, she followed like a shadow. He clearly couldn¡¯t bear to leave her behind in Harbor City, even for medical treatment. I had no desire for another confrontation. No energy for pointless squabbling. So I simply changed direction, taking a longer route to avoid them. As I passed by at a distance, I felt Cassandra¡¯s gaze lock onto me. Though I didn¡¯t look back, I could almost feel the daggers she was staring into my retreating figure. ¡°Olivia Winters, you haunt me like a lingering ghost,¡± she must be thinking. I knew her well enough to guess her thoughts. She¡¯d be wondering why Ethan had rushed to Riverdale from Harbor City. Was it because of me? Was his injury connected to me somehow? Her jealousy would be twisting inside her like a knife. Let her wonder. I had my own problems to deal with. My phone rang as I approached the hospital exit. Connor¡¯s name shed on the screen. ¡°Livvy,¡± his deep voice carried clear concern. ¡°I just saw the news that someone caused trouble at your firm, and some were stabbed. Are you alright? Where are you? I¡¯lle find you.¡± I shifted the bag of medicine to my other hand. ¡°I¡¯m fine. Just at the hospital, about to go home.¡± ¡°Were you hurt?¡± His voice grew more urgent. ¡°Which hospital are you at?¡± ¨C r < Chapter 34 Silver Wounds¡­ ¡°Just a small cut on my arm,¡± I reassured him. ¡°Superficial. Will heal in a few days.¡± ¡°Which hospital, Livvy?¡± Connor insisted, his tone leaving no room for evasion. I sighed and gave him the address. There was no point arguing with him when he used that voice. I settled into a chair in the hospital lobby to wait. Twenty minutester, Connor strode through the automatic doors, his tall figuremanding attention from everyone in the vicinity. His ice¨Cblue eyes immediately found me, then zeroed in on my bandaged arm. Pain and distress shed across his face. ¡°Such a serious injury,¡± he murmured, gently taking my arm to examine the bandage. I could see him imagining how it must have looked before treatment. If he¡¯d seen my blood¨Csoaked sleeve earlier, his reaction would have been even more intense. ¡°I¡¯ll assign you bodyguards,¡± he said resolutely. ¡°Being awyer is dangerous, and I don¡¯t want this happening again. Don¡¯t refuse, Livvy.¡± Thesitated. Bodyguards seemed excessive, but the concern in his eyes made me nod reluctantly. Connor¡¯s hand enveloped mine, his touch sending unexpected warmth through me. ¡°I¡¯ll choose two skilled bodyguards for you.¡± ¡°One is enough,¡± I reasoned. ¡°Today was unusual. Normally it¡¯s not that dangerous.¡± ¡°Even so, one¡¯s not enough,¡± he countered firmly. I frowned, thinking about the practicalities. ¡°It might be inconvenient at work. Having bodyguards following me around the office¡­¡± Connor¡¯s expression turned thoughtful. ¡°I¡¯ll speak to Moow¡¯s owner, set up a security room at the office. Your bodyguards can stay disguised as security personnel.¡± That made sense. After today¡¯s bloody incident, increased security would benefit everyone. ¡°Alright,¡± I agreed, ¡°Thank you.¡± = O r 215 ? O J < Chapter 34 Silver Wounds +8 Points > After enduring these days of emotional torture and physical recovery, I was finally being discharged. Since Olivia refused toe to me, I would go to her. I needed to see her face¨Cto¨Cface, to make her understand. On discharge day, I led the way out of the hospital, with Parker Davis and Cassandra nking me. My body still ached, but I pushed through the pain. As we walked to the parking lot, I turned to Parker. ¡°Has everything been arranged with Silverridge Pack?¡± ¡°Yes,¡± Parker replied efficiently. ¡°Next Friday at 8 pm, Alexander will attend a gathering, and I¡¯ve secured an invitation.¡± I slid into the car, wincing slightly as my bruised ribs protested. Parker took the passenger seat. ¡°What kind of gathering?¡± I asked, my mind already working through potential strategies. ¡°It¡¯s a wee and debut ceremony for Alexander Winters¡® cousin, who¡¯s just returned to Riverdale,¡± Parker exined. ¡°Alexander will formally introduce her to his businesswork.¡± In the backseat, Cassandra affectionately linked her arm through mine. I quietly pulled away, leaving her face stiff with awkward rejection. I knew she was confused. Back in Harbor City, I had been passionate and indulgent with her. Now, in Riverdale, I couldn¡¯t bear even a simple touch. ¡°Ethan, what¡¯s wrong with you¡­¡± she began, her voice tinged with hurt. ¡°How old is Alexander¡¯s cousin?¡± I interrupted coldly, ignoring her question Parker shifted ufortably, sensing the tension. ¡°In her twenties, quite young.¡± ¡°Any detailed information?¡± I pressed. ¡°Sorry, Mr. Grey, I couldn¡¯t find specifics,¡± Parker admitted. ¡°Clearly, Mr. Winters protects her privacy well.¡± That made sense. A well¨Cshielded heiress¡¯s details wouldn¡¯t be easy to uncover. 111 O Updates are released by findnovel < Chapter 34. Silver Wounds¡­ +8 Points > ¡°I did hear she¡¯ll be engaged in half a month,¡± Parker added, ¡°and Alexander values her greatly. If you prepare a generous engagement gift, she might be pleased, and it would make Alexander more agreeable to our proposition.¡± I pondered this silently. It was a clever angle. Winning over a young woman would be far easier than dealing with Alexander directly¨Ca new approach for my business maneuvering, even as my personal lifey in tatters. With a well¨Cchosen engagement gift, perhaps I could open a back door via Alexander¡¯s beloved cousin. After all, how difficult could it be to sway a twenty¨Csomething woman¡¯s heart? Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 O Whisper 60 Chapter 35: Jealousy¡¯s Madness¨C1 Chapter 35: Jealousy¡¯s Madness (Ethan¡¯s POV) ¡°Alpha Grey, return to the hotel?¡± Raymond Brooks asked, his eyes meeting mine in the rearview mirror. I considered for a moment, my mind racing with possibilities. ¡°Stop at the Lunar Jewelers entrance ahead.¡± Cassandra immediately perked up beside me, her green¨Cgold eyes lighting with excitement. She leaned closer, her perfume invading my space. ¡°Ethan, are you picking a gift for Alpha Winters¡® cousin? I¡¯ll go with you,¡± she offered warmly. ¡°We¡¯re the same age so I know what young women like.¡± The car pulled smoothly to the curb outside the gleaming storefront of Lunar Jewelers. Instead of responding to her suggestion, I turned to her, my voice devoid of emotion. ¡°Get out.¡± Cassandra blinked in confusion but obediently stepped out of the vehicle. She stood on the sidewalk, a practiced smile fixed on her face as she waited for me to join her. I didn¡¯t move. Instead, I nodded to Raymond who promptly closed the door and elerated away, leaving Cassandra standing alone, ber smile frozen and her eyes widening with shock as we disappeared into traffic. The image of her stunned face in the side mirror gave me a moment¡¯s satisfaction. It wasn¡¯t enough to ease the constant ache in my chest, but it was something. Parker Davis shifted ufortably beside me. He¡¯d witnessed the entire cold Content originallyes from exchange. ¡°Sir, that was rather¡­¡± he began cautiously. ¡°You can get out at the next corner,¡± I cut him off. Parker fell silent, knowing better than to argue. When Raymond stopped at the next ||| O r slipping, my wolf pushing against my ||| O < Chapter 35: Jealousy¡¯s Ma¡­ +8 Points) skin, demanding release. ¡°Move,¡± I growled, taking a threatening step forward. The guard stood his ground, reaching for his radio. ¡°Sir, I can¡¯t let you in without proper identification.¡± I tried to push past him, but he firmly grabbed my arm. ¡°If you keep this up, I¡¯ll call security!¡± Something broke inside me. All I could see was Olivia and Connor together in her apartment. Their bodies tangled together. His hands on her skin. His lips on hers. My vision blurred with rage. Three years I had dated her. Three years, and I had never trulymitted. Now another man was iming what I had foolishly taken for granted. ¡°Let me in!¡± I roared, my eyes reddening with fury. When the guard didn¡¯t move, I snapped. My fist connected with his face before I could stop myself. He staggered back, blood trickling from his nose. rms red. More security personnel appeared, surrounding me. I fought like a man possessed, but there were too many. Despite my Alpha strength, they overwhelmed me, pinning me to the ground. Thest thing I saw before they dragged me away was the lights of Olivia¡¯s building, knowing she was inside with him. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I leaned against the kitchen doorway, arms crossed, watching Connor move confidently around my small kitchen. He wore an apron over his expensive clothes, lookingpletely at ease as he chopped vegetables. Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 61 Chapter 35: Jealousy¡¯s Madness¨C2 ¡°Never thought the heir of the Rivers family could cook,¡± I teased, unable to hide my smile. Connor nced over his shoulder, his ice¨Cblue eyes warm with amusement. He rinsed the vegetables unhurriedly. ¡°Remember that healing broth I brought youst time? The one you asked where I bought it?¡± he asked. ¡°I made it myself.¡± My eyebrows shot up in genuine surprise. ¡°You cooked that? Why did it taste exactly like my mother¡¯s cooking from years ago?¡± Connor¡¯s expression softened. ¡°I secretly learned it from Sarah back when I used to I shook my head, skeptical. ¡°Impossible. You only came to our house a handful of times before my mother passed away. How could you have learned everything?¡± Instead of arguing, Connor simply continued his work, slicing celery with practiced precision and marinating beef. After a moment, he changed the subject. ¡°Remember I promised to take you somewhere? That day you were hurt so we didn¡¯t go,¡± he said. ¡°Tomorrow, I¡¯ll take you.¡± I blinked, momentarily distracted. ¡°And this has something to do with your cooking skills?¡± ¡°Yes, it does,¡± he answered with a mysterious smile. ¡°Alright,¡± I agreed, my curiosity piqued. Soon, the kitchen filled with delicious aromas. Connor served two dishes and a soup: celery stir¨Cfried with beef, herb¨Cscrambled eggs, and winter melon soup. I rarely ate much in the evenings, but tonight was different. The familiar vors reminded me so much of my mother¡¯s cooking that I found myself finishing an entire bowl of rice. Together, we cleared every te. When I stood to wash the dishes, Connor gently caught my wrist. ¡°Sit down. I¡¯ll handle it.¡± O I couldn¡¯t resist teasing him. ¡°Wow, Connor, you¡¯re so virtuous and gentle. Should I marry you and bring you home?¡± He chuckled, reaching out to flick my forehead lightly. ¡°No, I¡¯ll marry you.¡± The simple statement sent an unexpected warmth through me. My wolf, Cora, stirred contentedly inside me. After tidying the kitchen, Connor prepared to leave. I noticed with a strange disappointment that he made no attempt to stay the night. I leaned against the doorframe, watching him gather his things. A thought suddenly struck me: why didn¡¯t he want to stay? Did he not find me attractive? I nced down at my own figure reflexively. I was curvy and alluring enough, surely? Connor caught my distracted look and smiled knowingly. ¡°What are you thinking about, looking so deep in thought?¡± I cleared my throat awkwardly. ¡°Nothing. Drive safe.¡± ¡°See you tomorrow,¡± he said softly. He even took out the trash on his way out. I watched his calm, broad¨Cshouldered figure fade away down the hallway. A secret smile yed on my lips. He¡¯s so upright, it¡¯s almost wicked¨Cdoesn¡¯t even have a single inappropriate thought. (Ethan¡¯s POV) The harsh fluorescent lights of the police station made my head pound. I sat on a hard bench, hands cuffed, surrounded by the stench of cheap coffee and desperation. I had nearly been detained for assault, but Jason Mitchell had rushed over, paid a hefty fine, and somehow managed to get me released. When we finally emerged from the station, it was nearly 4 a.m. Jason looked utterly exhausted and miserable. I knew why¨Cearlier that night, he¡¯d finally had a rare moment with his girlfriend after work, only for my urgent call to drag him away before any intimacy could happen. ? < < Chapter 35 Jealousy¡¯s Ma. +8 Points ¡°She¡¯s threatening to break up,¡± he muttered, running a hand through his disheveled hair. ¡°Says she can¡¯tpete with your emergencies.¡± Guilt added itself to the cocktail of negative emotions swirling inside me. I had ruined yet another rtionship tonight. Jason sighed deeply as he drove us away from the station. ¡°Ethan, where to now?¡± I was drained, both physically and mentally. ¡°Back to the hotel.¡± The drive passed in silence. When we arrived, Jason didn¡¯te up. He simply nodded goodbye, his eyes reflecting his own personal disappointment. I entered my empty suite and switched on the lights. The vast room felt deathly silent, devoid of warmth orfort. I walked to the window and lit a cigarette, inhaling sharply. The smoke scorched my lungs, but I weed the pain. It was a distraction from the images that wouldn¡¯t leave my mind. The room felt wrong. There were no antique porcin vases that Olivia loved to collect. No fresh flowers arranged just so. No healing herbs stocked in the fridge for my digestive issues. No cute little trinkets or pastel curtains that she favored. I closed my eyes, but that only made it worse. Behind my eyelids, I saw them together. Olivia and Connor. Bodies entwined. Limbs wrapped around each other. Her soft sighs meant for him instead of me. ¡°Alpha Grey, return to the hotel?¡± Raymond had asked earlier. I had thought for a moment and said, ¡°Stop at the Lunar Jewelers entrance ahead.¡± Each vivid tormenting image stabbed my heart anew. Beforeing to Riverdale, I had considered many things, but never the possibility that Olivia might already be with another man. 111 Watch Ads (0/20) > O Vote This content belongs to ?ovelFind 259 Whisper 62 < Chapter 36: Visit to the Pa¡­. +8 Points > Chapter 36: Visit to the Past¨C1 Chapter 36: Visit to the Past (Olivia¡¯s POV) I woke to golden sunlight streaming through my curtains, the autumn breeze carrying a crisp freshness through my half¨Copen window. After a simple breakfast of toast and coffee, I stood before my closet, contemting what to wear for my outing with Connor. I finally selected a ck velvet long¨Csleeved vintage gown that hugged my curves perfectly. I let my honey¨Cbrown hair cascade in natural waves over my shoulders. Applying a bright red lipstick, I studied my reflection. The stark contrast between the crimson lips and ck dress highlighted my features¨Cluminous amber eyes, high nose bridge, thick brows, and almond¨Cshaped eyes. Thebination lent my appearance a sharp, aggressive brilliance. Satisfied, I grabbed my purse and headed downstairs. Connor was already waiting, leaning casually against his ck SUV, phone pressed to his ear. His tall figuremanded attention even in simple dark jeans and a navy sweater. When he spotted me approaching, his ice¨Cblue eyes lit up momentarily. He quickly ended his call and slipped the phone into his pocket. ¡°This look really suits you today,¡± he said, his voice warm with appreciation. I smiled, pleased by his reaction. ¡°Thank you.¡± He opened the passenger door for me, and I slid in, breathing in the familiar scent of leather and his subtle cologne. ¡°Where are we going?¡± I asked as he settled into the driver¡¯s seat. His lips curved into a mysterious smile. ¡°You¡¯ll see soon.¡± I noticed Frank Langley was absent today. Connor was driving himself, which was unusual for the heir of the Rivers pack. O < Chapter 36 Visit to the Pa +8 Points) We left the bustling city center behind, the urbanndscape gradually giving way to expansive golden fields that shimmered beneath the cloudless blue sky. I rolled my window down halfway, breathing in the cool wind scented faintly with wild moonflowers. Closing my eyes, I savored the moment¨Cthe gentle rumble of the engine, the whisper of wind through my hair, and Connor¡¯s steady presence beside me. After about twenty minutes along winding cement paths, the car slowed. I opened my eyes to see a modest rural cabin nestled among trees, smoke curlingzily from its chimney. Connor parked and turned to me with a gentle smile. ¡°We¡¯re here.¡± Curiosity piqued, I stepped out of the car, smoothing my dress. The air here was fresher, carrying the scent of pine and earth. A middle¨Caged man with weathered skin and calloused hands emerged from the cabin. His eyes widened in surprise before crinkling with genuine pleasure. ¡°Young Master Rivers! What a pleasant surprise,¡± he eximed, approaching us with a warm smile. ¡°If I¡¯d known you wereing, I would have prepared something better.¡± Connor sped the man¡¯s hand firmly. ¡°Samuel, good to see you. How¡¯s your mother?¡± ¡°She¡¯s well, thank you,¡± Samuel replied, then turned to me with curious eyes. ¡°This is Olivia Winters,¡± Connor introduced me. Samuel¡¯s face brightened with recognition. ¡°Miss Winters? The daughter of Sarah Winters?¡± I blinked in surprise. How did this stranger know my mother? Samuel turned toward the cabin and called out, ¡°Ma! Ma¨CMiss Winters is here!¡± I nced at Connor, confusion evident in my expression. He simply squeezed my hand reassuringly, The cabin door creaked open, and an elderly, slightly plump woman emerged. Her steps were slow but determined, her eyes cloudy with age but shining with emotion. O < < Chapter 36 Visit to the Pa¡­ ¡°Is that Livvy?¡± she asked, her voice trembling. ¡°Let me look at you, child.¡± + Points> She approached, tears welling in her eyes as she studied my face. ¡°I held you when you were just a child. You have your mother¡¯s eyes.¡± Hearing my mother mentioned so tenderly by this stranger sent a wave of emotion through me. Suddenly, a distant memory surfaced¨Ca kind¨Cfaced woman in our kitchen,ughing with my mother as they prepared meals together. ¡°Grandma Dorothy?¡± I whispered, the childhood nicknameing naturally to my lips. She nodded, tears spilling down her wrinkled cheeks. ¡°Yes, child. It¡¯s been too long.¡± ¡°Grandma Dorothy, I came to see you,¡± I choked out, my own eyes filling with tears. She took my hands in her gnarled ones, pulling me gently toward the cabin. ¡°Come inside, dear. Samuel, go buy some good ingredients. I want to cook for our guests.¡± Samuel nodded and departed quickly. Dorothy led us into the cozy interior, which smelled of herbs and wood smoke. ¡°Sit, sit,¡± she urged, gesturing to a worn but clean sofa. ¡°Let me look at you properly.¡± Updates are released by ?ovelFind As Connor and I settled, Dorothy began reminiscing, her voice warm with nostalgia. ¡°Your mother was such a beautiful woman, inside and out. Did you know she was quite pampered as the Alpha¡¯s daughter? Never had to lift a finger.¡± I shook my head, eager to hear more about the woman I¡¯d lost too soon. Comments ?? Whisper 63 Chapter 36: Visit to the Past¨C2 ¡°But when she fell in love with your father,¡± Dorothy continued, ¡°she came to me and begged me to teach her cooking. Said she wanted to win his heart through his stomach.¡± She chuckled fondly. ¡°A proud Alpha¡¯s daughter, willing to learn cooking just for love.¡± This revtion stirredplicated feelings within me. As a child, I¡¯d believed my parents¡® love was deep and true. My father had fallen into a severe depression after my mother died from a rare wolfsbane poisoning. Yet he¡¯d remarried just two yearster¨Cto my mother¡¯s best friend, Natalie. ¡°Grandma Dorothy,¡± I asked quietly, ¡°do you know Natalie Winters?¡± Dorothy¡¯s brow furrowed in thought. ¡°Is she your mother¡¯s good friend? Yes, they were close ssmates in Riverdale University. They visited often together.¡± I swallowed hard. ¡°She is now my stepmother.¡± Dorothy paused, her cloudy eyes growing distant with memory. After a moment, she spoke softly. ¡°Before your mother passed, Natalie visited her many times in the hospital.¡± Get full chapters from Find¡ïNovel My heart clenched painfully. ¡°Sarah told your father and Natalie that if Richard were to remarry, she only trusted Natalie to care for her daughter,¡± Dorothy continued gently. ¡°Not any other woman. It was your mother¡¯s dying wish that Natalie be a mother figure to you, so you wouldn¡¯t grow up without maternal guidance.¡± The revtion hit me like a physical blow. My face paled as the implications sank in. All this time, what I¡¯d interpreted as betrayal had actually been my mother¡¯s final wish -that her beloved daughter would always have someone to love her as a mother should. Tears rimmed my eyes, myshes trembling with the effort of holding them back. The resentment I¡¯d harbored for years suddenly felt misced, leaving a hollow ache in its wake. ? = O ? < Chapter 36 Visit to the Pa¡­.. Quietly, Connor took my hand, his rough thumb gently stroking my palm in silentfort. I clung to his touch like an anchor in the storm of my emotions. Dorothy busied herself in the kitchen, tactfully giving me space to process this revtion. Soon, delicious aromas filled the small cabin. Foeta When lunch was served, the table wasden with dishes that looked and smelled exactly like the ones my mother used to make¨Cvenison stew with winter vegetables, herb¨Cinfused rice, and a special moonlight broth that brought back a flood of childhood memories. Not wanting to ruin the moment with my emotional turmoil, I forced a bright smile. ¡°This is amazing, Grandma Dorothy. It tastes exactly like my mother¡¯s cooking.¡± The old womanughed joyfully. ¡°You may not know, Livvy, but Connor alwayses here to learn cooking from me.¡± Surprised, I turned to Connor, my eyes still misty. ¡°Youe here to learn cooking?¡± He nodded, his ice¨Cblue eyes softening as they met mine. ¡°To cook for you.¡± ¡°But why?¡± I pressed, my voice tinged with confusion and a nasal note from holding back tears. Connor turned fully toward me, meeting my gaze earnestly. ¡°When your mother passed away, you refused to eat properly. I was worried.¡± Dorothy sighed, setting down her spoon. ¡°Those were sorrowful days. I was already retired due to illness, but I had gone to visit Sarah in the hospital. That¡¯s where I met young Connor.¡± She smiled fondly at him. ¡°He saw how Livvy was wasting away with grief, refusing to eat. So he came to me, asking to learn Sarah¡¯s recipes.¡± ¡°He was a quick learner,¡± Dorothy continued. ¡°Mastered them in no time, just to coax you to eat again.¡± I stared at Connor, stunned by this revtion. ¡°He even paid all my medical expenses,¡± Dorothy added. ¡°Called it his ¡®tuition fee.¡± Suddenly, fragments of memory clicked into ce¨CMartha bringing me meals after my mother¡¯s death, insisting they were special deliveries from the kitchen. The < Chapter 36: Visit to the Pa¡­ familiar taste that had coaxed me back from the brink of starvation. + Points > My amber eyes widened in shock as realization dawned. My voice trembled with disbelief: ¡°So, the meals Martha brought me after my mother passed away¡­ were actually cooked by you?¡± ¡°Yes,¡± Connor answered in his usual understated way. That single word resonated deeply in my heart, stirring a thousand waves of emotion. 2 Watch Ads (0/20) > Èý 259 M Vote Whisper 64 Chapter 37: The Auction and the Luna¡¯s Gift¨C1 Chapter 37: The Auction and the Luna¡¯s Gift (Ethan¡¯s POV) The crisp October air carried the scent of fallen leaves as I adjusted my charcoal suit, ensuring every detail was perfect. The tailored fabric entuated my broad shoulders, projecting themanding presence expected of the Grey pack heir. ¡°You look handsome today,¡± Cassandra purred, sliding her arm through mine. Her designer gown hugged her curves provocatively, drawing attention from several passing wolves. I barely acknowledged herpliment, my mind focused on the auction ahead. The Crescent Moon Auction House loomed before us, its elegant fa?ade illuminated against the darkening sky. Tonight¡¯s prize: a rare pink moonstone pendant, formerly owned by British royalty. Though its true value was closer to $300,000, the starting bid was set at $800,000. ¡°Remember why we¡¯re here,¡± I reminded Cassandra. ¡°That pendant is the perfect engagement gift for Alexander Winters¡® cousin.¡± Securing Sophia Winters¡® favor meant potential alliance with the Silverridge pack¨Ca strategic move that could multiply my investment tenfold through future business connections. ¡°Of course, darling,¡± Cassandra replied, her green¨Cgold eyes gleaming with anticipation. ¡°I¡¯ll help you choose something she¡¯ll adore.¡± As we approached the entrance, my entire body tensed. There, standing gracefully among the elite guests, was Olivia. Her honey¨Cbrown hair cascaded over her shoulders in soft waves, framing her delicate features perfectly. But what truly unsettled me was the man at her side¨CConnor Rivers. The same Alpha who had beaten me senseless just days ago, now standing proudly beside my former girlfriend. Dark irritation clouded my vision as I strode toward them, barely aware of Cassandra struggling to keep pace in her stilettos. J Chapter 37 The Auction a ? ¡°Olivia, what are you doing here?¡± I demanded, my voice carrying the authoritative tone I used with subordinates. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I felt Connor¡¯s arm tense slightly beneath my hand as Ethan approached. Keeping myposure, I responded coolly without even turning fully toward him. ¡°What else? Of course, I¡¯m here to attend the auction.¡± My amber eyes remained deliberately focused on the entrance rather than acknowledging Ethan¡¯s presence. I refused to give him the satisfaction of seeing any reaction from me. Cassandra appeared at his side, her expression twisting with contempt as she looked me up and down. ¡°You? Attending an auction? What could you possibly afford here?¡± she sneered. Ethan shot her a sharp nce that silenced her, though she still snorted disdainfully. Her green¨Cgold eyes then settled on Connor, and I watched as her expression transformed from contempt to stunned appreciation. Connor stood tall beside me, his refined features set in their usual stoic expression. His bespoke suit fit his powerful frame perfectly, and the luxury Timber Wolf Chronograph watch I¡¯d given him gleamed on his wrist. Hismanding presence made even Ethan appear diminished inparison. The realization seemed to dawn on Cassandra¡¯s face¨Cshe was no longer the most impressive wolf in this gathering. Connor remainedpletely indifferent to both Ethan and Cassandra, his attention solely on me. His ice¨Cblue eyes softened as they met mine, a tenderness reserved only for me. ¡°Let¡¯s go, Livvy,¡± he said, his voice as gentle as a spring breezepletely at odds with his typically cold demeanor, I nodded, allowing him to guide me toward the entrance. From the corner of my eye, I caught Cassandra¡¯s dumbstruck expression. She had clearly recognized the intimate bond forming between Connor and me, a stark contrast to her earlier derision. O < Chapter 37 The Auction a. Ethan quickly followed after us, leaving Cassandra momentarily abandoned and fuming with jealousy and confusion. (Ethan¡¯s POV) +3 Points The auction hall exuded elegance, with crystal chandeliers casting a warm glow over the assembled elite. Victoria ckwell, the auctioneer, stood at the podium in her tailored navy blue suit, her poised demeanormanding respect. I deliberately chose seats where I could observe Olivia and Connor without being obvious. The earlier lots held little interest for me¨Cantique furniture, rare books, historical artifacts¨Call passing in a blur as I waited for the main event. Finally, Victoria announced with practiced enthusiasm, ¡°Next, we have lot number 47, a rare pink moonstone pendant, formerly part of the British royal collection.¡± An assistant disyed the pendant on a velvet cushion, its delicate tinum setting catching the light as it was carried around the room for closer inspection. ¡°We¡¯ll start the bidding at four million dors,¡± Victoria announced. immediately raised my paddle, determined to secure this prize. The bidding climbed briskly amid sparsepetition, soon reaching 6.2 million dors. ¡°6.2 million, going once¡­¡± Victoria began. ¡°6.5 million.¡± The calm, authoritative voice came from several rows ahead. Connor Rivers had entered the bidding war, his paddle raised with casual confidence. Original content can be found at find[?]ovel I red at him sharply. Was he deliberately trying to thwart me? Or did he genuinely want the pendant? ¡°6.8 million,¡± I countered immediately. Comments Whisper 65 Chapter 37: The Auction and the Luna¡¯s Gift¨C2 Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes revealed nothing as he raised his paddle again. ¡°7 million.¡± The bidding war escted, neither of us willing to yield. I bit my lip, calcting rapidly. The pendant wasn¡¯t worth this much, but the potential alliance with the Silverridge pack certainly was. ¡°7 million to number 20,¡± Victoria announced. ¡°Do I hear 7.1?¡± I raised my paddle again. ¡°7.5 million.¡± (Connor¡¯s POV) I watched Ethan Grey¡¯s desperate bidding with mild amusement. His determination to outbid me was transparent¨Cthis was about more than just the pendant. Victoria ckwell announced with practiced neutrality, ¡°Seven and a half million, number 20. Anyone higher?¡± I raised my paddle once more. ¡°Seven and a half million.¡± ¡°Eight million,¡± Ethan called out immediately, his voice strained. I was about to continue when I felt Olivia¡¯s gentle pressure on my hand. I turned to meet her amber eyes, whichmunicated her thoughts clearly. ¡°Forget it, it¡¯s not worth it,¡± she whispered. She was right, of course. The pendant¡¯s real value was no more than two or three million. Besides, I knew she preferred a blue moonstone pendant scheduled for auctionter. Without hesitation, I lowered my paddle, immediately deferring to her wishes despite mypetitive instinct to outbid Ethan Grey. ¡°Eight million going once¡­ going twice¡­ sold to number 20!¡± Victoria announced. Ethan¡¯s face lit with triumph, though he¡¯d paid nearly triple the pendant¡¯s worth. Beside him, Cassandra cast a mocking nce in our direction, clearly assuming I was unwilling to spend for Olivia. She couldn¡¯t be more wrong. I would give Olivia the world if she asked for it¨Cbut she < Chapter 37: The Auction a¡­ +8 Points > never would. Her quiet dignity and self¨Cassurance were what drew me to her in the first ce. I squeezed her hand gently. ¡°The blue moonstonees up in three lots. Shall we stay for that?¡± Her smile was answer enough. (Olivia¡¯s POV) During a brief intermission, I excused myself to the powder room, leaving Connor engaged in conversation with a business associate. The elegant bathroom was empty as I calmly retouched my lipstick. Through the mirror, I noticed Cassandra entering, a smug look stered across her face. ¡°Oh my, just a few days apart and you¡¯ve already hooked a new Alpha?¡± she sneered, her green¨Cgold eyes shing with malice. I ignored her, focusing on my makeup with steady hands. Cassandraughed coldly, moving closer. ¡°I merely said I liked that pendant, and Ethan spent eight million to buy it for me. But your Alpha? Can¡¯t even do that much for you.¡± Her reflection showed her triumphant expression as she continued her attack. ¡°Of course, wealthy Alphas aren¡¯t fools. They spend on what¡¯s worthwhile. You? Not worth it.¡± I finished applying my lipstick with deliberate care, then met her gaze in the mirror. My amber eyes remained unwavering, showing none of the hurt she so desperately wanted to inflict. ¡°Is that so? Then good luck to you.¡± With that, I turned crisply on my heel and left, utterly unfazed. Cassandra¡¯s words held no power over me anymore; the bitterness behind her insults was obvious and pitiful. To me, she resembled nothing more than a petty gossip¨Cnoisy but irrelevant. Dayster, the grand engagement banquet at the Silverridge Estate arrived. Luxury vehicles worth millions lined the expansive driveway as guests streamed into the 2/5 The source of th?s content is find?novel < Chapter 37: The Auction a Business leaders, socialites, and dignitaries mingled beneath crystal chandeliers, some seeking to strengthen connections, others simply enjoying the prestige of being invited to such an exclusive event. +8 Points Alexander had personally invited Connor and me, intending to introduce me to his extensivework¨Ca crucial asset for awyer like myself, where connections often determined sess. We arrived early, greeted warmly by Alexander himself. Dressed in an impable white suit thatplemented his striking good looks, my cousin¡¯s yboy reputation was evident in his charming smile. ¡°Liv, finally, you¡¯re here!¡± he beamed, embracing me warmly. ¡°Getting prettier every year.¡± Turning to Connor with mock annoyance, he teased, ¡°Never thought I¡¯d have to call you brother¨Cinw someday, ha! Come on, say ¡®brother¡® for once.¡± Connor merely snorted softly, his ice¨Cblue eyes remaining cool. Alexander pretended to be affronted, throwing his hands up dramatically. ¡°See that attitude? My poor cousin, suffering under your cold tyranny.¡± My eyes curved in mirth at their interaction. ¡°Cold tyranny? I don¡¯t think so. Connor is always gentle with me.¡± Alexander surrendered with augh. ¡°Not even formally engaged yet and you two are already showing off your perfect rtionship.¡± After chatting a while longer, Connor and I entered the mansion¡¯s grand hall, which bustled with unfamiliar faces. Almost immediately, Connor was surrounded by eager social climbers and potential business allies, his status drawing attention like moths to me. Finding the crowd stifling, I slipped away to the garden for fresh air, promising to return shortly. (Ethan¡¯s POV) ¡°Remember to smile,¡± I murmured to Cassandra as we approached the Silverridge < Chapter 37: The Auction a¡­ Estate. She adjusted her designer dress, ensuring it showcased her curves to maximum effect. ¡°I know how these events work, Ethan.¡± +8 Points > We arrived fashionablyte, making our entrance when the party was in full swing. I scanned the crowd, searching for Alexander Winters while trying not to look for Olivia. Finally spotting our host, I approached with confident strides, Cassandra on my arm. ¡°Mr. Winters, long time no see,¡± I greeted politely. Alexander turned, his expression immediately going nk. ¡°Who are you?¡± The blunt question caught me off guard. His face revealed he knew exactly who I was but chose to snub me publicly. My face flushed with awkwardness, but I quickly recovered. ¡°Ethan Grey, from Harbor City. We met at the Northern Territory Business Summitst year.¡± ¡°Ah, right,¡± Alexander replied, his tone making it clear I¡¯d made little impression. ¡°Grey pack, wasn¡¯t it?¡± Maintaining courtesy for the sake of potential business connections, I nodded. ¡°Yes, that¡¯s right. I¡¯ve been hoping to discuss some potential ventures with you.¡± Before he could dismiss me, I presented avishly wrapped gift box containing the Royal Moonstone Pendant. ¡°I heard your cousin is getting engaged. Congrattions. This is my gift for her.¡± Though the gift was ostensibly for Alexander¡¯s cousin, we both understood I was buying favor with Alexander himself, hoping this gesture would smooth future business cooperation. Alexander, clearly used to such ttery, initially seemed ready to brush me off. However, seeing the valuable present, his tone softened slightly. ¡°How thoughtful. I¡¯ll thank you on her behalf, She¡¯s insidee, deliver it to her yourself.¡± Relief washed over me; my expensive gamble seemed to have paid off. shing a SAVST < Chapter 37 The Auction a bright smile, I said, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Winters, I¡¯ll trouble you then.¡± M 259 Watch A Whisper 66 Chapter 38: The Truth Revealed, The Past Severed¨C1 Chapter 38: The Truth Revealed, The Past Severed (Alexander¡¯s POV) The silver moonlight bathed the Silverridge Estate¡¯s rear garden in an ethereal glow. I approached with my entourage, scanning the elegantndscape until I spotted my cousin Olivia sitting on an ornate swing beneath a sprawling oak tree. She leaned gently against Connor Rivers¡® shoulder, her honey¨Cbrown hair catching the moonlight as they shared a quiet moment admiring the night sky. The sight brought a smile to my face¨CLiv deserved happiness after everything she¡¯d been through. My attention shifted when I noticed Ethan Grey standing nearby, his body suddenly rigid as he spotted Olivia¡¯s graceful silhouette. Recognition shed across his features, followed by disbelief and something that looked remarkably like panic. His chest visibly tightened as he refused to ept what his eyes were telling him. Before he could react further, I called out clearly, ¡°Liv,e over here for a moment.¡± Olivia turned her head calmly at my voice. Her luminous amber eyes met Ethan¡¯s stunned gaze, and I watched her serene expression instantly harden into something cold and distant. She hadn¡¯t expected to encounter him here¨Cthat much was obvious from the way her shoulders tensed. A sh of suspicion crossed her features, as though she wondered if he¡¯d known her identity all along and had followed her deliberately. Despite her obvious difort, Olivia maintained perfectposure as she rose from the swing and approached me without sparing Ethan another nce. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, cousin?¡± she asked coolly. The word ¡°cousin¡® hit Ethan like a physical blow. His face turned ashen, and his grip ckened on the gift box he was holding. It tumbled from his hands, hitting the ground with a soft thud. The lid popped open, and the extravagant Royal Moonstone Pendant¨Cthe very jewel he¡¯d just spent eight hundred thousand dors on to curry favor with me through my ¡°cousin¡°-spilled onto the grass. The pink stone gleamed mockingly in the moonlight < Chapter 38 The Truth Rev¡­ as an awkward silence descended. +8 Points Th? link to the orig?n of this information r?sts ?n FindN()vel Ethan looked as though he might copse. His mind seemed to shut downpletely¨Chis eyes zed over, and for an instant, he swayed on his feet. All color drained from his face, leaving him ghostly pale under the moonlight. I frowned, genuinely concerned by his extreme reaction. ¡°Are you alright? You don¡¯t look well.¡± Olivia cast a sidelong nce at Ethan, her amber eyes narrowing slightly as understanding dawned. He had only just realized her true family background. Her gaze dropped to the pendant lying exposed on the grass, and a cold smile touched her lips. ¡°I heard from my cousin that you prepared an engagement gift for me? Is it this one?¡± she asked, her voice dripping with icy disdain. Beside Ethan, Cassandra Evans looked stricken. Her face flushed deep crimson as the implications sank in. Just days before, ording to what Olivia had told me earlier, Cassandra had boasted about this very pendant, iming Ethan had purchased it for her. Now the humiliating truth was exposed¨CEthan had bought the pendant not for Cassandra, but to please me by gifting it to my cousin¡­ who turned out to be Olivia herself. Cassandra¡¯s embarrassment was palpable. She had always looked down on Olivia, believing her to be nothing more than a pennilesswyer. How could she have imagined that this ¡°poor girl¡± was actually a high society woman, a treasured daughter of the prestigious Winters pack and my cousin? Ethan looked like a man starved of oxygen. His eyes were wide with disbelief as he stared at Olivia. ¡°You¡­ you¡­ are Alpha Winters¡® cousin?¡± he stammered, his voice barely audible. Olivia¡¯s patience visibly wore thin. ¡°Otherwise?¡± she asked sharply, her tone cutting. Ethan¡¯s Adam¡¯s apple bobbed anxiously as he struggled to speak. His eyes reddened with an acidic ache as he pressed, ¡°Why? Why for three whole years did you never tell me who you really were?¡± D < Chapter 38: The Truth Rev¡­ 48 Points I watched my cousin steel herself, clearly determined to end this confrontation once and for all. When she spoke, her voice was t and emotionless. ¡°I wanted to tell you. Remember that time I suggested taking you back to my hometown? I meant to introduce you to my pack then. But it was you who refused.¡± Her indifference was striking¨Ca clear sign she had moved beyond caring about him or his opinion. Ethan¡¯s features cracked with anguish, his voice trembling as he responded. ¡°If only you had told me you were the daughter of the Winters pack Alpha, how could I ever have refused to go with you?¡± Olivia¡¯s lips curled into a cold smile that didn¡¯t reach her eyes. ¡°So, what you loved was the status of the Winters pack heir¨Cnot me as a person.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not like that¡­ No, I loved you. I love you¡­¡± he murmured helplessly, tears welling in his eyes. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 67 Chapter 38: The Truth Revealed, The Past Severed¨C2 I finally understood everything. So this was Olivia¡¯s ex¨Cboyfriend? The fool who Read full story at F?nd-Novel couldn¡¯t recognize the treasure before his eyes, who had looked down on her because he thought she was just an ordinary woman without a pack background. I couldn¡¯t help but tsk silently, both marveling at the drama unfolding before me and ncing toward Connor. His face had transformed, radiating an ominous chill. The very air around him trembled with barely contained fury as he watched Ethan¡¯s desperate attempts to reim what he¡¯d lost. ¡°Liv, if you¡¯d told me from the beginning who you were, we¡¯d be mated by now. We could have been happy, truly happy¡­¡± Ethan¡¯s voice grew increasingly agitated. He reached out impulsively to grab Olivia¡¯s hand, desperate to salvage what he¡¯d so carelessly destroyed. But before his fingers could make contact, Connor moved with lightning speed. In one fluid motion, Connor pulled Olivia behind him and forcefully knocked Ethan¡¯s hand aside. His voice was low andmanding as he stated, ¡°She is my mate¨Cto¨Cbe.¡± Olivia stepped slightly to the side, her amber eyes meeting Ethan¡¯s tear¨Cfilled gaze without a hint of sympathy. ¡°Sorry, but now you¡¯re not worthy of me. Nor do I care for your mother¡¯s approval.¡± The night wind rustled through the trees, carrying a deep chill that seemed to settle in the space between them. Ethan stood frozen as tears streamed silently down his cheeks. The realization of his own absurdity finally seemed to hit him¨Call those times he¡¯d refused to meet her pack, allowed his mother Margaret to humiliate her, openly unted his rtionship with Cassandra. I¡¯d heard from Olivia how he¡¯d even dered in front of Cassandra that he would never mate with her, indulging himself without care for her feelings, Every past cruelty now returned to haunt him, leaving only bloody regret in its wake. His mission tonight had been transparent to me from the start¨Cto court my ¡°cousin¡± for a lucrative pack alliance, to deliver the engagement gift and secure much¨Cneeded O < Chapter 38: The Truth Rev¡­ +8 Points investment for the Grey pack. But now, faced with the truth that the cousin he had hoped to please was none other than the woman he had betrayed and lost, his mind clearly spiraled into chaos and despair. He could neither congratte her on her new engagement nor bear the knowledge that he had pushed her into another Alpha¡¯s arms. Standing numbly in the cold night, he resembled a lost man in a fog of misery, unable to see any path forward. Seeing Ethan¡¯s pitiful state, Olivia no longer spared him a nce. She stepped away from the garden, her back straight and resolute. Connor followed in silence, his presence a protective shield behind her. Concerned that Ethan might cause a scene that would disrupt the engagement celebration, I coldly ordered my betas with a subtle hand gesture to ¡°escort¡± him out of the estate. Ethan stumbled like an empty shell, eyes nk and expressionless, shuffling off mechanically in the night wind. Cassandra quietly bent down to pick up the Royal Moonstone Pendant from the ground. Biting her lip, she trailed behind him, both of them swallowed by the darkness as the past was mercilessly severed. 2 Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > 259 H Vote Whisper 68 Chapter 39: The Trap at the Banquet¨C1 Chapter 39: The Trap at the Banquet (Olivia¡¯s POV) I paid no attention to Ethan Grey¡¯s departure from the banquet. His presence¨Cor absence¨Cmeant nothing to me now. Holding a crystal flute of champagne, I smiled politely as I conversed with yet another important guest. The evening had be a blur of introductions and small talk. Connor stood beside me, his tall framemanding respect as he introduced me to several influential figures in legal and academic circles. His hand asionally brushed against the small of my back, a subtle gesture of support that didn¡¯t go unnoticed by the observant wolves around us. ¡°This is Olivia Winters,¡± he would say, his deep voice carrying a hint of pride. ¡°One of the most promising youngwyers in Riverdale.¡± Alexander, not to be outdone, had been parading me around to meet various business associates and pack leaders. His enthusiasm was exhausting but endearing. ¡°My brilliant cousin,¡± he¡¯d announce with a flourish. ¡°The Winters pack¡¯s finest.¡± After hours ofworking, my feet were screaming in protest. The elegant heels I¡¯d chosen for the evening had be instruments of torture. I leaned close to Connor, catching his familiar scent. ¡°You handle things here,¡± I whispered softly in his ear. ¡°I¡¯m going to rest on the sofa for a bit.¡± Connor nodded slightly, his ice¨Cblue eyes meeting mine briefly before returning to his conversation with the middle¨Caged couple before him. Even that fleeting nce carried warmth that only I could see. I made my way to a plush sofa in a quieter corner of the grand hall. Sinking into the cushions, I slipped off my heels beneath the table and massaged my aching feet with a sigh of relief. < Chapter 39: The Trap at th. A waiter approached with a silver tray. ¡°Strawberry juice, miss? It¡¯s freshly made.¡± My favorite. I epted the ss with a grateful smile. ¡°Thank you.¡± +8 Points The juice was deliciously sweet and refreshing. I took several sips, suddenly realizing how thirsty I¡¯d been. My stomach growled softly, reminding me that I hadn¡¯t eaten before arriving at the banquet. Read full story at Rising briefly, I visited the buffet table and selected a small piece of cake. The rich dessert paired perfectly with the strawberry juice as I settled back onto the sofa. My gaze drifted across the room, inevitably finding Connor. He stood tall among the guests, his presencemanding yet not overbearing. As if sensing my attention, he looked up, our eyes meeting across the crowded space. I smiled, feeling my eyes curve with genuine happiness. After a moment¡¯s pause, his lips curled into that rare, subtle smile he reserved only for me before he turned back to his conversation. The sight warmed me more than any champagne could. I watched him quietly, my heart full of tenderness and affection I never thought I¡¯d feel again. The unpleasantness with Ethan earlier had left nosting impression. It was like watching a movie about strangers¨Cemotionally distant and ultimately forgettable. Now, Connor filled my entire vision and thoughts. Memories surfaced unbidden. As a child, I¡¯d dreamed of a loving marriage like my parents had. I remembered watching my mother Sarah¡¯s face light up whenever my father entered a room, the way they¡¯d dance in the kitchen when they thought no one was watching. But then came my mother¡¯s death from wolfsbane poisoning. The light left our home, and when my father Richard remarried Natalie just two yearster, my childhood fantasy shatteredpletely. I lost faith in love and marriage, seeing them as nothing but convenient arrangements destined to be betrayed. When the alliance with Connor was first proposed, I viewed it as merely a business arrangement¨Ca cold, political union that would benefit our packs but offer nothing more than politepanionship without real intimacy. Yet as we grew closer these past weeks, I began seeing the truth that had been there < Chapter 39: The Trap at th¡­. +5 Points > all along. Connor¡¯s gentle persistence wasn¡¯t new¨Cit had been a constant throughout my life. Long ago, when my mother passed away, Connor had quietly started caring for me in his own way. He¡¯d secretly learned to cook traditional dishes, then arranged for Dorothy Jenkins to deliver them to me, pretending they were from the elderly woman herself. He¡¯d tutored me tirelessly through difficult subjects, helping me gain admission to Riverdale University despite my grief¨Cstricken state. The marriage alliance proposed three years ago had been entirely his idea; he¡¯d actively approached my father, eager to formalize our bond sooner rather thanter. I had fiercely opposed it then, even running away from home to Harbor City. Yet Connor never med me for my rejection. For three years, he traveled endlessly between Riverdale and Harbor City just to catch glimpses of me¨Cyet never disturbed my life with Ethan, respecting my choices even when they must have hurt him deeply. Comments M Vote 259 Whisper 69 Chapter 39 The Trap at th +0 Points > Chapter 39: The Trap at the Banquet¨C2 When his foster sister Vanessa Reed schemed to frame me, Connor stood firmly on my side, his trust in me unwavering. Though reputed to be aloof and unapproachable to others, in all my memories, Connor had only ever shown me gentleness and patience. This update is avable on F¦Énd£Îovel I realized now that while he was indeed cold to others, he had always reserved his warmth exclusively for me. A particr memory surfaced vividly: during high school, I attended Connor¡¯s birthday celebration at the Rivers family mansion. The party was in full swing when suddenly the ring dance music cut out, reced by soft, sentimental melodies. The crowd parted like the Red Sea, and a girl with carefully styled chestnut curls and a tight ck dress strode boldly toward Connor. She was voluptuous, sexy, dazzling- everything I wasn¡¯t at that awkward age. Without hesitation, she confessed her admiration and desire to date him. ¡°I¡¯ve liked you for three years,¡± she dered, her voice carrying across the suddenly silent room. ¡°Will you go out with me?¡± Connor, eyes lowered and face expressionless, simply said, ¡°No.¡± The girl persisted, even iming she was willing to be his backup. ¡°I can wait forever if you just turn back to me someday,¡± she pleaded. His patience visibly evaporated. Looking up with coldly impatient eyes, he cut her off, his words sharp as knives: ¡°You and I will never be possible.¡± The rejection was brutal in its finality. Humiliated before everyone, the girl¡¯s face turned deathly pale, tears trembling on hershes as Connor turned away without a backward nce. A heavy silence fell over the party. Friends rushed tofort the devastated girl, whispering that Connor had always been ruthless in rejecting confessions and had never shown interest in any girl at all. That memory had left a deep impression on me. The image of his icy indifference to others now contrasted starkly with the warmth he showed me alone. < Chapter 39: The Trap at th¡­. +0 Points Pulling myself from these reveries, I rose and headed to the restroom. After freshening up, I emerged into the hallway when an odd dizziness suddenly overtook
  1. me.
My heart began racing wildly, heat surging through my limbs as if a fire was burning beneath my skin. Confusion clouded my thoughts¨CI had barely drunk any alcohol tonight, and this felt nothing like mild intoxication. My legs weakened, and my head grew unbearably heavy. I leaned against the wall for support, fumbling for my phone to call Connor. Something was very wrong. ¡°Miss, do you need help?¡± A man in a waiter¡¯s uniform approached with a concerned expression. I shook my head, trying to focus on unlocking my phone. But the man unexpectedly snatched it from my hands. ¡°Miss, I¡¯ll take you to rest,¡± he insisted, his tone suddenly rough as he gripped my arm and began dragging me toward the elevators. I tried desperately to struggle against his hold. ¡°Let me go!¡± I demanded, but my voice came out weak and floating, barely audible even to my own ears. Panic seized me as realization dawned¨CI¡¯d been drugged. My mind whirled back to the strawberry juice. This man looked exactly like the waiter who had served me earlier. He must have spiked my drink! Fighting to stay lucid despite the drug coursing through my system, I bit out in a trembling voice, ¡°Who sent you?¡± The man, who I now recognized wasn¡¯t a real waiter at all but someone named Jeremy Walsh, remained silent. He only shoved me harder into the elevator, his grip bruising on my arm. My thoughts swirled chaotically¨Cwho could have orchestrated this? Ethan? Cassandra? Or someone else entirely? (Third Person POV) Meanwhile, in a hotel room upstairs, Lloyd Simmons, a repulsive, obese many sprawled on the bed. His breathing came in heavy wheezes as he shifted his substantial weight against the creaking mattress. 6357 < Chapter 39 The Trap at th¡­. + Porns An obscene smile spread across his greasy face as he checked his watch for the third time in five minutes. His eyes gleamed with anticipation, pupils dted with sick excitement. ¡°She should be here any minute now,¡± he muttered to himself, licking his thick lips. He adjusted his position, the bed protesting beneath him as he eagerly waited for his ¡°beauty¡± to be delivered. The room was dimly lit, with only a bedsidemp casting shadows across his bloated features. Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 70 Chapter 40: Primal Instincts¨C1 Chapter 40: Primal Instincts For more chapters visit f?ndnovel (Olivia¡¯s POV) The elevator panel lit up with the number twenty¨Ctwo, the glowing digits swimming before my unfocused eyes. My limbs felt like lead, my thoughts scattered like autumn leaves in a storm. ¡°Where are you taking me?¡± I whispered, my voice barely audible even to my own ears. Jeremy Walsh remained silent, his grip tightening painfully around my arm as my strength continued to fade. My body burned as if my blood had been reced with liquid fire, the drug coursing through my veins making me feel disoriented and weak. The walls of the elevator seemed to pulse and waver. I tried again to pull away, but my muscles refused to cooperate. Despair clouded my mind as I realized how helpless I truly was. My eyelids grew heavy, and I let them close, surrendering to the inevitable. Suddenly, the elevator jerked to a halt at the eighteenth floor. The doors slid open with a soft chime, and a familiar voice pierced through my haze. ¡°Livvy!¡± My eyes flew open instantly. There, stepping into the elevator, was Connor Rivers, his ice¨Cblue eyes narrowing dangerously as they took in my condition. Jeremy, realizing things had gone terribly awry, immediately released me and attempted to flee. But in his haste, he shoved me aside, and my weakened legs gave way beneath me. I would have crumpled to the floor if Connor hadn¡¯t caught me, his strong arms wrapping securely around my waist. I clung to him, soft and boneless, wrapping my arms around his neck and murmuring unconsciously, ¡°Con¡­¡± Connor¡¯s expression darkened at my fragile, sweet cry. His jaw clenched tight, a muscle ticking in his cheek as he held me against his chest. ¡°Frank,¡± he barked into his phone, his voice cold with fury. ¡°Pull the elevator > surveince footage immediately. Seal all hotel exits. Find the impostor who was just with Olivia.¡± I tightened my grip around his neck, my fevered breaths brushing against his skin. Even in my drugged state, I instinctively sought safety in his presence, burying my face against his shoulder. He gently steadied my chin with one hand, forcing me to meet his gaze. ¡°Livvy, did someone drug you?¡± he asked, his voice low and controlled despite the rage I could feel radiating from him. I nodded feebly. ¡°The juice just now¡­ something¡¯s wrong with it.¡± His ice¨Cblue eyes sharpened with dangerous intent. Without hesitation, he lifted me into his arms, cradling me against his chest as if I weighed nothing at all. His embrace, broad and steady, brought me a deep sense of security. My anxious heart finally settled as I pressed my ear against his chest, listening to the strong, steady rhythm of his heartbeat. The elevator soon stopped at the twenty¨Csecond floor, but Connor pressed the button for the top floor instead. With one hand, he typed a message to Alexander, his movements efficient despite holding me. When we reached the presidential suite, he carried me inside and carefullyid me on the enormous bed. The cool sheets felt heavenly against my burning skin, but they weren¡¯t enough to soothe the fire raging within me. The drug¡¯s effects were intensifying by the minute. My blood felt like it was aze, every nerve ending hypersensitive. I gazed up at Connor through misty amber eyes, my voice soft and helpless. ¡°Con¡­ I¡¯m so hot¡­¡± He straightened up, his expression grim as he turned to leave. Panic seized me at the thought of being alone, and I desperately grabbed his shirt. ¡°Con, don¡¯t go,¡± I pleaded, my voice breaking. I knew I must look pitiful with my flushed cheeks and dewy eyes, but I couldn¡¯t bear the thought of him leaving me in this state. The burning sensation was bing unbearable, a desperate need building inside me that I¡¯d never experienced before. < Chapter 40. Primal Instinc¡­ 10 Points > Connor stood frozen, his ice¨Cblue eyes darkening as he looked down at me. I could see the inner conflict tearing at him, his lips pressed into a hard line as he battled with himself. I sensed what I¡¯d been afflicted with¨Ca powerful aphrodisiac¨Cand its only effective antidote. Though reason still burned inside me, my body ached intolerably as the drug triggered an intense physical reaction I couldn¡¯t control. ¡°Con, can you¡­ help me?¡± I whimpered softly, my watery amber eyes and trembling voice making the request unmistakable. Under the warm, golden light of the suite, my fragile formy enveloped in his shadow. I looked up at him with pleading innocence, unable to articte exactly what I needed but hoping he would understand. Connor¡¯s breath grew ragged, his chest rising and falling more rapidly. ¡°How do you want me to help you?¡± he asked, his voice husky and strained. I blushed deeply, unable to answer. I¡¯d never been intimate before, having only ever held hands with Ethan Grey in our three years of dating. The realization of what I was asking for filled me with shame, and I averted my face, unable to meet his intense gaze. Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 71 48 Points> Chapter 40: Primal Instincts¨C2 Connor lowered himself closer, until our noses were nearly touching. His voice was low and dangerous as he asked, ¡°Tell me, Livvy, how do you want me to help you?¡± Our mingled breaths blurred all boundaries between us. The scent of him¨Cpine and winter air¨Cfilled my senses, making my head spin even more. Suddenly, summoning all my courage, I seized his cor and pulled him down into a kiss. I felt his ice¨Cblue eyes widen in surprise; I could almost hear thest thread of his restraint snapping. My lips were soft against his, the kiss unpracticed yet irresistible in its innocence. After a moment of shock, Connor took control, sping the back of my head with one He deepened the kiss passionately, his masculine scent enveloping mepletely. Desire thickened the air between us until even the spacious room felt overheated and too small to contain what was building between us. His lips grazed my ear, his voice hoarse and bewitching as he whispered, ¡°Don¡¯t be afraid, Livvy. I¡¯ll be very gentle.¡± Enveloped by his masculine presence, I trembled, my breath quickening as his hands began to explore. Together, we abandoned ourselves to primal instinct and overwhelming pleasure, the night dissolving into a haze of sensation and need. Hourster, exhausted beyond measure, I finally drifted into a deep, dreamless sleep, safely cradled in Connor¡¯s strong arms. (Vanessa¡¯s POV) The crystal vase shattered against the wall, water and flowers exploding across the pristine white carpet of my Rivers pack vi. My hands trembled as Victor Stone¡¯s words echoed in my mind. ¡°The n failed. Connor Rivers found her in the elevator. They¡¯re together now in the presidential suite.¡± ¡°What? Olivia Winters was taken away by my brother?!¡± I screamed, my voice rising to a pitch that hurt my own ears. O < Chapter 40 Primal Instinc¡­ Victor remained silent on the other end of the line, knowing better than to speak when I was in this state. 48 Ports ¡°Useless! You¡¯re all useless!¡± I shrieked, pacing the room like a caged animal. ¡°Can¡¯t even handle such a small matter!¡± Furious beyond reason, I smashed my phone against the floor, watching with savage satisfaction as it shattered into pieces. My nails dug into my palms until they drew blood, tiny crimson crescents forming in my pale skin. My brother had taken Olivia away. They were alone together in a hotel suite. Would they¡­ would they sleep together? The thought sent panic and jealousy wing at my chest. Hot tears streamed uncontrobly down my face as I copsed onto the sofa, my body shaking with silent sobs. ¡°No¡­ no¡­ he can only be mine. Only mine!¡± I whispered into the empty room, hatred zing in my violet eyes. Connor had been mine since childhood. I¡¯d loved him first, long before Olivia Winters ever entered the picture. He was supposed to be my mate, my future, my everything. ¡°Olivia Winters, you stole my brother,¡± I hissed through clenched teeth. ¡°You stole the one I love most. I want you dead!¡± Killing intent surged through me, born from my twisted obsession. This wasn¡¯t over. Not by a long shot. If I couldn¡¯t have Connor, then neither would she. (Olivia¡¯s POV) When I next opened my eyes, daylight poured through the partially drawn curtains, painting golden stripes across the luxurious bed. Every muscle in my body ached pleasantly, a delicious soreness that reminded me of the night¡¯s activities. Turning my head slowly, I was met with Connor¡¯s perfect, dangerously handsome face just inches from mine. His eyes were closed, long darkshes casting shadows on his cheekbones, his breathing deep and even in sleep. Latest content published on F¦Énd£Îovel My mind wentpletely nk as memories flooded back. Lifting the quilt and peeking underneath, I instantly covered myself again, my cheeks zing red. < < Chapter 40. Primal Instinc Both of us werepletely naked. We¡­ had been intimatest night. +8 Points My face flushed deeper as fragments of the night returned to me: my initiative, driven by the drug; my shameless pleas; my uninhibited cries. The mortification overwhelmed me, making me want to bury my face in the pillows and never emerge. How could I ever face Connor again after behaving so wantonly? What must he think of me now? Resolved to escape this awkward situation, I gingerly lifted the quilt and tiptoed out of bed, wincing slightly at the unfamiliar soreness between my thighs. Our clothesy scattered chaotically across the floor, evidence of our passionate haste. My bare skin was covered in faint marks that stunned me once more¨Csmall bruises and love bites that told the story of our night together. I swallowed nervously, realizing just how intense our encounter had been. With no clean clothes to change into and fearing to wake Connor by asking for help, I hurriedly gathered my discarded garments from the floor. My fingers trembled as I slipped them on, trying to make myself presentable enough to leave the suite without drawing attention. Just as I was about to sneak away, arge warm hand mped around my wrist. With a sudden tug, I lost my bnce and tumbled back onto the bed with a startled gasp. Above me, Connor¡¯snguid, teasing voice sounded, his ice¨Cblue eyes gleaming with possessive satisfaction. ¡°Sleep with me and then try to run away?¡± Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > O Vote 259 Whisper 72 Chapter 41: Entwined Hearts and Lingering Shadows¨C1 Chapter 41: Entwined Hearts and Lingering Shadows (Olivia¡¯s POV) I gasped as Connor pulled me back onto the bed with one swift movement. Before I could protest, he flipped me over, pressing me beneath his powerful body. His lips descended on mine in a kiss that made my head spin. Unlikest night¡¯s desperate, drug¨Cfueled frenzy, this kiss was gentle and lingering. His lips moved against mine with tender intoxication, making my heart flutter wildly in my chest. I felt a certain change in his body pressed against mine, and immediately stiffened. Heat rushed to my face, turning it bright red. ¡°No¡­ no more, I can¡¯t take it¡­¡± I stammered, still sore from our night together. Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes shimmered with amusement, the corners crinkling slightly. His voice was deliciously hoarse when he spoke. ¡°Alright, just a little kiss. I won¡¯t torment you anymore.¡± But his words proved false as his lips descended once again, capturing mine in another breathtaking kiss that left me clinging to his broad shoulders. After what felt like an eternity of sweet torture, Connor finally released me. Without warning, he scooped me into his arms and carried me toward the bathroom. As he lifted the quilt, his gaze caught on something that made him pause. Following his line of sight, I saw dark red bloodstains marring the pristine white bedsheet. Cradled princess¨Cstyle in his strong arms, I bit my lip shyly. The evidence of my virginity was there for him to see, impossible to hide. ¡°Um¡­ I¡­ I¡¯m not dirty,¡± I whispered, feeling oddly vulnerable. ¡°That was my first time.¡± Connor¡¯s expression softened immediately. He nted a devout kiss on my forehead, his lips warm against my skin. ¡°Even if it wasn¡¯t, I wouldn¡¯t mind,¡± he murmured against my hair. < < Chapter 41 Entwined Hea. A newfound confidence surged through me. I raised an eyebrow, my amber eyes meeting his ice¨Cblue ones directly. ¡°What about you? Was it your first time?¡± His jaw tightened slightly, a possessive jealousy shing across his handsome features. +8 Points ¡°Of course,¡± he replied, his tone slightly clipped. ¡°Unlike some people who have dated before, you are my first love.¡± Embarrassment and sweetness mingled in my chest at his words. I couldn¡¯t help the small smile that tugged at my lips. ¡°Well, you should¡¯ve confessed earlier,¡± I muttered, looking away. He chuckled, the sound low and intimate. ¡°me me then.¡± In the spacious bathroom, Connor lowered me gently into the warm water. To my surprise, he rolled up his sleeves and began washing my hair, his strong fingers massaging my scalp with unexpected tenderness. I closed my eyes in bliss, rxing into his touch. ¡°Mmm, Alpha Rivers¡® hands are pretty good,¡± I joked, enjoying the pampering. Hisughter rumbled deep in his chest. ¡°Then I¡¯ll serve you every day from now on.¡± After thoroughly washing me, paying special attention to my sore muscles, Connor carried me out of the bath. He ced me carefully on the sofa and began drying my Original content can be found at F?nd-Novel hair with a hairdryer, his movements patient and gentle. I watched him through the mirror, aplex mix of emotions swirling in my amber eyes. ¡°I didn¡¯t expect our first time to be like this.¡± As he carefully blew my hair strand by strand, Connor¡¯s face darkened slightly. The reminder ofst night¡¯s events clearly troubled him. ¡°The man who drugged you has been caught,¡± he exined, his deep voice tight with controlled anger. ¡°His name is Jeremy Walsh.¡± I tensed at the mention, memories of the fake waiter flooding back. ¡°He was directed by Lloyd Simmons, that obese man waiting in the hotel room,¡± < < Chapter 41 Entwined Hea + Points> Connor continued, his hands never pausing in their gentle ministrations. ¡°They acted out of lust without knowing your identity as a member of the Winters pack.¡± A shiver ran down my spine at how close I¡¯de to disaster. ¡°The authorities have already filed a case for attempted assault with drugging substances. Both men are now in detention.¡± His voice hardened with promise. ¡°They will suffer the full retribution of thew.¡± Connor set down the hairdryer, his ice¨Cblue eyes meeting mine in the mirror. ¡°I searched for you in the lounge but couldn¡¯t find you. By chance, when I pressed the elevator button on the 18th floor to check the penthouse suite, I found you.¡± His hands tightened slightly on my shoulders. ¡°If I had been just a momentter¡­¡± He didn¡¯t finish the sentence, but he didn¡¯t need to. We both knew what could have happened. ¡°Livvy, I will make them pay,¡± he vowed, his voice heavy with authority. I fell silent, a toxic mixture of fear, anger, and helplessness welling inside me. Though I tried to suppress it, the trauma of what had nearly happened still cast a shadow over
  1. me.
During this heavy silence, Connor¡¯s phone buzzed repeatedly on the ss coffee table. He ignored itpletely, his attention fully focused on me. Comments Lord Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 259 Whisper 73 hapter 41: Entwined Hearts and Lingering Shadows¨C2 C ¡°Can you help check my phone?¡± he asked suddenly, breaking the tense atmosphere. ¡°The password is your birthday.¡± I picked up his phone, curious. When the screen lit up, I was startled to see my own portrait as his lock screen¨Ca photo from my sophomore birthday photoshoot. I remembered posting it briefly on social media but setting it to disappear after three days. He had saved it all along. A shy, quiet joy filled me as I unlocked his phone. I noticed immediately that my chat was pinned at the top¨Chis only pinned contact. My lips curved unconsciously at this small but significant detail. ¡°You have several messages,¡± I told him, reading the notifications aloud. ¡°Margaret Grey is asking why you haven¡¯t answered her calls. She wants you to bring me to the pack dinner tomorrow night.¡± Connor nodded, continuing to arrange my hair. ¡°Henry Morris has questions about some business matters. Ethan Quinn wants you to watch a race with him.¡± I scrolled further. ¡°And Alexander Winters is discussing what to do with those criminals. He says he¡¯s already called ahead to the detention center.¡± Just as I was about to exit the messages, my gaze caught on a muted conversation- messages from Vanessa Reed. Aplicated mix of jealousy and wariness drove me to tap on it. I skimmed through a torrent of desperate pleas spanning half a month: ¡°Brother, are you still mad at me?¡± ¡°I was just scared you¡¯d be stolen by Sister Olivia, I swear I won¡¯t do it again, please forgive me.¡± ¡°Brother, I¡¯m in pain, doctor said I might have seque.¡± ¡°Brother, I miss you.¡± ¡°Brother, will youe pick me up from the hospital tomorrow?¡± ¡°Brother, it¡¯s because of Sister Olivia you won¡¯t see me, right? Please ask her to forgive me.¡± Apart from a single reply-¡°It has nothing to do with her¡°¡ªConnor had ignored all her ¤¯ Chapter 41: Entwined Hea.. emotional bombardment. He had even silenced her chat. I closed the messages, my heart in turmoil. The intimacy of Vanessa¡¯s words far surpassed normal foster sibling boundaries, sparking sour jealousy in my chest. ¡°Will Vanessa be at tomorrow¡¯s pack dinner?¡± I asked quietly. +15 Points> Connor frowned, his hands pausing in my hair. ¡°Yes. Just as well, she can apologize to you properly in front of everyone.¡± Annoyance and unease prickled inside me. My expression grew frosty as I stood up abruptly. ¡°Have someone send over some clothes,¡± I said coldly. ¡°I need to go out.¡± Connor noticed my sudden chill. He approached me cautiously, his brow furrowed in concern. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Are you upset?¡± he asked gently. ¡°No,¡± I denied tly, avoiding his gaze. He nced quickly at his phone, realization dawning on his face. In two long strides, he was behind me, circling my waist with his strong arms. His familiar scent¨Cpine and winter air¨Cenveloped me as he whispered with certainty. ¡°I don¡¯t have any romantic feelings for her.¡± I remained silent, lips pressed tight, unwilling to admit how much Vanessa¡¯s messages had bothered me. ¡°Livvy, don¡¯t be angry, okay?¡± he coaxed softly, using my intimate nickname in an attempt to soothe me. I raised my amber eyes to meet his, keeping my face deliberately nk. ¡°1 Checktest chapters at f?ndnovel ¡®Just get me some clothes,¡± I insisted. ¡°I¡¯m going out soon.¡± His arms tightened around me, unwilling to let go. I could feel his possessiveness and concern intermingling as he pressed. ¡°Where are you going? I¡¯ll take you.¡± Whisper 74 <
I froze for half a heartbeat, the words sinking in. Then panic propelled me forward as I bolted for the elevators. Connor swiftly caught up and gripped my arm tightly. ¡°Liv, don¡¯t go. It¡¯s dangerous!¡± Tears trembled on myshes as I turned to face him. ¡°I have to! Vanessa is targeting me. If I don¡¯t go, Grace will be hurt. I can¡¯t risk my sister¡¯s life.¡± ¡°First, we alert the police,¡± Connor insisted, his voice calm but forceful. I struggled against his grip. ¡°You call them, but don¡¯t stop me! Every second I dy, Grace¡¯s danger grows. She¡¯s innocent¨Cshe¡¯s only targeted because of me. I won¡¯t watch her die because of me!¡± My desperation cracked my voice as I fought fiercely to break free. Connor¡¯s grip tightened, his tone rising. ¡°And you think risking your own life is eptable?¡± Just then, Frank Langley rushed over breathlessly. His normallyposed face was flushed with urgency. ¡°Mr. Rivers, we¡¯ve located Vanessa Reed and Grace Winters. They¡¯re on the rooftop along with two unknown men.¡± ¡°Only three people?¡± Connor¡¯s eyes narrowed, wary of a trap. ¡°Yes, sir. Police are already on their way,¡± Frank confirmed with a quick nod. Connor¡¯s mind visibly raced as he issued swift orders. ¡°Mobilize all our security to the rooftop.¡± He turned to me, his ice¨Cblue eyes intense. ¡°Liv, you must stay calm. Vanessa wants you to walk into her trap. Promise me you won¡¯t.¡± My hands shook violently, terror flooding through me. ¡°I¡­¡± Before I could finish, shrill screams pierced the hall. Everyone¡¯s gaze jerked to the screen once more. The image had changed. Now Vanessa pressed a gleaming silver dagger to Grace¡¯s delicate neck. Her face was twisted into a chilling smile as she stared straight into the camera. ||| O 2 Chapter 51 Desperate Me Newest update provided by FindN0vel +8 Points 2 ¡°Olivia Winters,¡± her voice dripped venom, ¡°I give you five minutes. If you don¡¯te, your sister will die in your ce!¡± Almost before thest syble faded, I had broken free and was sprinting full speed toward the rooftop. Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 ɽ Whisper 94 < Chapter 52: Blood on the¡­ +8 Points > Chapter 52: Blood on the Rooftop Chapter 52: Blood on the Rooftop (Connor¡¯s POV) I raced after Olivia, my heart pounding with dread. Every second counted. Grace¡¯s life hung in the bnce, but I couldn¡¯t let Olivia sacrifice herself. Suddenly, a body collided with mine. Red wine sshed across my white shirt and suit jacket, the liquid spreading like blood. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry, Alpha Connor!¡± A man with an apologetic smile blocked my path. ¡°What a terrible ident!¡± I tried to step around him, but he shifted, maintaining his position directly in my way. ¡°Please, let me help clean that,¡± he insisted, reaching for my jacket. My patience snapped. ¡°Get out of my way!¡± I snarled, my voice dropping to a dangerous growl. The stranger¡¯s eyes widened at my tone. He finally stepped aside with a slight bow. I didn¡¯t waste another second on him, sprinting toward the elevator bank. My blood ran cold when I saw the floor indicator numbers rapidly climbing. Nine¡­ ten. Toote. The elevator had already reached the rooftop. A sudden suspicion made me whirl around, scanning the crowd for the wine¨Cspilling stranger. He had vanishedpletely. This was no ident. Someone had deliberately dyed me. I punched the call button for the second elevator, cursing under my breath. Every second I wasted could cost Olivia her life. Outside the manor¡¯s side entrance, hidden in shadows, a ck Audi idled silently. The man who had blocked me slipped into the driver¡¯s seat, his apologetic demeanorpletely gone. ¡°Brother yton, it¡¯s done,¡± he reported crisply. ||| O r < Chapter 52: Blood on the In the back seat, yton Thornton nodded withnguid satisfaction. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± The driver hesitated. ¡°Aren¡¯t we waiting for Miss Reed?¡± yton¡¯s lips curled into a contemptuous sneer. ¡°Brother Frederick only told us to help ruin the engagement party, not to ensure that foolish woman escapes unscathed. If we wait for her, none of us will get away tonight.¡± Without another word, the car pulled away, melting into the darkness as they abandoned Vanessa to her fate. (Olivia¡¯s POV) +3 Points > The elevator doors slid open at the rooftop level. My heart hammered against my ribs as I pushed open the heavy iron door.. Cold night wind whipped around me, tearing at my carefully styled hair and elegant dress. The beautiful engagement gown that had made me feel like a princess now felt like a cruel joke. I spotted Grace immediately. My eight¨Cyear¨Cold half¨Csister sat bound to a chair at the very edge of the rooftop. ck duct tape sealed her mouth, thick ropes binding her small limbs. Her eyes were wide with terror, tears streaming down her cheeks. Behind her stood Vanessa Reed, her face twisted with hatred. A silver dagger gleamed in her hand, pressed against Grace¡¯s delicate throat. Two men in ck stood on either side, their expressions nk and menacing. My stomach lurched at the sight. Just this morning, Grace had been spinning in circles, chanting about my engagement. Now she was a hostage, her innocent life threatened because of me. ¡°Let my sister go,¡± I said, fighting to keep my voice steady. ¡°I will do anything you want.¡± Vanessa¡¯s eyes burned with a mixture of hatred and despair. ¡°Come here,¡± shemanded. ¡°Exchange yourself for her.¡± Without hesitation, I stepped forward. Grace¡¯s life was worth any risk to my own. I moved slowly, careful not to provoke Vanessa into harming Grace. When I was just two meters away, a desperate shout broke the tension. O Vanessa¡¯s face contorted as she watched us. Tears filled her eyes, spilling down her cheeks as she began tough¨Ca high, broken sound that sent chills down my spine. ¡°Such enviable love, truly! Ha ha ha ha! Wonderful, wonderful!¡± Herughter turned to sobs, then back toughter again. ¡°Why? Why is it you who has his love?¡± In that moment, something in Vanessa snappedpletely. With a primal scream, she lunged forward, silver dagger raised high, aiming for my back. Everything happened in slow motion. Connor saw the deing but couldn¡¯t push me away and counterattack in time. Instead, he twisted his body, cing himself between me and the dagger. The silver de sank deep into his waist. Connor grunted in pain, his eyes widening as blood immediately darkened his clothes. The red stain spread rapidly, far worse than the wine that had been spilled on him earlier. Vanessa stumbled backward, her face a mask of horror at what she¡¯d done. ¡°No! Why? Connor, why do you care for her so much? You¡¯re willing to die for her?!¡± I stepped away from Connor¡¯s embrace and looked down. The silver dagger was embedded in his waist, blood seeping around the wound. My face drained of all color. ??? ????? ???????s ??? ?????s??? ?? Find¡ïNovel ¡°Con!¡± I cried out, tears streaming uncontrobly down my face. The rooftop door burst open again. A squad of security personnel flooded the area, quickly subduing Vanessa¡¯s guards. They rescued Grace and pinned Vanessa to the ground, wrenching the weapon from her hand. I copsed onto my knees beside Connor, sobbing as I clung to him. ¡°I¡¯m sorry¡­ Con, I¡¯m so sorry¡­ It¡¯s all my fault.¡± My voice was hoarse, broken by guilt and grief. I had been so foolish. My n had been to feignpliance, exchange myself for Grace, then find a chance to subdue 111 O < Chapter 52 Blood on the¡­ Vanessa. I believed I could handle her¨Cshe had no realbat skills, and I had enough training to win. + Points > But everything had happened too fast. I never expected Connor to arrive so quickly. Never imagined Vanessa would be so desperate as to try to kill me outright. Never dreamed Connor would shield me with his own body. Self¨Creproach crushed me like a physical weight. I should have trusted Connor¡¯s n. Should have waited for his security team instead of rushing in impulsively. If I hadn¡¯t been so stubborn, he wouldn¡¯t be lying here bleeding. I would rather have taken the de myself a thousand times over. Hourster, I stood in the corridor outside the emergency room. A heavy silence had descended upon everyone waiting there. Connor was inside undergoing emergency surgery, his life hanging by a thread. The silver from the dagger made the wound particrly dangerous for a werewolf. The doctors had been working for hours, but we had no updates yet. Eleanor Rivers and Katherine Rivers stood nearby, their eyes red from crying. William Rivers paced the corridor, his face a mask of controlled fury. I leaned against the wall, my tears long since dried. My expression was hollow, my spirit shattered by remorse and fear. The beautiful engagement gown I still wore was now stained with Connor¡¯s blood¨Ca cruel reminder of how quickly joy had turned to tragedy. Grace had been safely escorted home by Natalie. The grand engagement ceremony that was supposed to unite our families had been irrevocably ruined. William Rivers stopped pacing, his face ashen with a mix of anger and disbelief. ¡°How could this happen? Wasn¡¯t Vanessa supposed to be in the Western Territory? How did she sneak back without us knowing?¡± Frank Langley, Connor¡¯s assistant, stepped forward. His normallyposed face was drawn with fatigue. ¡°Sir, we just discovered that Miss Reed secretly met with Frederick Warner in the US. It was Frederick Warner who helped her evade our surveince and return,¡± At the mention of Frederick Warner, William was momentarily stunned. His face O Chapter 52 Blood on the drained of color, as though he¡¯d seen a ghost. +8 Points > Katherine, who had been sobbing just seconds before, suddenly exploded with fury. ¡°Frederick Warner?!¡± she screamed, herposure shatteringpletely. ¡°That bastard! That illegitimate son dares to strike at our family?!¡± ||| Èý Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 95 + Points > ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? find(?)ovel Chapter 53: Family Secrets and Aftermath¨C1 Chapter 53: Family Secrets and Aftermath (Katherine¡¯s POV) ¡°I told you long ago that bastard must not be allowed to live!¡± I sobbed, pointing an using finger at William¡¯s face. My voice echoed through the sterile hospital corridor, each word dripping with years of suppressed rage. ¡°All because of your affair back then, fathering a child with that woman! Now, your bastard has caused Connor to be gravely injured, his life hanging by a thread!¡± William¡¯s face darkened with shame as hospital staff and other visitors nced our way. I didn¡¯t care who heard. My son was fighting for his life because of his mistakes. ¡°Listen to me, William,¡± I hissed, stepping closer. ¡°If anything happens to Connor, I¡¯ll have someone kill that bastard of yours!¡± William flinched as though I¡¯d struck him. His jaw tightened, eyes shing with a mixture of guilt and defensiveness. ¡°What¡¯s the point of bringing this up now?¡± he growled, keeping his voice low. ¡°I never wanted her to have that child. Frederick¡¯s mother told me she¡¯d aborted it, then secretly ran off to America. What could I do?¡± My fury only intensified at his pathetic excuses. ¡°I think you¡¯re just pretending ignorance. Maybe you were secretly happy she gave you a child!¡± The words hung in the air between us, sharp and poisonous. William¡¯s face contorted with anger, but I could see the truth in his eyes. (Richard¡¯s POV) I stood awkwardly nearby, witnessing the Rivers family¡¯s dirtyundry being aired in public. As Alpha of the Winters pack and Olivia¡¯s father, I¡¯de to support my daughter through this nightmare, not to be privy to another pack¡¯s scandals. A flicker of embarrassment crossed my face as Katherine¡¯s usations grew louder. This was hardly the time or ce for such revtions. ||| O < Chapter 53 Family Secret +6 Points > Eleanor Rivers, Connor¡¯s grandmother, sat rigidly in a nearby chair. Despite her obvious grief, she maintained a formidableposure thatmanded respect. Her silver hair was perfectly styled despite the hours of waiting, her posture impable. ¡°Enough!¡± she suddenly barked, her aura oppressive and cold. ¡°What time do you think it is to be quarreling like this? You¡¯re humiliating the entire Rivers pack in front of our inws!¡± Her authority silenced the room instantly. Even Katherine, still trembling with anger and tears streaming down her face, dared not continue her tirade. (Eleanor¡¯s POV) I fixed my sharp gaze on Katherine, my daughter¨Cinw of thirty years. Her behavior was uneptable, regardless of her distress. ¡°Katherine,¡± I said coldly, ¡°Connor is still fighting for his life inside. Saying things like ¡®if anything happens¡®¨Care you cursing your own son?¡± Katherine¡¯s tears flowed harder as she stammered, ¡°Mother¡­ I didn¡¯t mean that¡­¡± William¡¯s patience snapped again. ¡°Stop crying,¡± he ordered harshly. ¡°Our son is still in surgery. Crying now is just unlucky.¡± Katherine turned away, weeping silently into her handkerchief. Her shoulders shook with the effort of containing her sobs. Richard Winters stepped forward awkwardly, clearly ufortable but trying to offer I nodded slightly in acknowledgment of his attempt. At least someone was trying to maintain decorum in this dreadful situation. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I stood apart from the Rivers family, my back against the cold hospital wall. Their voices faded into meaningless noise around me. None of it registered¨Cnot Katherine¡¯s usations, not William¡¯s defenses, not Eleanor¡¯s reprimands. My world had shrunk to a single point of crushing self¨Cme and fear. Each second dragged like an eternity. My chest felt tight, my heart throbbing painfully O < Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > ||| O Vote Whisper 96 Chapter 53: Family Secrets and Aftermath¨C2 Relief swept through the hall like a physical wave. My tightly coiled nerves loosened slightly, and the oppressive despair eased a fraction. ¡°The silver dagger missed vital organs,¡± the doctor continued. ¡°We¡¯ve removed all traces of silver from the wound. He¡¯s young and strong¨Chis werewolf healing abilities should take over now that the silver is gone.¡± Connor was transferred to ICU for observation, the risk of infection still looming, but the worst had passed. The heavy stone crushing everyone¡¯s hearts slowly lifted. (Eleanor¡¯s POV) ??? ????? ???????s ??? ?????s??? ?? Find_Novel(. With the immediate crisis over, my thoughts turned to what had happened. How had this disaster urred at what should have been a joyous family asion? My gaze hardened as I addressed the family gathered in the waiting area. ¡°How did Vanessa sneak into the estate? Our security is tight¨Cno invitation, no entry. Has anyone found out?¡± William, recalling the barrage of missed calls during the chaos, hurriedly pulled out his phone and dialed back. After a brief conversation, his expression darkened further. ¡°The investigation shows Vanessa entered as yton Thornton¡¯s femalepanion,¡± he reported grimly. ¡°She wore a mask, and since Grey family¡¯s Third Young Master personally brought her, the guards didn¡¯t insist on removing it.¡± ¡°Grey family?¡± My brows furrowed deeply. This connection was unexpected and concerning. ¡°When did Vanessa get involved with the Grey family?¡± William sighed heavily. ¡°ording to them, yton met her by chance in America. She never told him she¡¯d been sent abroad as punishment. He ims this is our family¡¯s private affair.¡± He ran a hand through his graying hair. ¡°As for why she came as hispanion, yton said she wanted to surprise us.¡± My eyes grew colder with each word. ¡°A perfect excuse, but I don¡¯t buy it. Keep digging.¡± Èý ||| O r Chapter 53: Family Secret William nodded, his expression grim. At this moment, Frank Langley, Connor¡¯s assistant, approached respectfully. ¡°Elder Rivers, Chairman William,¡± he said with a slight bow, ¡°the police just called.¡± My gaze sharpened. ¡°What did they say?¡± Frank replied evenly, ¡°Vanessa is suspected of k********g and attempted murder. They ask if the family wants to handle this officially or¡­¡± (Katherine¡¯s POV) +8 Points > Before he could finish, I cut in with a bitter sneer. ¡°She harmed Connor and you think we¡¯d shield her? Ridiculous.¡± My voice shook with rage and betrayal. This girl I had raised as my own daughter had tried to kill my son. ¡°Of course, prosecute her to the fullest extent of thew!¡± Eleanor nodded after a thoughtful pause. ¡°Severe punishment,¡± she agreed, her voice like steel. Frank bowed slightly. ¡°Yes. Also, Mr. Rivers previously instructed me to look into Vanessa. I found out that those two thugs who harassed Miss Winters before were hired by her.¡± The revtion hit me like a physical blow. I¡¯d known Vanessa was obsessed with Connor, but to go this far¡­ (Richard¡¯s POV) ¡°What?¡± I exploded, unable to contain my anger. ¡°Vanessa harassed our daughter? This is outrageous!¡± My protective instincts red. As Alpha of the Winters pack, I¡¯d failed to protect my daughter from these threats. Frank confirmed with a solemn nod. ¡°She even contacted Miss Winters¡®w firm to have them ¡®special treat¡® her.¡± My voice shook with fury. ¡°Unbelievable!¡± I nced at Olivia, who stood silently against the wall. How much had she endured ||| O < Chapter 53 Family Secret without telling me? My heart ached with guilt for not being there for her. (Eleanor¡¯s POV) + Points > A heavy sigh escaped me as I considered the full scope of this disaster. ¡°Vanessa turning out like this, we Rivers family share the me.¡± I looked at Katherine, whose face was a mask of pain and betrayal. ¡°Katherine, you adopted her to repay Victoria Reed¡¯s kindness. Now she¡¯s grown up, and we¡¯ve given her everything. That debt is repaid.¡± My voice turned solemn as I made the decision that would alter our family forever. ¡°Her repeated crimes cannot be condoned. From this moment, she is expelled from the Rivers family. No objections?¡± atherine¡¯s expression was bleak as she whispered, ¡°None.¡± Her voice trembled with pain. ¡°I treated her like my own daughter, gave her the best education, tutors for piano and dance, dressed her like a Rivers heiress. How could she repay me with such malice?¡± She shook her head in disbelief. ¡°Coveting Connor, sabotaging his engagement, (Katherine¡¯s POV) Eleanor sighed deeply, her disapproval evident. ¡°How could a good child be like this? Katherine, see what you¡¯ve raised?¡± I nearly choked on anger and grief at her words. After everything I¡¯d been through today, to be med for Vanessa¡¯s actions was too much. ¡°Mother,¡± I protested, ¡°all these years I¡¯ve cared for her, you saw it with your own eyes. I gave her the best. But no matter how much you nurture someone, you can¡¯t control their heart. How can you me me entirely?¡± The olddy¡¯s gaze was sharp with disapproval, but William intervened. ¡°Enough. It¡¯s not Katherine¡¯s fault.¡± I was grateful for his support, rare as it was. Today had revealed too many family fractures, too many painful truths. Eleanor turned her attention to Olivia Winters, who had remained silent throughout 111 < Chapter 53 Family Secret. our family drama. Her face was pale, her eyes haunted with guilt and fear. + Points > ¡°Tell me,¡± Eleanor demanded, her eyes sharp as des, ¡°what exactly happened on that rooftop? How did Connor get hurt?¡± Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 97 Chapter 54. Silver Wounds. +8 Points > Chapter 54: Silver Wounds and Pack Pride¨C1 Chapter 54: Silver Wounds and Pack Pride (Richard¡¯s POV) I could barely contain the fury building inside me as I watched Eleanor Rivers interrogate my daughter. The hospital corridor felt suffocating, the antiseptic smell doing nothing to calm my nerves. ¡°So Connor took that silver dagger for you?¡± Eleanor¡¯s voice cut through the air like a de, each word dripping with usation. Olivia lowered her gaze, her shoulders hunched forward in defeat. ¡°Yes.¡± The elder Luna pressed on mercilessly, her eyes cold as winter. ¡°You were too impulsive! We¡¯d already called the territory enforcers, there were pack guards in the estate, couldn¡¯t you have waited? If you hadn¡¯t been reckless, Connor wouldn¡¯t have been injured for no reason.¡± My daughter¡¯s face crumpled further. The sight of her¨Cstill wearing that blood¨Cstained engagement gown¨Cmade my heart ache. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Elder Rivers, it¡¯s all my fault,¡± Olivia whispered, her voice hoarse and guilty. Tears shimmered in her amber eyes, so like her mother¡¯s. Something inside me snapped. The Alpha in me would not stand by while my daughter was med for another¡¯s crimes. ¡°Elder Rivers, what¡¯s the meaning of these words?¡± My voice boomed through the corridor, making several heads turn. ¡°It was your adopted daughter who stabbed Connor with silver, also your pack¡¯s member. Are you implying this dagger was meant for my daughter¡¯s body instead?¡± Get full chapters from Find¡ïNovel Eleanor¡¯s eyes widened at my outburst, but I wasn¡¯t finished. ¡°You say she was impulsive¨Cif your son had a silver de to his throat, would you calmly wait for the enforcers? Would you risk it, knowing the kidnapper threatened to kill in five minutes?¡± My voice grew colder with each word, my protective instincts fully awakened. r Chapter 54 Silver Wounds +8 Points> ¡°Your guards couldn¡¯t even stop them from k********g my younger daughter in broad daylight! Were they there to rescue or to collect corpses?¡± The Rivers family stood frozen, shocked by my uncharacteristic disy of emotion. ¡°My younger daughter was kidnapped, my older daughter risked her life to save her and nearly died herself, yet you me her instead of the real culprit? What twisted logic is this? Are you believers of ¡®victim ming¡®?¡± My hands trembled with barely suppressed rage. I hadn¡¯t felt this protective since Sarah¡¯s death. The silence that followed was deafening. Eleanor¡¯s face had gone pale, her lips pressed into a thin line. William Rivers, Connor¡¯s father, coughed twice, breaking the tension. He fixed Eleanor with a sharp, cold gaze, his ice¨Cblue eyes¨Cso like his son¡¯s¨Cshing with authority. ¡°Richard is right, this is not Olivia¡¯s fault. And what nonsense did you just say? You pampered Vanessa too much, that¡¯s why she turned out this way! This disaster is on you.¡± Eleanor¡¯s chest heaved furiously, her face flushing deep red. For a moment, I thought she might copse. ¡°Fine! Now you me me too? I won¡¯t argue with you anymore!¡± She spun on her heel and stormed off, refusing to meet anyone¡¯s gaze. William turned to me, his posture rxing slightly. The hardness in his eyes softened to something almost apologetic. ¡°Don¡¯t be angry, this is indeed our pack¡¯s fault.¡± Katherine Rivers, Connor¡¯s mother, nodded in silent agreement, her amber eyes filled with shame. The resemnce between her and Olivia struck me again¨Cthey shared the same warm¨Ccolored eyes, though Katherine¡¯s held decades more of life experience. I exhaled slowly, trying to calm myself. The anger still simmered beneath my ¡°Since Connor is out of danger, I¡¯m going home to check on Grace. She¡¯s still terrified.¡± ||| O 213 Chapter 54 Silver Wounds¡­ +0 Points) My heart was torn between my daughters. Grace needed me, but leaving Olivia here with these people who had just med her¡­ ¡°Katherine, see Alpha Winters off,¡± William instructed gently, acknowledging the respect due to an allied pack¡¯s leader. Olivia stepped forward, clearly intending to follow me. I shook my head firmly. ¡°Livvy,e home with me. If you stay and something happens with Connor¡¯s injury again, they¡¯ll me you all over.¡± My words were deliberately sharp, meant to sting. The Rivers family¡¯s faces darkened with shame at the reminder of their matriarch¡¯s earlier scolding. (Olivia¡¯s POV) My lips trembled as I looked at my father. I was exhausted, guilt¨Cridden, but I knew what I needed to do. ¡°Dad¡­ I can¡¯t leave yet. Connor risked his life for me. If he wakes up and doesn¡¯t see me, he¡¯ll be sad.¡± My voice was soft but filled with determination. I couldn¡¯t abandon Connor now, not after what he¡¯d done for me. William smiled approvingly, his stern features softening. ¡°Richard, my mother was out of line just now. I apologize on her behalf.¡± His authority carried the weight of the entire Rivers pack. The apology was genuine, if bted. ¡°Yes, Connor would want to see her first when he wakes,¡± Katherine added, her earlier hostilitypletely gone. Comments Watch Ads (20) Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 98 Chapter 54 Silver Wounds +8 Points? Chapter 54: Silver Wounds and Pack Pride¨C2 She looked at me with something like eptance in her eyes. Perhaps she finally understood the inevitable bond between her son and me. Dad¡¯s anger seemed to soften a little. He sighed heavily, the fight draining from him. ¡°Fine. Stay here. I¡¯ll go see your sister.¡± With a final nce that held both worry and resignation, he left the hospital corridor. His footsteps echoed against the sterile tiles, each one taking him further from me. Left behind, my guilt overwhelmed me anew. I bowed again to William and Katherine. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, I acted rashly.¡± My shoulders slumped with the weight of responsibility for Connor¡¯s injury. Katherine gently took my hand, her touch warm and maternal. She sighed softly. ¡°Child, stop ming yourself. This tragedy is not your fault at all. You didn¡¯t want Connor hurt, and your father was right¨Cit¡¯s ultimately our Rivers pack¡¯s responsibility.¡± Her kindness broke something inside me. Tears brimmed anew in my eyes. ¡°I want to see Connor.¡± The words came out as a desperate plea. I needed to see him, to know he was truly alive and recovering. ¡°Come, let¡¯s visit him together,¡± Katherine said softly, squeezing my hand with warmth and understanding. It felt like a silent eptance of my ce in her son¡¯s life. Inside the ICU, the steady beep of monitors filled the air. Connory still, his normally vibrant presence diminished by the sterile hospital bed and the tubes connected to his body. I held my breath, watching his face for any sign of consciousness. After what felt like an eternity, his eyelids fluttered and finally opened. The first thing that came into focus was my tear¨Cstained, anxious face. My tears immediately spilled over again. ||| O r < Chapter 54. Silver Wounds +8 Points ¡°Con, you¡¯re finally awake,¡± I choked out, voice trembling with relief and heartbreak. Connor¡¯s lips curved in a faint but gentle smile despite his pallor. ¡°Don¡¯t cry, I¡¯m not dying.¡± His voice was weak but carried his characteristic quiet strength. Even now, he was trying tofort me. Katherine¡¯s tears flowed freely as well. She moved to the other side of the bed, taking her son¡¯s hand. ¡°You scared me half to death. If anything happened to you, I wouldn¡¯t want to live nymore.¡± Find the newest release on Find_Novel(. William¡¯s brows snapped together in disapproval. ¡°Stop saying such unlucky things.¡± Hismand carried enough force to make everyone instinctively settle. The Alpha¡¯s authority was unmistakable. Seeing my uncontroble tears, Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes softened with deep affection. He tried to raise his hand to wipe my face, but the movement pulled at his silver¨Cinflicted wound. His breath hitched in pain, face contorting momentarily before he controlled it. I quickly grasped his hand and sobbed out, ¡°Con¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t cry, Livvy.¡± His voice was hoarse yet infinitely gentle and pained. The intimate nickname that only he was allowed to use made my heart clench. ¡°As long as you¡¯re safe, nothing else matters.¡± ¡°No, don¡¯t say that,¡± I said, hastily wiping my tears with my free hand. ¡°We both have to be fine.¡± Katherine scolded softly from across the bed, ¡°What nonsense. Both of you must be fine.¡± Her voice carried maternal authority that brooked no argument. In that moment, I felt a strange kinship with her¨Cwe both loved Connor, each in our own way. ¡°Is Grace alright?¡± Connor asked weakly, his concern extending beyond himself even in this state. = O T Chapter 54 Silver Wounds. +8 Points > I nodded, touched that he would think of my sister at a time like this. ¡°She¡¯s safe now.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good.¡± His tense features eased slightly, as if one burden had been lifted from his shoulders. Katherine wiped her tears again. ¡°Stop worrying about others, take care of yourself first. We¡¯ll handle the rest.¡± Connor¡¯s eyes never left my face. ¡°Dad, Mom, please leave us alone for a moment.¡± William and Katherine exchanged a nce and silently withdrew, respecting their son¡¯s request. The door closed softly behind them. Only the two of us remained. Connor¡¯s gaze searched my face anxiously. ¡°Livvy, did anyone give you trouble?¡± The silver¨Cinflicted wound might have weakened his body, but his protective instincts remained as strong as ever. Even now, he was worried about me. I shook my head, my heart swelling with mixed grief, guilt, and overwhelming tenderness. ¡°Con, get well soon. We still need to redo our engagement ceremony.¡± I forced a smile through my tears, trying to give him something to look forward to. A faint but genuine smile curved his pale lips. ¡°Alright, I promise you.¡± His voice was weak but determined. In that moment, I believed himpletely. (William¡¯s POV) Katherine and I had barely stepped outside the ICU when my phone vibrated. Frank Langley¡¯s name shed on the screen. I answered immediately, moving away from the door to avoid disturbing Connor and Olivia. ¡°What is it, Frank?¡± The beta¡¯s voice was anxious and hurried,pletely unlike his usualposed demeanor. ¡°Alpha William, something bad has happened!¡± Whisper 99 Chapter 55: ICU Awakening and the Storm Outside¨C1 Chapter 55: ICU Awakening and the Storm Outside (Frank¡¯s POV) Get full chapters from Find¡ïNovel +8 Points > ¡°At the detention center, Vanessa Reed imed she was pregnant with an Alpha¡¯s child. On the way to Harbor City Memorial Hospital for examination, a ck SUV recklessly rammed into the detention center¡¯s vehicle, violently forcing it off the road.¡± My voice remained steady despite the gravity of what I was reporting to Alpha William. Years of service had taught me to maintainposure even in crisis. ¡°Several muscr men, all carrying weapons, emerged from the SUV. They took Vanessa away. The officers escorting her were severely injured, and they couldn¡¯t pursue immediately.¡± William¡¯s face darkened with each word, his jaw clenching tighter. ¡°By the time the territory patrol arrived, it was toote. Vanessa had been snatched away right under the officers¡® noses.¡± (William¡¯s POV) The news hit me like a physical blow. My hands clenched into fists as I processed Frank¡¯s words. ¡°How is this possible?¡± I demanded, incredulous that a prisoner under official custody could be abducted so tantly. ¡°Were our people asleep?¡± Frank¡¯s expression remained professionally neutral. ¡°The attack was coordinated and executed with military precision, sir. These weren¡¯t amateurs.¡± Katherine approached, startled by themotion. ¡°What happened?¡± she asked, her eyes darting between Frank and me. ¡°It¡¯s Vanessa,¡± I replied, my voice heavy with frustration and worry. Katherine¡¯s face paled instantly. ¡°Wasn¡¯t she already in custody? How could she be taken away again?¡± My brow furrowed deeply as I pieced things together. The fact that those who O < Chapter 55 ICU Awakenin +8 Points rescued her were visibly well¨Ctrained and armed convinced me Vanessa must have found powerful backing outside our territory. ¡°Mother was right,¡± I muttered, recalling Eleanor¡¯s warning that Vanessa¡¯s return was definitely not as straightforward as we believed. ¡°Vanessa has someone formidable behind her, and we must uncover who this is, and fast.¡± (William¡¯s POV) Katherine¡¯s expression darkened sharply, the truth dawning on her as her eyes shed with anger. ¡°Isn¡¯t it your illegitimate son, Frederick Warner, who helped here back from abroad? Why bother investigating? Send people to America now and drag that man back!¡± The words dripped with scorn, reopening old wounds I¡¯d hoped had scarred over decades ago. My face turned ashen, anger and helplessness mingling inside me. ¡°Can you stop calling him that? I was wrong back then, but Frederick is still my blood. Stop insulting him.¡± Katherine sneered coldly. ¡°Ha! A child born from cheating during our early years- what else should I call him? Since you betrayed our rtionship, why can¡¯t I speak the truth?¡± The bitterness in her voice cut through me. Our long¨Cburied resentment erupted amid the crisis, decades of pain surfacing at the worst possible moment. (William¡¯s POV) ¡°Enough!¡± I snapped, aware that Frank was still standing ufortably nearby, witnessing our marital discord. My face grew grim as I lowered my voice. ¡°Our influence doesn¡¯t extend into America. Even if it did, Frederick has built up his own power there, operating both sides of thew. Confronting him head¨Con would be suicide for our people.¡± The implication was clear: Frederick Warner had grown into a dangerous force, possibly the shadowy mastermind helping Vanessa. Our family crisis now extended far beyond territory boundaries. ||| r > An ominous storm loomed as the kidnapped Vanessa vanished into the shadows, protected by ruthless men and weapons. (Connor¡¯s POV) I was drowning in darkness, then floating, then drowning again. Chaotic dreams pulled me under repeatedly¨CVanessa¡¯s face twisted with hatred, Grace¡¯s terrified eyes, Olivia¡¯s tears as the silver de shed. The pain in my side anchored me to reality even as my consciousness drifted. Sometimes I heard voices¨Cmy mother¡¯s tearful pleas, my father¡¯s gruffmands, and softer, sweeter tones that could only belong to Livvy. When I finally broke through the surface of awareness, bright sunlight spilled across my face. The sharp scent of antiseptics filled my nostrils, pulling me fully into wakefulness. I blinked against the re, trying to raise my hand to shade my eyes. A sharp pain where needles pricked my skin made me wince. At that very moment, Olivia appeared at the doorway, carrying a thermal lunch container. Her amber eyes bloomed with gentle relief when she saw me. ¡°You¡¯re awake,¡± she said softly. She quickened her steps, cing the container on the bedside table. Her tone was soft and caring as she continued, ¡°I just went to make you some healing broth. You woke up just in time for lunch.¡± (Connor¡¯s POV) I turned my gaze to the container, surprise flickering through me. ¡°You cooked?¡± Olivia blushed slightly, the color making her amber eyes seem even brighter. ¡°Yes. I made it myself with herbs. It¡¯s my first time preparing this particr healing broth, so¡­ would you like to try?¡± Bathed in sunlight, I felt my usual cold demeanor melt awaypletely. My lips lifted into a faint, tender smile. Vote 425 O Whisper 100 Chapter 55: ICU Awakening and the Storm Outside¨C2 ¡°Of course.¡± The thought of Livvy cooking for me, preparing something with her own hands specifically for my recovery, filled me with a warmth that had nothing to do with the sunlight streaming through the window. (Connor¡¯s POV) She leaned close to adjust my pillows, her delicate floral¨Cfruity scent enveloping me, making my heart melt. For a fleeting second, I believed she might kiss me, and my heart sweetened like honey, pounding with a shy, nervous anticipation. It would be the very first time my Livvy initiated such intimacy outside of our night together. Just then, the hospital bed¡¯s headrest slowly rose instead. ¡°I¡¯m adjusting your bed so you can sit upfortably and eat,¡± she exined. Realizing my mistake, I felt a little silly, like a lovesick young man, but a warm smile rose on my lips nheless. Even injured, I couldn¡¯t help but want her closer. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I set up a small table over Connor¡¯sp, carefully cing paper napkins, then the container. Opening it revealed the freshly prepared dishes I¡¯d made with such care- lightly steamed vegetables and tender venison. ¡°The doctor said you should eat lighter food while you recover, so I made you vegetables and some meat, bnced with healing properties,¡± I exined, cing each dish down with gentle care. Connor watched me quietly, his ice¨Cblue eyes following my every movement. There was something in his gaze a mixture of tenderness and disbelief¨Cthat made my heart flutter. I lined up the little bowls steamed vegetables, venison, fragrant white rice, and a bowl of healing broth. ¡°That¡¯s quite a lot,¡± Connor remarked with a soft chuckle. ¡°What kind of broth is this?¡± O r < Chapter 55 ICU Awakenin +6 Points > ¡°Herb with wild game,¡± I replied, scooping a spoonful. I blew on it gently and raised it to his lips. ¡°Try some.¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) Just as he lowered his head to sip, his gaze halted abruptly. He spotted the blister on my right index finger. ¡°What happened to your hand?¡± he asked, his voice suddenly sharp with concern. I tried to hide it, but it was toote. ¡°I just¡­ burned myself a little in the kitchen. It¡¯s nothing, just a blister.¡± Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes reddened, his voice thick with distress. ¡°Does it hurt?¡± ¡°No,¡± I insisted softly, touched by his concern. ¡°Compared to what you suffered, this is nothing.¡± The silver wound in his side was so much worse than my tiny kitchen burn. I couldn¡¯t bear him worrying about something so trivial when he was the one in a hospital bed. (Connor¡¯s POV) I reached out to gently hold her slender wrist, bowing my head to blow lightly on her burn, again and again. My voice was hoarse with tenderness as I said, ¡°Liar. Burns always hurt.¡± Olivia¡¯s amber eyes misted over, but she shook her head, her voice trembling with Find the newest release on find[?]ovel affection. ¡°Really, it doesn¡¯t. Next to your wound, it¡¯s nothing at all.¡± My fingers cupped her cheek with infinite care. ¡°If you get hurt, even a tiny bit, I¡¯ll feel heartache.¡± Hershes quivered as she finally let herself lean into my warmth, her soft voice calling, ¡°Con¡­¡± That sweet, affectionate call nearly undid all myposure. I pulled her close, pressing warm kisses to her smooth forehead, flushed cheek, then her soft lips, tasting her sweetness and relief in one. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Momentster, I gently pressed my palms against his chest, pulling away slightly. My O r 214 < Chapter 55 ICU Awakenin cheeks felt hot, and I couldn¡¯t quite meet his eyes. ¡°Eat first, before it gets cold,¡± I murmured. +8 Points Connor¡¯s voice was husky, his eyes bright with teasing affection. ¡°Fine. Then after lunch, more kisses?¡± I pouted, ducking my head in embarrassment, refusing to answer; but inside my heart was bubbling with joy. This yful, tender side of Connor was something I was still getting used to. The fact that he could tease me like this meant he truly was feeling better. Relief washed through me, easing some of the guilt I¡¯d carried since he took that silver de for me. (Connor¡¯s POV) I tasted her steamed vegetables, my face lighting up as I swallowed. The vors were simple but perfectly bnced, clearly made with care and attention. Olivia¡¯s eyes were bright with nervous anticipation. ¡°How is it? Does it taste okay?¡± With a softugh, I teased, ¡°Delicious. You know, they say the way to a man¡¯s heart is through his stomach. Are you trying to capture my heart via my appetite first?¡± Puffing up her cheeks, she pretended to scold me. ¡°So if I can¡¯t win over your stomach, I can¡¯t win your heart?¡± Iughed again, squeezing her cheek affectionately. ¡°How could that be? Just standing there, you already have my heart without doing anything at all.¡± Her pout dissolved into a dazzling, uncontroble smile, happiness shining in her amber eyes. The sight was more healing than any medicine. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Everyst bite of the meal disappeared¨Ceven the healing broth was finished. Connor leaned back against the pillows, resting contentedly as I carefully collected the dishes. I was intent on washing them myself, not wanting to burden anyone else with the task. = O Chapter 55 ICU Awakenin¡­ + Points ¡°Let the nurse or Martha do it,¡± Connor suggested, watching me stack the containers. I shook my head gently. ¡°It¡¯s no trouble.¡± He gazed at me with deep affection and a faint trace of sadness. ¡°When did you learn. to cook with herbs?¡± The question heldyers of meaning. We both knew I¡¯d grown up.privileged, never needing to perform such tasks. ¡°Just these past couple of days,¡± I replied softly, not mentioning the hours I¡¯d spent researching healing recipes or the multiple attempts it had taken to get this one right. The quiet intimacy was suddenly interrupted as the door swung open and a group of people entered the room. Whisper 101 Chapter 56: The Unraveling Past and a p of Finality¨C1 Chapter 56: The Unraveling Past and a p of Finality (Third person¡¯s POV) Katherine Rivers walked at the front of the small group entering the hospital room, carrying a thermal container. Her face showed the strain of recent days, but her eyes brightened at the sight of her son awake and alert. ¡°Son, I brought you some food,¡± she announced, her maternal instincts heightened after nearly losing her son to silver poisoning. Behind her trailed Gabriel Andrews, Lily, and Evelyn Patterson, a beta hospital caretaker who quietly took her position near the door. The scene that greeted them was one of quiet intimacy. Connor was sitting up in bed, looking far better than he had the previous day. Beside him, Olivia held her own thermal lunchbox in her hands, clearly having just finished serving him a meal. Katherine¡¯s steps faltered slightly, but her smile remained warm. ¡°Olivia, would you like to join me for lunch?¡± Olivia politely shook her head, her amber eyes gentle. ¡°No, Luna Katherine, I just ate.¡± Connor immediately followed, his ice¨Cblue eyes never leaving Olivia¡¯s face. ¡°I¡¯ve also just finished eating.¡± Katherine¡¯s gaze fell on the thermal container in Olivia¡¯s hands. Understanding dawned on her face. ¡°Olivia, did you bring food for Connor?¡± Olivia nodded softly, a faint blush coloring her cheeks. The simple gesture spoke volumes about her feelings for Connor. Connor¡¯s tone was unmistakably proud as he addressed his mother. ¡°No need, Mother. Liv¡¯s cooking suits my taste perfectly. I finished every bite.¡± Katherine¡¯s face blossomed into a gratified, doting smile, the kind of smile only a mother relieved to see her son well cared for could give. The tension in her shoulders visibly eased. ¡°I¡¯m d to hear that,¡± she said, cing her own thermal container on the side table. ||| O ? < < Chapter 56 The Unravelin container for cleaning when she¡¯s ready.¡± +8 Points > Olivia handed the container over politely to the quiet beta caretaker. After lingering a Chapters first released on find?novel moment longer with Connor, she excused herself quietly. ¡°I should get back to my legal work,¡± she said, her voice tinged with reluctance. ¡°I¡¯ll Connor nodded, his ice¨Cblue eyes following her to the door. ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting.¡± Stepping out of the hospital into the parking lot, Olivia¡¯s momentary peace shattered upon seeing Ethan Grey blocking her path. His face was eager, almost desperate, his blue eyes hungry as they took in her appearance. ¡°Liv, finally, I¡¯ve been waiting to see you,¡± he said, stepping closer. ¡°Why haven¡¯t youe home these days?¡± By ¡°home,¡± he clearly meant Moonlight Manor, the only address he still knew. Olivia¡¯s expression instantly cooled, her earlier warmth vanishing like morning mist. ¡°Why are you here?¡± Her voice was t, devoid of any wee. Ethan¡¯s lips curled into a false, hopeful smile as he pulled out a glittering diamond ring from his pocket. He disyed it like some grand offering, his eyes expectant. Èý Whisper 102 Chapter 56: The Unraveling Past and a p of Finality¨C2 ¡°Didn¡¯t you say you loved this ring before? I bought it for you.¡± The ring was instantly recognizable¨Cit was the unique design Olivia once admired in a magazine and casually shared with him. Back then, Ethan had darkened, dismissively saying, ¡°Anything but a ring. I have no ns to get married anytime soon,¡± as if she was some desperate woman pushing him towards marriage. That memory made her feel insulted all over again. The audacity of him now offering what he once so coldly denied her burned like acid in her stomach. Suppressing her disgust, she sneered coldly, ¡°Sorry, I don¡¯t like it anymore.¡± She lifted her slender hand, revealing the dazzling moonstone engagement ring Connor had given her. The stone caught the sunlight, sending prisms of color dancing across her skin. ¡°I only like what my fianc¨¦ gifts me now.¡± The sight of that ring¨Ctheir ring¨Cmade Ethan¡¯s eyes sh with pain and jealousy, but he forced a smirk. He knew now that the man beside her was Connor Rivers, the powerful heir of the Rivers family, andpared to them, the Grey family was still rebuilding its influence. Still, he refused to back down, his desperation making him reckless. ¡°Liv, I heard your engagement ceremony was called off. So technically, you and he aren¡¯t officially engaged yet, are you?¡± When she looked at him as if he were deranged, he leaned closer, voice lowering to a poisonous murmur. ¡°So what even if you get engaged? People break engagements all the time. Even if you marry him, I won¡¯t let go.¡± His eyes gleamed with a disturbing intensity. ¡°A secret affair¡­ that¡¯s the most thrilling kind of love, isn¡¯t it?¡± Olivia¡¯s patience snapped like a brittle twig. Without hesitation, she raised her hand and pped him hard across the face, the sound echoing in the quiet parking lot. ¡°Get lost!¡± she hissed, her amber eyes zing with fury. O The force of the p left a red, swelling mark on his cheek, but Ethan just tilted his head and grinned wickedly. ¡°That was hard. Did your hand hurt?¡± ¡°Lunatic!¡± she spat, stepping away, but he doggedly blocked her path. ¡°Where are you going? I¡¯ll give you a ride.¡± His demeanor was bing increasingly desperate, his eyes wild with a possessive gleam. ¡°Go away!¡± she barked, kicking at him when he tried to get too close. Dodging swiftly, he taunted, ¡°What happened to the gentle, obedient little woman I used to know?¡± Ignoring him, she stalked towards the open¨Cair parking lot, only for Ethan to stick to her like a determined stalker, babbling on. ¡°I told my mother you¡¯re the Winters family heiress. She was so happy.¡± His voice took on a pleading tone. ¡°She even told me to apologize to you. She admitted she was wrong before.¡± He tried to sound sincere, but she kept silent, her disgust mounting with every word. ¡°She agreed to our marriage now. I¡¯m going to court you all over again, Liv.¡± His desperation was palpable, almost pathetic. ¡°Just give me a chance. I¡¯m not asking you to say yes now, but at least give me a shot, okay?¡± She finally reached the parking lot and stopped in front of the cier¨Cblue Bentley Continental GT that Connor had gifted her. Ethan froze. That was the car he¡¯d seen her driving back in Harbor City¨Cthe one he and Cassandra had mocked her for, assuming she had rented it for show. Seeing it again, realization and regret dawned on him, only to be reced by a twisted suspicion. His face paled dramatically. ¡°That ring on your finger¡­ that¡¯s the one you tried on at Lunar Jewelers that day, isn¡¯t it?¡± His voice trembled with usation. ¡°We were still together then. You couldn¡¯t wait to try on another man¡¯s ring while still my girlfriend?¡± His voice cracked with usation, eyes turning red with rage. ¡°You betrayed our rtionship!¡± Olivia felt sickened at his shamelessness. Her lips curved into a cold smile that never 111 O ¡± But Olivia no longer had interest in his excuses. She got into her car, mmed the door, and started the engine. The powerful purr of the Bentley matched her ??? ????? ???????s ??? ?????s??? ?? FindN0vel determination to leave this man in her past. Ethan ran in front of the Bentley, pounding on the hood, his lips moving desperately, still pleading, still refusing to let go. His eyes were wild, hisposurepletely shattered. Olivia¡¯s patience finally reached its end. Annoyed beyond endurance, she stomped on the elerator and drove straight toward him. Watch Ads (0/20) > O Whisper 103 Chapter 57: Cooperation in the Shadows¨C1 Chapter 57: Cooperation in the Shadows (Olivia¡¯s POV) Ethan Grey¡¯s words echoed in my mind like a persistent nightmare. +8 Points ¡°Even if you marry him, I won¡¯t let go¡­ A secret affair¡­ that¡¯s the most thrilling kind of love, isn¡¯t it?¡± I shuddered, trying to push away the memory of his desperate face in the hospital parking lot. The possessiveness in his eyes had been disturbing, almost unhinged. No matter how I tried to focus on other things, his deration kept resurfacing, making me restless and uneasy. The p I¡¯d delivered to his face had been satisfying in the moment, but now I wondered if it had only inmed his obsession further: I stared out the window of my apartment, watching raindrops trace patterns down the ss. How had things be soplicated? Just when Connor and I were finding our footing, Ethan had to resurface with his twisted derations of love. The next morning, I arrived at the hospital with a thermal container of fresh healing broth. Despite my efforts to appear normal, my mind was elsewhere as I entered Connor¡¯s room. ¡°Good morning,¡± I said, setting down the container and arranging the small table over hisp. Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes studied me carefully. I could feel his gaze following my movements, assessing my mood with that perceptive way of his. ¡°Livvy, what are you thinking about?¡± he asked gently, reaching for my hand. I fluttered myshes and deliberately looked away, trying to sound casual. ¡°Um¡­ that¡­ about Jessica Sullivan. What is going on with her?¡± It wasn¡¯t entirely a lie. The woman who had kidnapped Grace and nearly stabbed me was certainly on my mind, though not as prominently as Ethan¡¯s disturbing behavior. Connor¡¯s lips curled into a faint, meaningful smile. ¡°Are you jealous?¡± he teased softly. 111 O I puffed my cheeks, feigning indifference. ¡°No way. I just never heard you mention her before, so I¡¯m asking.¡± But as I recalled how that woman had kidnapped Grace and nearly stabbed me with a silver dagger, my jealousy quickly transformed into righteous fury. My amber eyes shed with anger. ¡°Where did you pick up such a deranged admirer? How can she be so crazy?¡± Connor beckoned me closer with a gentle gesture. Obediently, I moved to sit next to his hospital bed, still pouting slightly. He took my delicate hand in his, his tone bing serious. ¡°She was my high school ssmate. Back then, she was fervently pursuing me. I rejected her clearly. Then, in college, she kept chasing after me, but I never gave her any hope.¡± I lowered my gaze, lips pressed together. ¡°That¡¯s it?¡± I questioned, unconvinced. Connor gently pinched my cheek, his smile softening. ¡°That¡¯s all. We barely talked. Didn¡¯t even exchange contact info.¡± Still skeptical, I pressed on, ¡°Then how could she persist for ten years? That¡¯s not ten days or ten months.¡± Connor sighed helplessly. ¡°How would I know? Everyone around me knew how cold I was to her. In ten years, I barely said a few words.¡± I leaned in with feigned usation, my voice yful but sharp, ¡°Barely? How many, exactly?¡± He couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°Five¡­ six¡­ seven¡­ eight sentences, maybe.¡± put on a deliberately unreasonable face. ¡°Why say so much to her, huh?¡± Amusement and indulgence filled Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes at my cute jealousy. His voice was filled with pampering warmth. ¡°Nothing important. Just back in high school, when she confessed a few times, I turned her down politely. After that, we barely spoke.¡± My tone softened but my suspicion remained. ¡°So you truly had no feelings for her? She¡¯s quite pretty, after all.¡± ¡± O 273 Readplete version only at FindN0vel +8 Points Connor¡¯s gaze was deep and unwavering. ¡°None whatsoever. Because my heart had already been upied by someone else long ago.¡± I pressed coyly, ¡°Someone else? Who might that be?¡± He chuckled, ¡°Who do you think?¡± I mumbled, ¡°If you don¡¯t tell me, how would I know?¡± My amber eyes were bright with barely concealed interest. In Connor¡¯s eyes, my sulky and coquettish demeanor seemed to melt his heart I looked away with a blush. Still, I couldn¡¯t help but think aloud, ¡°When she confessed to you, you were in high school. I was just a little girl then.¡± The implication hung heavy between us ¨C surely he didn¡¯t harbor feelings for me so early? Connor admitted, ¡°I had no intention of dating anyone during high school.¡± This sparked my curiosity even further. With my amber eyes blinking, I asked directly, ¡°Then, when did you start liking me?¡± Connor searched his memories. ¡°At first, I truly just saw you as a little sister from a neighboring pack. But when you were in high school, and that bully Liam Davidson harassed you¡­ after I beat him up, I realized my feelings had changed.¡± 2 Watch Ads (0/20) > 425 E Vote Èý ||| O Whisper 104 < Chapter 57: Cooperation i Chapter 57: Cooperation in the Shadows¨C2 I pursed my lips, half reproachful, half shy. ¡°You hid it well.¡± + Points> He reached out to ruffle my soft honey¨Cbrown hair, eyes full of tenderness. ¡°I had to wait for you to grow up.¡± A trace of sadness shed in his gaze. ¡°Once you graduated college, I immediately asked your father for your hand in marriage. But you refused and even ran away from your pack.¡± My cheeks flushed with guilt. I looked away, muttering, ¡°I¡­ I thought my dad was sacrificing me for the pack alliance. How was I supposed to know you¡¯d been nning this all along? You didn¡¯t tell me anything. So unfair¡­¡± Suddenly, Connor made a pained face and hissed, ¡°Ow, my wound really hurts.¡± I panicked instantly, eyes darting to his injury. ¡°Did you¡¯move and tear it? I¡¯ll call the doctor!¡± Instead, he pulled me gently into his arms, chin resting on my head. His low voice was soft and coaxing. ¡°Just hold me a bit and it won¡¯t hurt anymore.¡± Iughed, realizing his little trick. ¡°You¡¯re teasing me.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not,¡± he murmured, stroking my hair gently. ¡°It really hurts. Be good, let me hold you, then it won¡¯t hurt.¡± I nestled quietly into his embrace, feeling his heartbeat and scent envelop me. In his arms, I momentarily forgot all my troubles, including Ethan¡¯s disturbing words. Connor¡¯s warmth was like a shield, protecting me from the chaos that seemed determined to follow us. (Ethan¡¯s POV) I stumbled through the hotel lobby, my head pounding from a night of heavy drinking. The memory of Olivia¡¯s car lurching toward me, the cold determination in her amber eyes as she rejected mepletely¨Cit was all too much. ¡°Mr. Grey.¡± ||| O < Chapter 57 Cooperation t + Points > A crisp female voice cut through my alcohol¨Cinduced haze. I turned, surprised to see a young woman draped head¨Cto¨Ctoe in luxury brands. Her face was unfamiliar, though something about her appearance suggested connections to the Rivers family. ¡°Do we know each other?¡± I asked, approaching warily. The woman leaned backzily on the sofa, raising her chin slightly. ¡°We¡¯re about to.¡± Her confidence was irritating, but I was intrigued enough to sit across from her. My tone remained guarded. ¡°Who are you?¡± She smiled faintly. ¡°Natalie Hughes, the adopted daughter of the Grey pack.¡± I frowned, instantly alert. ¡°Grey pack? You mean Connor Rivers¡® pack?¡± ¡°That¡¯s right,¡± Natalie confirmed lightly, then dropped her proposition. ¡°Care to orking with me?¡± sed, I asked bluntly, ¡°What kind of cooperation?¡± This content belongs to Find_Novel(. Her lips curled with a cold sneer. ¡°To break apart Connor Rivers and Olivia Winters.¡± I scrutinized her suspiciously. This could easily be a trap, some kind of test from the Rivers family. ¡°And why should I believe you?¡± Natalie let out a shortugh. ¡°Because the one I love is Connor Rivers. No one wants them torn apart more than I do.¡± She extended a business card toward me. ¡°I know you¡¯ve been desperately seeking investmenttely for your business ventures. Contact this person ¨C he¡¯ll invest in yourpany.¡± Her eyes narrowed with calction. ¡°But¡­ the condition for that investment is simple: work with me to destroy their rtionship.¡± I nced at the card, feeling dark emotions stirring within me. The offer was tempting¨Cnot just the investment, but the alliance with someone who shared my goal. ¡°Even without your investment, I¡¯ll do everything to break them apart. Olivia can only O < 213 +8 Points > < Chapter 57: Cooperation i belong to me.¡± Natalie¡¯s smile deepened, her lips curling with triumph. ¡°Then, Mr. Grey, happy cooperation?¡± I hesitated, still wary. Something about this seemed too convenient, too perfect. ¡°I¡¯ll verify your identity before I respond.¡± ¡°Sure.¡± Natalie calmly replied. 3 = Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 105 Chapter 58: Unexpected Encounter¨C1 Chapter 58: Unexpected Encounter (Ethan¡¯s POV) The drone of yet another airne engine still echoed in my ears as I stared out the car window. These past weeks had been nothing but a blur of hotel rooms, conference tables, and rejection after rejection. ¡°No investment opportunities in Harbor City at all?¡± Jason asked, breaking the silence as he navigated through evening traffic. I rubbed my temples, exhaustion seeping into my bones. ¡°Not a single one. The Grey name might as well be poison right now.¡± The scandals had hit us hard. My mother¡¯s schemes, Cassandra¡¯s maniptions, and y own mistakes had tarnished our reputation beyond immediate repair. Now I was orced to travel to neighboring cities, practically begging for investment. ¡°The meeting tonight looks promising though,¡± Jason offered, ever the optimist. I nodded absently, my mind elsewhere. My fingers moved automatically to my phone, opening the photo gallery I¡¯d been obsessing over for weeks. There she was¨COlivia, her amber eyes bright with happiness, her honey¨Cbrown hair catching the sunlight as she smiled up at me. The photos were from happier times, before I¡¯d ruined everything with my blindness and stupidity. Before I¡¯d lost her to Connor Rivers. (Jason¡¯s POV) I nced over at Ethan as we waited at a traffic light. He was scrolling through photos again¨Calways the same ones of him and Olivia. The sight made something twist ufortably in my chest. This wasn¡¯t the confident, sometimes arrogant Ethan Grey I¡¯d known for years. This man was hollow¨Ceyed and desperate, clinging to memories like a drowning man to driftwood. Suddenly, he leaned toward me with a wistful smile that didn¡¯t quite reach his eyes. O < Chapter 58 Unexpected E ¡°Look how happy we were back then.¡± +8 Points > He held up his phone, showing a picture of them at some garden party. Olivia¡¯s smile was radiant, while Ethan looked distracted, his gaze not quite meeting the camera. I said nothing, remembering the tinum promise ring he¡¯d asked me to source from France. ¡°For when I win her back,¡± he¡¯d said with such conviction. Yet he¡¯d also once dered that pursuing another man¡¯s fianc¨¦e was dishonorable. The contradiction was just one more sign of how far he¡¯d fallen. At social gatherings, he now drank alone in corners, sometimes calling Olivia¡¯s name in his drunken haze. It was painful to witness. I wanted to ask about the ring¨Cwhether he¡¯d given it to her during their confrontation at the hospital¨Cbut something in his fragile smile stopped me. Instead, I just sighed heavily, watching my friend deceive himself with memories of happiness that, looking at the photos more carefully, might never have been as perfect as he remembered. (Ethan¡¯s POV) The light changed, and Jason eased the car forward into the congested city center. Rush hour traffic crawled along, giving me too much time with my thoughts. I leaned back, staring nkly out the window at the passing storefronts and pedestrians. My mind drifted to the investment meeting ahead, wondering if this would be another dead end or if- My heart stopped. ¡°Stop the car!¡± I blurted out, sitting bolt upright. Jason hit the brakes, startled. ¡°What? What is it?¡± I didn¡¯t answer, my eyes locked on the sidewalk where two figures walked side by side. One was unmistakable¨COlivia, her honey¨Cbrown hair catching the streetlights, her delicate profile turned up toward herpanion. And beside her walked a tall man with an imposing presence, impably dressed in what was clearly a custom suit. Even from this distance, his aristocratic features andmanding aura were unmistakable. ¡°She recovered pretty quickly. Tough luck, that one,¡± I muttered bitterly, unable to tear 111 O < Chapter 58 Unexpected E my eyes away from the sight of themughing together. Without thinking, I flung open the car door and stepped out into the evening air. ???? ????s? ???????s ?? FindN0vel ¡°Ethan, wait-¡± Jason called after me, but I was already striding toward the pair, drawn by some maic pull I couldn¡¯t resist. (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°I can¡¯t believe you convinced me to let you out of the house,¡± I said, shaking my head as Connor and I walked toward the restaurant. His recovery had been slower than either of us wanted, the silver poisoning lingering in his system despite my careful nursing. For a week, I¡¯d kept him on a strict diet of healing broths with special herbs, watching his every move to ensure he didn¡¯t reopen his wound. ¡°If I had to eat one more bowl of that nd broth, I might have howled in protest,¡± Connor teased, his ice¨Cblue eyes twinkling with mischief. I couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°It was for your own good.¡± ¡°I know,¡± he said, his voice softening as he ced his hand gently at the small of my back. ¡°And I appreciate your care more than you know.¡± 44-(0/20) > Whisper 106 Chapter 58: Unexpected Encounter¨C2 The warmth of his touch sent pleasant shivers up my spine. After everything we¡¯d been through¨Cthe failed engagement ceremony, Grace¡¯s k********g, Connor¡¯s injury- these small moments of normalcy felt precious. My stomach growled audibly, and Connorughed. ¡°Someone¡¯s hungry.¡± I blushed. ¡°I barely had time for breakfast this morning before rushing to Moow. The case files are piling up.¡± We reached the entrance of the restaurant, an old establishment both of us had frequented since childhood. Despite its unassuming exterior, it was one of Riverdale¡¯s finest dining spots, and the line of waiting patrons stretched down the block. Thankfully, I¡¯d had the foresight to reserve a private room. I pulled out my phone to scan the QR code at the entrance, eager to follow the host inside and finally satisfy my hunger. ¡°Liv!¡± The desperate, longing voice cut through the evening chatter like a knife. My body tensed instantly, recognizing it before I even turned around. I looked back to see Jason Mitchell standing awkwardly beside Ethan Grey, whose blue eyes were fixed on me with an intensity that made my skin crawl. Instinctively, I moved closer to Connor, whose body had gone rigid beside me, a protective tension radiating from him. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Jason approached first, his smile friendly but uncertain. ¡°Long time no see, Liv. So, you¡¯re from Riverdale? You never mentioned that before.¡± I nodded politely. Unlike many in Ethan¡¯s circle, Jason had always treated me with respect, never looking down on me for my perceived lower status. ¡°Long time no see,¡± I replied, deliberately ignoring Ethan¡¯s burning gaze. (Jason¡¯s POV) 111 Chapter 58 Unexpected E + Pranty 7 I nced at the imposing man standing protectively beside Olivia. His presence was overwhelming¨Cnot just physically tall and powerfully built, but radiating an authority that seemed topress the air around him. ¡°And this is¡­?¡± I asked, though I had a sinking feeling I already knew. Olivia¡¯s face softened as she looked up at herpanion, her voice carrying unmistakable pride and affection. ¡°This is my fianc¨¦, Connor Rivers.¡± The name hit me like a physical blow. ¡°You¡¯re¡­ you¡¯re Connor Rivers?¡± Though I¡¯d never met him in person, his reputation preceded him everywhere in our circles. The Rivers family heir, the powerful president of Rivers Group¨Ca man whose influence and wealth dwarfed even the Grey family¡¯s at their peak. Suddenly, Ethan¡¯s obsession seemed not just unhealthy but dangerous. This wasn¡¯t some random man he could intimidate or outmaneuver. This was Connor Rivers, and the cold fury in his ice¨Cblue eyes made it clear he knew exactly who Ethan was. (Connor¡¯s POV) recognized Ethan Grey instantly. The man who had hurt Olivia, who had treated her as a recement, who had the audacity to confront her at the hospital while I was recovering from a wound that nearly killed me. My jaw tightened, ice¨Cblue eyes locking onto him with murderous intent. The air around us chilled as I let my dominance flow freely, a silent warning that this man was treading on dangerous ground. ¡°Do you have any business here?¡± I spat out, fighting the urge to physically ce myself between him and Olivia. The shorter man¨CJason, apparently¨Cvisibly shivered under the weight of my presence. He scratched his head awkwardly, clearly trying to defuse the tension. ¡°I was wondering if we might have the honor of dining together?¡± he suggested with a nervous smile. (Olivia¡¯s POV) My patience was wearing thin. After a long day at work with barely any food, thest thing I wanted was to deal with Ethan Grey¡¯s desperate attempts to insert himself 111 This update is avable on Find?Novel back into my life. +8 Paints Connor was still recovering, and I needed to get him seated and fed, not standing on the sidewalk confronting my ex. ¡°You may join, Jason,¡± I said bluntly, then pointed directly at Ethan. ¡°But he definitely cannot.¡± (Ethan¡¯s POV) Her rejection cut through me like a silver de. After weeks of trying to reach her, of nning what I would say when we finally met again, to be dismissed so coldly in front of Connor Rivers was unbearable. My expression darkened as I stared at her, drinking in the sight of her face even as she looked at me with such indifference. How could she have moved on sopletely when I was still drowning in regret? Comments Whisper 107 Vote < Chapter 59 Cooperation i +8 Points > Chapter 59: Cooperation in Ashes¨C1 Chapter 59: Cooperation in Ashes (Olivia¡¯s POV) I had just settled into my seat at the restaurant when movement caught my eye. Ethan Grey was approaching a nearby table where a young couple had just been seated. My stomach tightened with irritation. ¡°Can you give me your spot? I¡¯ll pay,¡± Ethan said to the man, his voice carrying clearly to our table. The girl¡¯s eyes lit up with interest. ¡°How much are you willing to pay?¡± ¡°Five thousand dors, is that enough?¡± Ethan replied without hesitation. The girl¡¯s eyes widened slightly. ¡°Are you serious?¡± Ethan nodded. ¡°Of course. Just open your payment app; I¡¯ll transfer it now.¡± Delighted, the girl quickly showed her code. When the money arrived, she happily dragged her boyfriend away. With a faint smile, Ethan pulled out the chair and sat down at the now¨Cvacant table right next to ours, leisurely pouring himself a cup of tea. I refused to acknowledge his presence, focusing instead on the menu in front of me. Connor¡¯s hand found mine under the table, giving it a reassuring squeeze. (Jason¡¯s POV) I stared at Ethan,pletely dumbfounded. Had he really just spent five thousand dors just to sit beside Olivia? This was a new level of desperation, even for him. I nced at Olivia, who was calmly ordering several signature dishes, plus an iced drink. Herplete indifference to Ethan¡¯s presence was striking. She didn¡¯t even spare him a nce. Helplessly, I moved to sit opposite Ethan at our newly purchased table. The tension in the air was thick enough to cut with a knife. Ethan¡¯s eyes never left Olivia. It was painful to watch him stare so hungrily at Chapter 59. Cooperation i someone who was treating him as if he were invisible. (Olivia¡¯s POV) N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on find(?)ovel +8 Points > When my iced drink arrived, Ethan couldn¡¯t seem to help himself from meddling in my business. ¡°Your period ising soon, don¡¯t drink cold stuff,¡± he said, his voice carrying that familiar condescending tone. I inwardly rolled my eyes. Deliberately, I took two big sips of the icy drink, letting my face bloom into a sweet, satisfied smile. Then I turned to Connor beside me. ¡°I haven¡¯t had this in so long; it tastes just like before,¡± I said softly. ¡°Con, want to try?¡± I knew my eyes were sparkling as I offered the drink to Connor. He naturally took my cup, drinking from the same straw I had just used. The intimacy of the gesture wasn¡¯t lost on anyone at the table. Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes met mine with warmth as he handed the cup back. ¡°It¡¯s good. Sweet, just like you.¡± ¨C I felt my cheeks flush with pleasure at his words. This wasn¡¯t for show ¨C this was us, natural andfortable with each other. (Jason¡¯s POV) Watching Olivia and Connor, I instantly understood what I was seeing. This was no arranged engagement of convenience. Their closeness was real and effortless. I couldn¡¯t help but peek at Ethan, who sat rigid beside me. His jaw was clenched tight, his gaze glued painfully to Olivia with a mix of anger and wounded pride. His fingers had whitened around the teacup, gripping it so hard I thought it might shatter. ¡°Have you ordered?¡± I asked, trying to distract him. Ethan ignored mepletely, still fixated on Olivia, lost in his own turbulent emotions. I could only sigh inwardly at my friend¡¯s futile stubbornness and start scanning the menu myself. The waiter approached, and I ordered a few dishes, knowing Ethan wouldn¡¯t bother. (Olivia¡¯s POV) 111 O Chapter 59 Cooperation i +8 Powds > Soon, the dishes I¡¯d ordered were served. The aroma of perfectly seasoned venison filled the air as the waiter ced it in the center of our table. From the corner of my eye, I noticed Ethan¡¯s gaze darkening further. He frowned, blurting out, ¡°Aren¡¯t you allergic to venison? Why did you order it?¡± I paid him no heed, happily enjoying the meat that Connor had so considerately cut into bite¨Csized pieces for me. The rich vor burst on my tongue, reminding me of childhood dinners in Riverdale. Jason awkwardly coughed from the next table. ¡°Ethan, maybe¡­ Olivia was never allergic. She just didn¡¯t eat venison with you because you¡¯re allergic to the herb seasoning they use.¡± This revtion seemed to stun Ethan. ¡°What did you say?¡± ¡°She¡¯s not allergic,¡± Jason continued softly. ¡°I once saw her with her colleagues eating a whole table of herb¨Cseasoned venison.¡± The shock on Ethan¡¯s face was mixed with disbelief and sour regret. ¡°Really?¡± ¡°Why would I lie?¡± replied Jason. (Ethan¡¯s POV) An acid pang shot through my chest at Jason¡¯s words. For three years, Olivia had never ordered venison when we dined together. I¡¯d always assumed she shared my allergy to the herb seasoning. But she hadn¡¯t been allergic at all. She¡¯d simply been amodating me, making a silent concession I¡¯d never even noticed or appreciated. Comments Whisper 108 Chapter 59: Cooperation in Ashes¨C2 My gaze drifted back to her. She was smiling radiantly while savoring a perfectly cooked piece of venison, animatedly sharing something with Connor. ¡°Yesterday, I won a really tough case,¡± she was saying, her amber eyes bright with pride. ¡°The evidence alone was over five hundred pages.¡± Connor listened patiently, cutting more meat for her, his ice¨Cblue eyes gentle with interest. ¡°What kind of case?¡± ¡°Defamation. I spent over a month gathering all the evidence with the client. It was exhausting, but worth it to win.¡± Her face glowed with excitement as she showed him a photo on her phone. ¡°Look, the client even gave me a banner to thank me!¡± She looked like a child unting a gold star¨Cpure, proud, eager for praise. I¡¯d never seen this side of her during our rtionship. Or perhaps I had, but never bothered to notice. (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°Our bigwyer Liv is incredible,¡± Connor said, his deep voice filled with indulgent affection. I blinked yfully at him. ¡°Just average, really.¡± But his praise warmed me through. Connor had always supported my career, never once suggesting I should quit or that my work was less important than his. I caught a glimpse of Ethan¡¯s face from the corner of my eye. He looked stricken, almost ill. I remembered how he¡¯d onceughed when I told him about winning a case, saying, ¡°All that work for what I spend on a single dinner? Hardly seems worth it.¡± At the time, I¡¯d swallowed my hurt, telling myself he just didn¡¯t understand. Now I realized he¡¯d never tried to understand. Connor¡¯s hand found mine under the table again, his thumb tracing gentle circles on my palm. The simple gesture conveyed more support than Ethan had shown in our 111 O < Chapter 59 Cooperation i entire rtionship. (Jason¡¯s POV) +8 Points > As more dishes arrived at our table, I quietly began to eat. The food was excellent, but the atmosphere was suffocating. Suddenly, Ethan¡¯s chair scraped harshly against the floor. Without saying a word or looking back, he stormed out of the restaurant, his rigid back radiating fury and humiliation. Heads turned to follow his dramatic exit. Ethan had lost this silent battle and fled in defeat. I sighed deeply, picking up my chopsticks again. ¡°Well, if he won¡¯t eat, I will. Starving here¡­¡± I muttered to myself. Across from me, Olivia and Connor continued their meal as if nothing had happened. Their bubble of happiness remained intact,pletely undisturbed by Ethan¡¯s departure. I couldn¡¯t help but feel a twinge of envy. Not for Olivia specifically, but for what they had together ¨C that easy, natural connection that seemed to exclude the rest of the world. (Ethan¡¯s POV) I returned to my car, hands shaking as I lit a cigarette. The smoke curled around me as city lights flickered outside the windshield, but I barely noticed. My mind was trapped in a cruel loop, reying images from moments before. Olivia and Connor sitting close on the same side of the table, their bodies slightly crowded yet she willingly leaned into him. Worse, I had noticed her slender leg resting intimately on Connor¡¯s thigh beneath the table a gesture of trust and ease she had never shown me, not once in our three Find the newest release on F?ndNovel ¨C years together. The cigarette burned down, scorching my fingers. The sudden pain snapped me back to reality, and I cursed, flicking the butt out the window. For three years, I¡¯d had her. And I¡¯d never truly seen her. O < < Chapter 59 Cooperation i. +8 Points > Now, watching her with Connor Rivers, I finally understood what I¡¯d lost. She glowed in his presence,fortable and confident in a way she¡¯d never been with me. I tormented myself by reliving these scenes over and over. The way she smiled at him. The way she leaned into his touch. The easy intimacy they shared that made my three years with her seem hollow and false. Taking out my phone, my face twisted with bitterness and surrender, I finally typed out a message to Natalie Hughes: ¡°I agree to cooperate with you.¡± Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 109 O < Chapter 60. Temptations, Chapter 60: Temptations, Investigations, and Revtions¨C1 Chapter 60: Temptations, Investigations, and Revtions (Ethan¡¯s POV) I finished my third cigarette, yet the agitation in my chest refused to subside. The image of Olivia leaning into Connor, her leg casually resting against his thigh, was burned into my mind like a brand. + Pointa With a frustrated growl, I started the car and headed back to my hotel. The city lights blurred past as I drove too fast, my knuckles white on the steering wheel. When I finally reached my room, I roughly tugged off my tie and hung up my jacket. The silence of the empty suite pressed in on me, until suddenly¨Cit wasn¡¯t empty at all. I froze in shock. There, in the center of my king¨Csized bed,y Cassandra Evans. She was draped in a seductive ckce slip dress, her body curvaceous and alluring in the dim light. ¡°Ethan, you¡¯re back,¡± she whispered, her gaze misty and sultry. The sight ignited something primal in me. My blood surged uncontrobly, my mind exploding into chaos. Though desire was already rising within me, I forced myself to scowl. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Cassandra¡¯s eyes shimmered provocatively as she shifted on the bed. ¡°Waiting for Original content can be found at FindN0vel you.¡± ¡°Get out!¡± My brows knit tightly, voiceced with cold impatience. ¡°No.¡± Her voice deepened with temptation as she stepped off the bed, her every movement calcted to seduce. She grabbed hold of my tie, smiling with intoxicating charm, and leaned in close. Her breath was warm against my ear. ¡°Tonight, let me stay with you.¡± I pushed her away, but it was half¨Chearted at best. Cassandra seized the moment, tiptoed up and pressed her lips against mine in a passionate kiss. O Chapter 60 Temptations¡­ 40 Points > A muffled groan escaped my throat as my resistance copsed. Instead of pushing her away again, I gave inpletely. The air heated rapidly around us. With sudden hunger, I scooped her up roughly and threw her onto the bed, taking over with feral urgency. We tumbled into a reckless night of indulgence, lost in lust and tangled sheets. In the darkness behind my closed eyes, I saw amber eyes instead of green, honey¨Cbrown hair instead of Cassandra¡¯s darker locks. Morning light filtered through the curtains as I woke naturally. My head throbbed slightly fromst night¡¯s excesses, and as I turned, I found Cassandra¡¯s face inches from mine. Shock instantly sobered me. I bolted upright, voice sharp and angry. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Cassandra¡¯s cheeks flushed with shyness, yet her tone was coy and victorious. ¡°Ethan, we were wild all night. You wanted me again and again¨Cdon¡¯t you remember?¡± I was stunned into momentary silence. My gaze dropped to the scattered remnants of our night¨Ctorn ck stockings, a messy pile of clothes on the floor¨Cand fragments ofst night¡¯s feverish scenes mmed into my mind. Disgust and remorse twisted inside me. I cursed under my breath, yanked clean clothes from the closet, and started dressing. ¡°Where are you going?¡± Cassandra hurriedly tried to hold onto my arm. ¡°Let go of me!¡± I violently flung her hand away. My tone was harsh,ced with self¨Cloathing. ¡°Warning you: Don¡¯t seduce me again. Now my heart belongs only to Olivia!¡± Cassandra sneered, her pride wounded but her sarcasm sharp. ¡°Only Olivia? Butst night, you obviously enjoyed me so much. Why deny your feelings? You still like me, don¡¯t you?¡± My lips curled with bitter contempt. ¡°Don¡¯t you know? Men can separate s*x and love. Besides, when I was with you, the only person I pictured was Olivia. Otherwise, why do you think I took you so many times?¡± ||| < Chapter 60 Temptations,¡­ Cassandra¡¯s face drained of color, her voice trembling with rage. ¡°Ethan Grey, you bastard!¡± +8 Points > I buttoned my shirt with a cold, mocking smile tinged with helpless sorrow. ¡°Didn¡¯t you always know I was a bastard? If I wasn¡¯t, would I have cheated on Olivia before we even broke up? Would I have lost her in the first ce?¡± Hearing this self¨Crecrimination, Cassandra actuallyughed, her eyes shing a taunting light. ¡°So, you¡¯re perfectly aware of what a scumbag you are. Truly, your shamelessness knows no bounds.¡± (Connor¡¯s POV) I sat behind my desk at Rivers Pack Headquarters, eyes narrowed as I studied the reports before me. The silver wound in my side had finally healed enough that I could return to work, though Olivia still fussed over me constantly. ¡°Well? Have you found out who took Jessica Sullivan that day?¡± I asked, looking up at Frank Langley. My senior beta stood at attention, his posture perfect as always. ¡°ording to surveince, the people who kidnapped Grace Winters during the engagement ceremony and those who took Jessica Sullivan away appear to be the same group.¡± This confirmed my suspicions. The attacks weren¡¯t random¨Cthey were coordinated. H 425 = Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote O Whisper 110 Chapter 60: Temptations, Investigations, and Revtions¨C2 ¡°We traced her whereabouts,¡± Frank continued. ¡°She¡¯s already been smuggled out of the country. However, the identities of those who escorted her remain unknown. Both our private detectives and the police hit dead ends quickly; the clues keep breaking off, as if someone powerful is deliberately covering up.¡± My fingers tapped rhythmically along the desk, brows drawn tight in contemtion. ¡°Seems the force behind them is formidable.¡± After a pause, I asked, ¡°Did you check with the Grey family?¡± Frank nodded. ¡°Yes, Alpha. Their response remains unchanged¨Cthey im Ethan Grey was unaware that Jessica Sullivan was your former admirer, and they insist it was merely a casual interaction between a man and a woman.¡± I kept my expression inscrutable, though internally my suspicions deepened. Arger, more sinister conspiracy seemed to be lurking beneath these recent events. First Grace¡¯s k********g, then the attack on Olivia, and now Jessica Sullivan¡¯s mysterious disappearance¨Call connected, all pointing to an enemy with resources and patience. ¡°Keep digging,¡± I ordered. ¡°And double the security around Olivia. I want her protected at all times.¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) Friday morning at Moow Legal Services started like any other day. I was reviewing case files when a notification popped up on my phone. The new litigation department head Caroline Lewis had posted in the group chat: [Tonight, our department dinner party. Voluntary attendance. Time and ce to be announcedter.] I smiled to myself. Since Caroline had taken over, the office atmosphere had improved dramatically. Keh Westfield had been arrested for statutory r**e, and Valerie Pierce had resigned after I sessfully sued her for nder. For the first time since joining Moow, I actually enjoyeding to work. O J Chapter 60: Temptations. +8 Points > My phone buzzed again with a private message from Jade Mitchell: [Lawyer Winters, will you go tonight?] Since I¡¯d rescued Jade from an assant a few weeks ago, she¡¯d be something of a loyal admirer. Caroline had even arranged for her to serve as my assistant, and we¡¯d bonded into genuine friends. I quickly replied, [Sure, since I¡¯m free after work anyway.] Jade responded cheerfully, [Yay! If you¡¯re going, then I¡¯ll definitely go!] The dinner was set in a decent western restaurant. The food was excellent, and the conversation flowed easily among colleagues who, for once, weren¡¯t trying to undermine each other. After eating, someone suggested moving to a bar for drinks. Normally, I would have declined, but after everything I¡¯d been through recently¨CGrace¡¯s k********g, Connor¡¯s ?????? ???? find{n}ovel injury, the failed engagement ceremony¨CI was exhausted and tightly wound. Maybe it was time to let myself rx a little. ¡°Sure, why not?¡± I agreed, surprising even myself. We headed to a quiet lounge¨Cstyle bar, whereughter and conversation swirled around us. Though my alcohol tolerance was poor, I epted a cocktail, then another. Soon my cheeks were flushing bright pink, and my mind growing pleasantly hazy. The tension I¡¯d been carrying for weeks began to melt away. By my third drink, I was giggling uncontrobly, teetering unsteadily on my barstool. ¡°Let me tell you, I¡­ I¡¯m the Monkey King of Flower¨CFruit Mountain, the Great Sage Equal to Heaven! You all¡­ you all better bow down before me!¡± Some of my colleagues, tipsy themselves, copsed over the table snoring. Others who remained sober¨Cincluding Jade, who didn¡¯t drink at all¨Cwatched with amusement, recording my antics on their phones. Jadeughed along, calling out, ¡°Pay respects to the Monkey King!¡± I burst into more giggles. ¡°And my fianc¨¦, he¡¯s¡­ he¡¯s the best fianc¨¦ in the world, you know? He¡¯s liked me for a long, long time¡­ hee hee hee¡­¡± 111 < Chapter 60 Temptations¡­ Jade teased, ¡°Oh? So much sweetness!¡± +8 Points ¡°I¡¯ll tell you a secret, but don¡¯tugh,¡± I continued, eyes ssy with drunken mirth. ¡°My fianc¨¦, even though he looks so amazing, actually¡­ he kinda has a problem in the bed n Someone else nearby, still sober, prodded curiously, ¡°What problem?¡± I just giggled foolishly again, swaying slightly on my seat. ¡°Well, I¡¯m not afraid of youughing at me, my fianc¨¦¡­ he seems to have a bit of an issue with¡­ you know¡­ that¡­ (Adrian¡¯s POV) I was nursing my moonlight wine at the bar counter when I overheard the drunken woman¡¯s words. Her honey¨Cbrown hair was slightly disheveled, her amber eyes unfocused as she giggled about her fianc¨¦¡¯s apparent bedroom problems. ¡°Pfft-¡°I nearly choked from amusement at the revtion that ¡°your fianc¨¦ has a problem in that department.¡± After I finishedughing, I quickly whipped out my phone. I recognized the woman from Harbor City¡¯s social events¨COlivia Winters, now engaged to Connor Rivers but formerly Ethan Grey¡¯s girlfriend. This was too good not to share. I tapped out a message to Ethan, whom I knew through Harbor City¡¯s elite social circles: [Heard that you have some, uh, ¡®bed performance issues¡®?] 3 = Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 111 Chapter 61: Drunken Confessions¨C1 Chapter 61: Drunken Confessions (Connor¡¯s POV) The rich aroma of aged whiskey mingled with expensive cigar smoke as I settled into my chair at Quinn¡¯s estate. The familiar weight of ying cards in my hands felt almost foreign after weeks of barely leaving Olivia¡¯s side. ¡°Gentlemen, shall we begin?¡± Gabriel Andrews asked, his voice carrying its usual measured calm. Quinn shuffled the deck with practiced ir, his movements unnecessarily showy. ¡°I still can¡¯t believe you actually showed up tonight, Rivers.¡± I merely raised an eyebrow in response. Since Olivia had started working at Moow Legal Services and moved into her apartment across from Riverdale University, I¡¯d made it a point to see her almost daily. After the silver dagger wound I¡¯d taken protecting her during our engagement ceremony, I¡¯d be even more reluctant to let her out of my sight. Tonight was different. She had a work dinner with her colleagues, and I¡¯d finally epted Quinn¡¯s persistent invitation. ¡°Deal the cards,¡± I said simply, taking a sip of my whiskey. Quinn¡¯s lips curled into that familiar mischievous grin that always preceded trouble. ¡°Wow, the moon must be rising from the west. Why isn¡¯t our Alpha Rivers picking up his little Liv tonight?¡± He dealt the cards with dramatic ir, his smirk growing wider. ¡°Got abandoned? Since when is a work dinner more important than you?¡± His tone was deliberately provocative, though careful not to cross the line that would truly anger me. Still, I felt my patience wearing thin. ¡°Abandoned?¡± I fixed him with a cold stare, my ice¨Cblue eyes narrowing slightly. ¡°She might be out now, but won¡¯t she stille back home to me afterward?¡± I allowed myself a small, cutting smile. ¡°What about you, Quinn? Picking up your 111 O r < Chapter 61: Drunken Conf. +8 Points > girlfriendter?¡± The barb hit its mark. Everyone knew Quinn was perpetually single despite his constant flirtations. His face flushed red, teeth gritting visibly. ¡°Andrews, look at him!¡± Quinn tried to drag Gabriel into the fray. ¡°Is this how an Alpha treats his friends? You¡¯re single too, don¡¯t you feel insulted?¡± Gabriel cleared his throat calmly, arranging his cards. ¡°Sorry, I¡¯m actually seeing someone now.¡± Quinn¡¯s jaw droppedically, momentarily forgetting my earlier jab. ¡°What? Since when? Who is it? Parker family? Thompson n?¡± He rattled off two of Riverdale¡¯s most influential families, naturally assuming Gabriel¡¯s girlfriend must be from our elite circle. Gabriel exhaled a plume of cigar smoke, his expression neutral. ¡°Just an ordinary girl from a small town.¡± Quinn blinked rapidly, disbelief written across his face. ¡°An ordinary girl? You sure your family would approve?¡± Gabriel shrugged indifferently, studying his cards. ¡°I¡¯m just enjoying herpany, not getting married. Doesn¡¯t matter what they think.¡± Quinn snickered, shaking his head as he discarded two cards. ¡°Aren¡¯t you afraid she¡¯ll try to cling on when you want to break it off?¡± Gabrielughed carelessly, revealing a coldness beneath hisposed exterior that I hadn¡¯t noticed before. ¡°Give her a couple of luxury items, some cash. If I want her gone, she won¡¯t even get to see me again.¡± ¡°True,¡± Quinn mused, shuffling the remaining deck with practiced ease. ¡°For people in our circle, if you don¡¯t want someone toe close, they simply can¡¯t.¡± I nced at Gabriel, noting the casual cruelty in his words. ¡°Just don¡¯t get too deep yourself and regret itter.¡± My voice carried a weight of experience that silenced them both momentarily. I knew better than most the value of a true mate- something I¡¯d nearly lost through my own foolishness with Olivia. ||| O Comments Latest content published on find¡¤novel 111 Watch Ads Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 112 With a giggle, her eyes sparkling with drunken adoration, she blurted out, ¡°Wow, you¡¯re really handsome! I did some quick fortune¨Ctelling, and guess what? You¡¯re my destined mate!¡± The word ¡°mate¡± hit me like a thunderbolt. My heart seized violently, blood rushing chaotically through my veins. I stood frozen, utterly unprepared for the surge of joy her simple, drunken words brought me. Readplete version only at find?novel Olivia tilted her flushed face up at me, smiling so sweetly that her dimples deepened. She looked like a mischievous kitten as she leaned forward suddenly, nestling her head against my chest. She nuzzled gently against me, her voice soft and almost purring. ¡°Mmm, even your scent is exactly like my mate¡¯s.¡± She inhaled deeply, seemingly intoxicated by the cedar cologne I always wore. ¡°It smells so good, my mate¡­¡± Comments Èý Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 113 < Chapter 62 Moonlit Confe Chapter 62: Moonlit Confessions¨C2 Content originallyes from find{n}ovel What happened next caught me entirely off guard. She suddenly leaned up in my arms, her movement surprisingly quick for someone so intoxicated. Before I could react, her soft lips pressed against my cheek in a warm, lingering kiss. Not stopping there, she moved to my chin, leaving another kiss that branded my skin like fire. I could feel the distinct mark of her lip color remaining on my skin, a visible im that sent my wolf into a frenzy of possessive pleasure. gesture was both innocent and deeply intimate. Something primal roared to life side me, demanding that I im her fully in return. With considerable effort, I tamped down that urge, instead gathering her closer in my arms. I strode purposefully toward the exit, my pace perhaps a bit too quick to be casual. Behind us, Quinn and Andrews let out appreciative whistles and teasing calls that I pointedly ignored. My focus was entirely on the woman in my arms, on getting her safely away from prying eyes and back to the privacy of her home. Inside my Cullinan SUV, I carefully settled Olivia into the passenger seat, securing her seatbelt despite her yful attempts to reach for me instead. The spacious interior quickly filled with her sweet scent, now mixed with the heady aroma of wine. It was an intoxicatingbination that tested my control with every breath. As I started the engine and pulled away from the club, Olivia continued her uninhibited affection. Her fingers tracedzy patterns on my arm as I drove, sending shivers of awareness through my body. ¡°Con¡­ Alpha Connor¡­¡± she murmured, her voice soft and yearning. ¡°Why don¡¯t you ever kiss me properly? Don¡¯t you want to?¡± My grip on the steering wheel tightened until my knuckles turned white. Of course! wanted to. I¡¯d wanted to since the moment I¡¯d first seen her all those years ago. ¡°Liv, you¡¯re drunk,¡± I managed to say, my voice rougher than I intended. ¡°We¡¯ll talk 111 Chapter 62 Moonlit Confe about this when you¡¯re sober.¡± She made a small sound of disappointment. ¡°Always so proper, my Alpha. So controlled.¡± Her hand moved to my thigh, innocent yet devastating in its effect on me. ¡°What would happen if you lost control, just once?¡± I took a deep breath, focusing intently on the road ahead as we made our way to Riverdale Terrace. Every soft word and touch from her tested the limits of my legendary self¨Ccontrol. ¡°Please, Liv,¡± I said quietly. ¡°Rest now. We¡¯re almost home.¡± 48 Points To my relief, she settled back in her seat, though her amber eyes remained fixed on my profile. ¡°You¡¯re so beautiful,¡± she whispered, her voice filled with wonder. ¡°Did you know that? The most beautiful wolf I¡¯ve ever seen.¡± Something in my chest constricted at her words. Even drunk, there was a sincerity in her voice that couldn¡¯t be faked. By the time we reached her apartment building, Olivia had finally sumbed to sleep. Her breathing had deepened, her head tilted slightly toward me, lips parted in peaceful slumber. I parked and sat for a moment, just watching her. The moonlight filtering through the windows cast a silver glow on her features, highlighting the delicate curve of her cheek, the sweep of hershes against her skin. With infinite gentleness, I lifted her from the passenger seat and carried her inside, using the key she¡¯d given me weeks earlier. The trust implied in that simple act of giving me ess to her private space had meant more to me than she could possibly know. Her apartment was quiet and dark as I moved through it with practiced ease, making my way to her bedroom. I carefully ced her on the bed, reluctant to let her go even as I knew I must. For a long moment, I simply stood there, my ice¨Cblue eyes softening as I gazed down at her peaceful face. She looked so vulnerable in sleep, so precious. My wolf howled within me, demanding that I stay, that I protect her through the night and every night ||| < < Chapter 62 Moonlit Confe¡­.. thereafter. +8 Points My hand hovered over her honey¨Cbrown hair, wanting nothing more than to touch her, to stay by her side until morning. But I knew that when she woke, she would likely be mortified by her behavior tonight. I respected her too much to take advantage of her vulnerability, even if it meant denying myself thefort of her presence. With great reluctance, I withdrew my hand and turned away, leaving her to sleep in peace. Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 114 Chapter 63: Drunken Confessions¨C1 Chapter 63: Drunken Confessions (Connor¡¯s POV) I watched Olivia sleep, her face peaceful in the soft glow of the bedsidemp. She looked so vulnerable, so different from the fiercely independent woman I knew her to
  1. be. My wolf stirred protectively within me, satisfied to have her safe under my watch.
Just as I was about to leave her bedroom, she stirred, her honey¨Cbrown hair sying across the pillow. Her slender fingers suddenly reached out, catching my shirt sleeve with surprising strength. ¡°Don¡¯t go,¡± she murmured, her voice thick with sleep and lingering intoxication. ¡°Tell me a¡­ Grey¡­¡± I froze, ice flooding my veins. Had she just called out for Grey? Ethan Grey? My jaw clenched involuntarily, jealousy ring hot and sharp through my chest. After everything that man had put her through, after the way he¡¯d treated her as a recement for his first love, she was still calling his name in her sleep? ¡°Liv,¡± I said, my voiceing out rougher than intended. ¡°What did you say?¡± She tugged at my sleeve again, her amber eyes fluttering open briefly before closing again. ¡°Story,¡± she mumbled more clearly. ¡°Tell me a story¡­ like when we were little¡­¡± Relief washed through me like a physical force. Not ¡°Grey¡± but a request for a story¨Ca bedtime ritual from our childhood. I felt a smile tugging at my lips, amusement recing the sharp sting of jealousy. ¡°You want a bedtime story?¡± I asked softly, brushing a strand of hair from her flushed cheek. She nodded sleepily, her grip on my sleeve not loosening. ¡°Like before¡­¡± My heart swelled with tenderness. Even drunk, she remembered our shared past- how I¡¯d read to her when we were young, during her visits to Riverdale. I carefully lifted her into my arms, cradling her against my chest. Her honey¨Cbrown hair cascaded over my arm as I carried her toward the bathroom. She needed to < Chapter 63 Drunken Conf. clean up before properly going to bed. ¡°Con?¡± she murmured against my neck, her breath warm against my skin. +8 Points > ¡°I¡¯m here,¡± I assured her, my voice low and soothing. ¡°Let¡¯s get you cleaned up first, then I¡¯ll tell you a story.¡± She nodded drowsily, her head nestling trustingly against my shoulder. The simple gesture of faith touched something deep within me, awakening every protective instinct I possessed. The bathroom light seemed harsh after the dimness of the bedroom. I set Olivia down carefully on the closed toilet lid, keeping one hand on her shoulder to steady her as I turned on the shower. ¡°Can you manage?¡± I asked, testing the water temperature with my free hand. She blinked up at me, her amber eyes unfocused. ¡°Don¡¯t think so,¡± she admitted with a small, embarrassedugh. I swallowed hard, my wolf stirring restlessly within me. This wasn¡¯t how I¡¯d imagined essing her for the first time, but her wellbeing came first. Always. nfinite gentleness, I helped her out of her clothes, my touch clinical and ectful despite my wolf¡¯s possessive growls. I averted my eyes as much as possible, preserving her dignity even in her vulnerable state. The shower was quick and efficient. I kept her steady with one arm while washing her hair with my free hand, the familiar scent of her honey¨Calmond shampoo filling the steamy bathroom. ¡°You¡¯re good at this,¡± she murmured as I wrapped her in a fluffy towel afterward. ¡°I¡¯ve had practice,¡± I replied softly, thinking of the times I¡¯d cared for pack members after injuries or during illness. After drying her off, I helped her into clean pajamas I found in her dresser¨Csoft cotton things with little moons printed on them. They looked adorably innocent on her, a stark contrast to the sophisticatedwyer she presented to the world. Once she was settled back in bed, I pulled the covers up to her chin. ¡°Now, about that story,¡± I said, reaching for my phone. O < Chapter 63: Drunken Conf Her amber eyes brightened despite her drowsiness. ¡°Really?¡± +8 Points > I nodded, scrolling through my phone until I found a collection of short stories I¡¯d downloaded months ago. I¡¯d never admitted it to anyone, but I¡¯d gotten them thinking of her, remembering how she¡¯d loved being read to as a child. ¡°Once upon a time,¡± I began, my deep voice filling the quiet room, ¡°there was a white wolf who lived at the edge of a great forest¡­¡± Get full chapters from find?novel I read until her breathing evened out, her features rxing into peaceful slumber. Even then, I continued for a while longer, savoring this rare moment of unguarded intimacy between us. When I was certain she was deeply asleep, I carefully set my phone aside. I couldn¡¯t leave her alone, not when she was this vulnerable. But I also wouldn¡¯t take advantage of the situation by sleeping beside her without her explicit consent. WI Watch Ads (0/20) > O Whisper 115 < Chapter 63: Drunken Conf 48 Points Chapter 63: Drunken Confessions¨C2 I called Frank Langley, keeping my voice low to avoid disturbing Olivia. ¡°I need you to bring my toiletries and a change of clothes to Ms. Winters¡® apartment,¡± I instructed. ¡°Leave them outside the door. No need to knock.¡± ¡°Right away, Alpha,¡± Frank replied efficiently. While waiting, I checked that Olivia wasfortable, adjusting her nkets and making sure a ss of water and pain relievers were on her nightstand for the morning. She would need them, judging by how much she¡¯d had to drink. After Frank delivered my things, I took a quick shower and changed intofortable clothes. Then, with onest look at Olivia¡¯s peaceful form, I settled myself on the living room sofa. It wasn¡¯t ideal¨Cmy tall frame barely fit¨Cbut it was the honorable choice. My wolf disagreed, wanting to be closer to her, but I silenced its protests. Olivia deserved better than to wake up confused and potentially feeling taken advantage of. As I drifted toward sleep, her drunken words echoed in my mind: ¡°My mate.¡± The simple phrase filled me with a possessive satisfaction I couldn¡¯t deny, even as I reminded myself she hadn¡¯t been in control of her words. Still, a man could hope. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Pain. That was my first conscious thought as awareness slowly returned. My head throbbed mercilessly, each pulse sending sharp daggers behind my eyes. I groaned softly, reluctant to open my eyes to what would surely be blinding morning light. What had happenedst night? Fragments of memories swirled hazily through my mind. The Moonlight Club. Singing¨Coh god, had I really been singing? Wine, so much wine. And then¡­ Connor. My eyes flew open despite the pain, panic surging through me. I remembered ||| O Chapter 63 Drunken Conf clinging to him, saying things¡ªembarrassing things about rtionships and Foints) Horror washed over me in waves as more memories surfaced. I¡¯d kissed his cheek, his chin. I¡¯d been all over him like some lovesick teenager,pletely uninhibited by the wine coursing through my system. What must he think of me now? I forced myself to take a deep breath, trying to calm my racing heart. First things first -where was l? Relief flooded through me as I recognized my own bedroom. I was wearing my favorite pajamas, the soft cotton ones with little moons that I saved forfort days. My hair smelled of my usual shampoo, and I felt clean despite the hangover pounding behind my eyes. Someone had taken care of me. Connor had taken care of me. The realization brought bothfort and mortification. He¡¯d seen me at my absolute worst,pletely out of control. Yet he¡¯d brought me home safely, made sure I was clean andfortable. Gathering my courage, I slipped out of bed, wincing as the movement intensified my headache. I noticed the ss of water and pain relievers on my nightstand¨Canother thoughtful gesture that made my heart squeeze painfully in my chest. After swallowing the pills, I padded quietly to my bedroom door, opening it with trepidation. What would I find? Had Connor left after putting me to bed, or¡­? My question was answered immediately. There on my sofay Connor Rivers, his powerful frame barely contained by the furniture that suddenly seemed much too small for him. One arm was thrown above his head, the other resting across his chest. His handsome face was softened in sleep, his usual intensity temporarily at bay. He¡¯d stayed. All night, he¡¯d stayed to make sure I was alright. Mortification washed over me anew as I approached him quietly. He must have witnessed all my drunken behavior, mypleteck of inhibition. What had I said to him? What had I done? O The memory of calling him my mate in the crowded club made me cringe inwardly, my cheeks flushing crimson. I¡¯d been so forward, so unlike my usual reserved self. I reached out hesitantly, gently touching his shoulder. ¡°Con, you should move to the bedroom,¡± I suggested softly, my voice slightly rough from the previous night¡¯s singing. He stirred, his eyelids fluttering but not opening. ¡°What time is it?¡± he asked, his voice deep and husky with sleep. ¡°7:30 am,¡± I replied, my voice barely above a whisper. What happened next caught mepletely off guard. With surprising speed for someone just waking, Connor reached out and pulled me into a warm embrace. His strong arms encircled mepletely as he inhaled deeply, his nose brushing against my hair. ¡°Sleep well, little wolf?¡± he asked, his voice yfully teasing. I could hear the smile in his voice, could practically feel his amusement at my predicament. He was enjoying this¨Cenjoying my embarrassment over my drunken antics. Utterly mortified, I buried my face against his chest, seekingfort even as embarrassment flooded through me. His familiar cedar scent enveloped me, somehow easing my headache slightly. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry,¡± I murmured against the soft fabric of his t¨Cshirt. ¡°I don¡¯t usually drink that much. I don¡¯t know what came over me.¡± N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on ?ovelFind His chest rumbled with quietughter. ¡°Don¡¯t apologize. It was¡­ enlightening.¡± I groaned, pressing my face harder against him. ¡°What did I say? How bad was it?¡± ¡°Well,¡± he drawled, his ice¨Cblue eyes dancing with mischief when I finally dared to look up at him, ¡°you did question my capabilities as a partner. Something about performance issues?¡± My eyes widened in horror. ¡°I did not!¡± ¡°You did,¡± he confirmed, his lips twitching with suppressedughter. ¡°Perhaps we should test that theory? I¡¯d be happy to prove my¡­ capabilities.¡± O Chapter 63 Drunken Conf. Points His fingers traced gentle patterns along my spine, sending shivers of awareness through me despite my hangover. The teasing suggestion in his voice made my heart. race, my body responding to him even as my mind scrambled to process his words. ¡°Connor!¡± I protested weakly, my cheeks burning hotter than ever. His ice¨Cblue eyes darkened slightly as he gazed down at me, his expression shifting from teasing to something more intense. His fingers continued their maddening path along my spine, each touch sending sparks of electricity through my sensitized skin. M Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 116 Chapter 64: Morning After Chapter 64: Morning After (Olivia¡¯s POV) +8 Points > My face burned with embarrassment as Connor¡¯s ice¨Cblue eyes twinkled with amusement. The memory of my drunken behavior at the Moonlight Clubst night made me want to crawl under a rock and never emerge. ¡°I did not say those things in front of everyone,¡± I protested weakly, trying to maintain some dignity. ¡°There¡¯s no way I would¡­¡± My voice trailed off as fragments of memories shed through my mind. Me, on stage with a microphone. Calling Connor handsome. Dering him my mate. The mortification was overwhelming. ¡°I was just talking nonsense!¡± I insisted, pulling away from his embrace. ¡°People say all kinds of ridiculous things when they¡¯re drunk.¡± Connor¡¯s smile widened, clearly enjoying my difort. ¡°Is that so?¡± ¡°Absolutely,¡± I nodded vigorously, wincing as the movement aggravated my hangover. ¡°In fact, legally speaking, I was a person with limited capacity for conduct. My actions shouldn¡¯t be held against me.¡± A deep chuckle rumbled through Connor¡¯s chest. ¡°Are you really trying to use legal jargon to escape your embarrassment, counselor?¡± ¡°It¡¯s a valid argument,¡± I mumbled, avoiding his gaze. (Connor¡¯s POV) I couldn¡¯t help but tease her more. The sight of Olivia Winters, always soposed and dignified, blushing and flustered was too delightful to resist. ¡°So you flirt with me, call me your mate in front of half of Harbor City, and now you¡¯re trying to run away?¡± I asked, my voice dropping lower. The familiar scent of her honey¨Calmond body wash clung to my skin from carrying herst night. It created an intimate bubble around us, heightening the tension between our bodies. < Chapter 64: Morning After Something shifted in the air between us. The yful teasing transformed into something more charged, more dangerous. Without overthinking it, I leaned forward and captured her lips with mine. Her surprised gasp melted into a soft moan as my fingers threaded through her honey¨Cbrown hair. I pressed her gently back onto the sofa, our kiss deepening with each passing second. What had started as a spontaneous gesture quickly escted into something neither of us could control. 48 Points 2 The passion between us felt overwhelming, unavoidable¨Clike a storm that had been brewing for years. ¡°Liv,¡± I whispered against her skin as I nibbled on her earlobe. ¡°Tell me to stop if you don¡¯t want this.¡± Her amber eyes were dark with desire, her breathing uneven. Instead of answering with words, she tilted her head and licked a hot stripe up my throat. The wolf inside me growled with approval. (Olivia¡¯s POV) We were clumsy at first, navigating each other¡¯s bodies with eager hands and breathlessughter. Connor was patient, mindful of my inexperience, taking his time to ensure myfort. Morning light streamed through the windows, casting a golden glow over us as we moved together. The air grew thick with heat and desire. I was nervous but excited, surrendering to the moment with the man I loved. Birds sang outside my window, making the scene feel almost idyllic in its perfection. Lost in the rising tide of sensation, I followed Connor¡¯s lead, trusting himpletely. His hands were gentle yet confident, guiding me through waves of pleasure I¡¯d never experienced before. We moved from the sofa to the bedroom, making love twice more before ending up in the bath. The warm water soothed my muscles as Connor held me against his chest. ¡°Still questioning my capabilities?¡± he murmured yfully against my ear. O Exhausted but happier than I could remember being in years, Iughed softly. ¡°I stand corrected, Alpha Rivers.¡± His answering chuckle vibrated against my back. ¡°I¡¯m d to hear it, little wolf.¡± (Henry¡¯s POV) Something was definitely wrong with Alpha Connor Rivers. I stood in his office at Rivers Pack Headquarters, delivering my usual morning report on pack business. Normally, the Alpha listened with intense focus, interrupting frequently with critical questions or demands for rification. Today, however, he sat behind his desk with a soft smile ying on his lips. His ice¨Cblue eyes, typically sharp and assessing, held an unusual tenderness that I¡¯d never witnessed before. Had someone possessed my boss? ¡°The negotiations for the alliance with the Northern packs are proceeding as nned,¡± I continued, watching him carefully. ¡°Their representatives have requested a preliminary meeting next week to discuss terms.¡± Connor nodded absently, clearly not registering my words. His fingers tapped a light rhythm on his desk¨Canother uncharacteristic behavior. ¡°And then the moon turned purple and all the wolves started dancing the tango,¡± I added, testing his attention. ¡°That sounds good,¡± he replied, still smiling. I blinked in shock. Something was definitely wrong. Connor suddenly seemed to realize I was still standing there. He straightened in his chair, clearing his throat. ¡°Excellent work as always, Henry. Is there anything else?¡± ¡°No, Alpha,¡± I replied, still bewildered by his behavior. ¡°Then you¡¯re dismissed. Thank you.¡± I nodded and turned to leave, my mind racing with theories about what could have caused this dramatic change in my typically stern boss. As I closed the door, behind me, I caught a glimpse of Connor leaning back in his The source of th?s content is find(?)ovel ?? 375 < Chapter 64. Morning After chair, that same soft smile returning to his face. Whatever had happened, it had transformed the Alpha I knew into someone almost unrecognizable. (Connor¡¯s POV) +8 Points > I couldn¡¯t stop reying the morning¡¯s events in my mind. The feel of Olivia¡¯s skin against mine, her soft sighs, the way she¡¯d whispered my name¨Cit was intoxicating. For years, I¡¯d imagined what it would be like to hold her, to im her as mine. The reality had exceeded every fantasy. The sharp ring of my phone interrupted my pleasant thoughts. Frank Langley¡¯s name shed on the screen. ¡°Alpha,¡± Frank¡¯s voice was tense. ¡°We found her.¡± My romantic haze evaporated instantly. ¡°Jessica Sullivan?¡± ¡°Yes, sir. Just as you suspected. After she faked the pregnancy to get out of jail, Vanessa Reed¡¯s men abducted her and smuggled her to France.¡± I sat up straighter, my focus sharpening. ¡°And?¡± ¡°The promised new life never materialized. She was sold to a criminal organization and¡­¡± Frank hesitated. ¡°She was treated brutally, sir.¡± Cold anger settled in my chest. ¡°Where is she now?¡± ¡°Our team retrieved her. She¡¯s in the basement facility, as you instructed.¡± ¡°I¡¯ll be right there.¡± The basement of Rivers Pack Headquarters was dimly lit, the air cool and damp. Jessica Sullivan sat tied to a chair in the center of the room, her head hanging low. She was barely recognizable from the confident woman who had once stalked Ethan Grey. Her body was covered in wounds inflicted by her captors, her once¨Cperfect hair matted and dirty. I entered silently, my footsteps echoing on the concrete floor. Jessica¡¯s head snapped up at the sound, her eyes widening with recognition and fear. ¡°Who put you up to the k********g attempt against Olivia Winters?¡± I asked without preamble, my voice cold. O < Chapter 64 Morning After +8 Points > Jessica¡¯s face crumpled at the sight of me. ¡°Please,¡± she whimpered, trying to turn away. ¡°Don¡¯t look at me like this.¡± I remained unmoved by her pleas. ¡°Answer the question.¡± ¡°I can¡¯t,¡± she sobbed, her body trembling. ¡°They still have my father. They¡¯ll kill him if I talk.¡± ¡°Vanessa Reed, you mean?¡± Jessica flinched at the name. ¡°Please, just let me go. I¡¯ve suffered enough.¡± I stepped closer, my ice¨Cblue eyes shing with dangerous intent. ¡°Are you sure?¡± 2 Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 O Whisper 117 Chapter 65: Cruel Alpha, Tender Mate¨C1 Chapter 65: Cruel Alpha, Tender Mate (Connor¡¯s POV) +3 Points ¡°What would I kill you for?¡± I asked coldly, my ice¨Cblue eyes piercing through Jessica Sullivan¡¯s terrified form. For original chapters go to Find[?]ovel She cowered in the metal chair, her once¨Cbeautiful features now marred by bruises and cuts. The basement of Shadow Den was dimly lit, casting harsh shadows across her face. ¡°Please,¡± she whimpered, tears streaming down her dirty cheeks. ¡°I know you hate me for what I did to Olivia, but-¡± ¡°Miss Sullivan,¡± I cut her off, my voice dropping to a dangerous whisper. ¡°Since you¡¯re not willing to say anything useful, don¡¯t me me for being impolite.¡± I stood up with a cold expression, mymanding presence filling the dimly lit basement. The concrete walls seemed to close in around us as I turned to leave. ¡°No!¡± Jessica cried out, her voice breaking with desperation. ¡°Please don¡¯t go! Don¡¯t leave me alone again!¡± Her chains rattled as she strained against her restraints, panic evident in her wild eyes. ¡°I¡¯ll tell you everything! Just please¡­ don¡¯t leave me here.¡± I paused but didn¡¯t turn around. My wolf growled within me, remembering how this woman had tried to harm Olivia. ¡°They kept me in a cage,¡± Jessica sobbed, words tumbling out in a desperate rush. ¡°For months. Like an animal.¡± I slowly turned to face her, my expression remaining impassive despite the horror of her words. ¡°The men woulde at night,¡± she continued, her body trembling violently. ¡°They¡¯d¡­ they¡¯d take turns. Said it was my punishment for failing their boss.¡± < Chapter 65. Cruel Alpha, T. Her eyes were haunted, seeing horrors I couldn¡¯t imagine. +8 Points > ¡°They barely fed me. Just enough to keep me alive. Said damaged goods were still useful for¡­ for entertainment.¡± I remained silent, watching her break downpletely. ¡°You¡¯re my only hope,¡± she whispered, her voice barely audible. ¡°When they hurt me, I thought of you. Not because I believed you¡¯d save me, but because I knew you¡¯d kill them if you found out. That thought kept me alive.¡± Her confession hung in the air between us, raw and painful. ¡°Who ordered the hit on Olivia Winters?¡± I asked, my voice devoid of emotion. Jessica¡¯s shoulders slumped in defeat. ¡°Vanessa Reed. She orchestrated everything.¡± Despite already suspecting this, hearing the confirmation made my blood boil. My foster sister had tried to kill my mate. ¡°And Frederick Warner is backing her,¡± Jessica added, her voice hollow. ¡°He¡¯s the one who arranged my¡­ punishment.¡± I nodded once, absorbing this information without revealing my thoughts. ¡°Thank you for your cooperation, Miss Sullivan.¡± Without another word, I turned and walked toward the exit, my footsteps echoing on the concrete floor. ¡°Wait!¡± she called out desperately. ¡°What¡¯s going to happen to me now?¡± I paused at the door, not bothering to look back. ¡°That depends on how useful the rest of your information proves to be.¡± I left the Shadow Den basement without another word, closing the heavy metal door behind me. Marcus Shaw stood waiting in the hallway, his expression as impassive as ever. ¡°Extract everything she knows,¡± I ordered, my voice cold. ¡°Names, locations, ns. Everything.¡± ¡°Yes, Alpha,¡± Marcus nodded, his eyes revealing nothing of his thoughts. I felt no sympathy for Jessica Sullivan. The silver dagger she had intended for Olivia 111 O < Chapter 65 Cruel Alpha, T¡­ +8 Points > could have been fatal. My wolf snarled at the memory, protective instincts ring. No one who threatened my mate deserved mercy. I checked my Timber Wolf Chronograph watch¨Cthe one Olivia had given me. It was nearly noon. She would be hungry when she woke up. ¡°I¡¯ll be backter,¡± I told Marcus. ¡°Call me if she reveals anything significant.¡± Without waiting for his response, I headed for the exit. My thoughts were already shifting to Olivia, my mood lightening at the prospect of seeing her again. (Olivia¡¯s POV) I woke to the most delicious aroma permeating my apartment. For a moment, Iy still, confused by the sounds of movementing from my kitchen. Then memories of the previous night and morning flooded back, bringing a rush of heat to my cheeks. Connor and I had¡­ I buried my face in my pillow, equal parts embarrassed and ted. I¡¯d never been so uninhibited, sopletely myself with anyone before. The scent of cooking food eventually lured me out of bed. I pulled on a robe and padded barefoot toward the kitchen, following the mouthwatering smell. The sight that greeted me made me stop in my tracks. Connor Rivers¨Cpowerful Alpha werewolf, feared businessman, and my childhood friend¨Cstood at my stove wearing an apron. His broad shoulders moved with practiced ease as he stirred something in a pan. ¡°Are you just going to stand there watching me, or are you going to say good morning?¡± he asked without turning around, his enhanced senses having detected my presence. Comments Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 425 Whisper 118 43 Points > Chapter 65: Cruel Alpha, Tender Mate¨C2 I leaned against the doorframe, unable to suppress my smile. ¡°I¡¯m enjoying the view.¡± He turned then, his ice¨Cblue eyes warming as they took in my disheveled appearance. His gaze lingered on my bare legs before returning to my face. ¡°Hungry?¡± he asked, his voice deeper than usual. ¡°Starving,¡± I admitted, moving closer to inspect what he was cooking. My eyes widened as I realized he had prepared all my favorite dishes: nched vegetables with herb seasoning, pepper¨Ccrusted ribs, spicy garlic shrimp, and winter melon bone broth soup. ¡°How did you know these are my favorites?¡± I asked, genuinely surprised. Connor¡¯s lips curved into a small smile. ¡°I pay attention, Liv.¡± Something about the simple statement made my heart flutter. How many people in my life had truly paid attention to what I liked and disliked? ¡°I didn¡¯t know the big bad Alpha could cook,¡± I teased, my amber eyes sparkling with affection. Connor flipped the shrimp with expert precision. ¡°There are many things you don¡¯t know about me yet. I only show this side to you.¡± The implication behind his words¨Cthat I was special, that what we shared was unique¨Cmade me blush again. ¡°Well, I¡¯m impressed,¡± I said, reaching for a piece of pepper¨Ccrusted rib. ¡°These look amazing.¡± Connor gently swatted my hand away. ¡°Patience, little wolf. Everything will be ready in five minutes.¡± I pouted yfully but obeyed, setting the table instead. The domesticity of the moment wasn¡¯t lost on me¨Chow natural it felt to move around each other in the small kitchen, preparing to share a meal. When we finally sat down to eat, I couldn¡¯t help but moan at the first bite. ¡°This is < Chapter 65 Cruel Alpha, T incredible. Where did you learn to cook like this?¡± +8 Points > ¡°Dorothy Jenkins,¡± Connor replied, his eyes watching my reaction carefully. ¡°I used to visit her after she moved back to her hometown. She taught me your mother¡¯s favorite recipes.¡± The mention of Dorothy¨Cmy mother¡¯s former cook¨Cand the connection to my mother made my throat tighten with emotion. ¡°You visited Grandma Dorothy?¡± I asked softly, remembering the kind woman who had been like a grandmother to me. Connor nodded, his expression gentle. ¡°She missed you. Said you stopped visiting after¡­¡± ¡°After my mother died,¡± I finished quietly. We ate infortable silence for a few moments, the food bringing back bittersweet Follow current nov?ls on find¡¤novel memories of my childhood. ¡°These taste exactly like hers,¡± I finally said, my voice thick with emotion. ¡°Thank you, Connor. This means more than you know.¡± His hand reached across the table to cover mine. ¡°I know how much you miss her, Liv. I thought this might bring back some good memories.¡± The thoughtfulness of his gesture touched me deeply. This wasn¡¯t just a meal¨Cit was a connection to my past, to the happy times before grief had changed everything. ¡°So,¡± I said, deliberately lightening the mood, ¡°does this mean I get breakfast in bed every morning now?¡± Connor¡¯s eyes darkened with heat. ¡°That depends on how exhausted I leave you the night before.¡± I choked on my soup, coughing as my face med red. (Vanessa¡¯s POV) ¡°What do you mean they took her alive?¡± I hissed, my violet eyes shing with fury. Trevor ke stood impassively before me, his muscr frame blocking the sunlight streaming through the vi windows. Èý < Chapter 65 Cruel Alpha, T¡­ ¡°Connor Rivers¡® men intercepted our transport team in France,¡± he reported mechanically. ¡°They retrieved Jessica Sullivan and eliminated our operatives.¡± +8 Points 7 Rage boiled through me. Jessica Sullivan knew too much¨Cabout my connection to Frederick Warner, about our ns for Olivia Winters, about everything. ¡°You ipetent fools!¡± I screamed, grabbing the nearest object¨Ca delicate porcin teacup¨Cand hurling it at Trevor¡¯s head. It struck his forehead with surprising force, shattering on impact. Blood immediately began trickling down his expressionless face. Trevor didn¡¯t flinch or move to wipe away the blood. His cold eyes remained fixed on me, waiting for orders. ¡°Find an opportunity to silence that b***h permanently,¡± I ordered, my voice cold with rage. ¡°She cannot be allowed to talk.¡± ¡°Yes, Miss Reed,¡± Trevor replied tonelessly, blood continuing to drip down his face. ¡°Get out,¡± I snapped, turning away from him in disgust. The door closed quietly behind him as he left. I paced the luxurious living room of my private vi, my mind racing with contingency ns. If Jessica talked¨Cwhen Jessica talked¨CConnor would know everything. He would know I had orchestrated the k********g attempt on Olivia. He would know about my connection to Frederick Warner. He would never forgive me. The thought sent a fresh wave of hatred toward Olivia Winters. That b***h had stolen everything from me¨CConnor¡¯s affection, my ce in the Rivers family, my future. I stopped before arge mirror, studying my reflection. My light brown hair fell in perfect waves around my delicate face. My violet eyes, unusual even among werewolves, glittered with malice. I was beautiful. I was a Rivers in all but blood. I deserved Connor, not that pathetic Olivia. Jessica Sullivan would have to die. Her father too. Anyone who threatened my ns had to be eliminated. Whisper 119 Chapter 68: An Awkward Revtion t Chapter na An Awkward Revtion you Reba¡¯s private estate on the outskirts of verdale was everything yet expect from a wealthy werewo home¨Cgudeus elegant and secluded enough that the one would hear my mortified exacth what needed right new ???s ??????? ?s ?????? ?? find¡¤novel ans. Which was Oh my god y it again! Lily headed dutching her stomach as tears ofughter streamed Reba ever eager toply tapped her phone screen with a wicked grin. ¡°Your wish is mymand¡± The video began ying for what felt like the hundredth time. There was swaying sightly on my feet at the Moonlight Club, my amber eyes unfocused and ssy fem tee much wine. My usually treat thoney hall was tousled as telung to Connor¡¯s chest like a lifeline. Conner, my drunk self whined on screen, nuzzing against his firm chest. ¡°Kiss imel Everyone should see how much my fiance loves me! lunged across the plush sofa, making a desperate grab for Reba¡¯s phone. ¡°Delete it right ince demanded my face burning with embarrassment. Reba, with the quick reflexes of a bort werewolf, held the phone high above her head wel out of my reach. Her eyes sparkled with mischief as she continued to torment me. Net a chance, Liv! This is pure gold¨Cwho knew our dignifiedwyer had such a passionate side hiding underneath?¡± I groaned and buried my face in a decorative pillow. ¡°I hate both of you. So much¡± Lily¡¯s giggles intensified as she yfully nudged my shoulder. And did you see how Connor responded? He couldn¡¯t take his eyes off you for a second.¡± I peeked out from behind my pillow shield, remembering Connor¡¯s intense gaze. The memory sent a different kind of heat coursing through me ¡°The way he was looking at you, Reba continued, fanning herself dramatically. Uke he wanted to devour you right there in the club.¡± ¡°Stop it,¡± I mumbled, but there was less conviction in my protest now. Lily leaned forward, her expression turning conspiratorial. ¡°So¡­ how is he? You know in bed?¡± I choked on air ¡°Lily?¡± ¡°What?¡± she asked innocently. ¡°We¡¯re all adults here. And Connor Rivers has a reputation for excellence in everything he does. I¡¯m just wondering if that extends to¡­ other areas.¡± Reba¡¯s eyes widened with delight at my obvious difort. Oh my god, you¡¯ve slept with him, haven¡¯t you? Your face is giving everything away! I wanted the floor to open up and swallow me whole. These two were worse than a pack of teenage wolves with their first crush. 0 C That he¡¯s amazing: Reba continued,pletely ignoring my distress. ¡°All that Alpha confidence must trante to the bedroom is he gentle? Or more¡­manding?¡± My checks burned hotter than ever as unbidden memories of Connor¡¯s hands on my body shed through my mind. The way he¡¯d taken control, yet always made sure I wasfortable¡­ ¡°Can we please talk about something else?¡± I pleaded, pulling a cushion over my face. Hot until you give us details, Lily insisted, poking my side yfully. ¡°We¡¯ve been waiting years for you two to get together. The least you can do is share a little of the juicy stuff. ¡°I¡¯m not discussing my s*x life with you two vultures,¡± I dered firmly, though my crimson cheeks probably undermined my attempt at dignity. Reba opened her mouth, no doubt to continue her merciless teasing, when my phone rang. I practically lunged for it, checking the caller ID with desperate hope, Jade Mitchell. My savior ¡°I need to take this work emergency, I exined hastily, already backing toward the terrace doors. ¡°Very important. Carit wait¡± I escaped outside before either of them could protest, answering the call with more enthusiasm than any work call deserved. ¡°Jade! Hit What¡¯s up?¡± I asked breathlessly ¡°Ms. Winters?¡± Jade¡¯s voice sounded uncertain. ¡°Are you okay? You sound¡­ strange.¡± 1 took a deep breath, trying topose myself, ¡°I¡¯m fine. Just¡­ escaping from some friends. What can I help you with?¡± As Jade exined the situation at the office¨Ca young woman hade in seeking legal help for a domestic violence case¨CI felt my professional demeanor sliding back into ce. This was something I could handle. Something that mattered more than my embarrassment. ¡°I¡¯ll be there in twenty minutes, I promised, already heading back inside to gather my things. Inside, Lily and Reba had moved on to other gossip, their heads close together as they whispered and giggled. ¡°I have to go, I announced, grabbing my purse. ¡°Client emergency at Moow¡± Lily pouted dramatically ¡°Just when things were getting interesting¡± ¡°Saved by the bell, Reba smirked, knowing exactly what I was doing. ¡°But don¡¯t think this conversation is over, Liv. Vie vant details next time? O Watch Ads (0/20) 676 Whisper 120 Chapter 66: An Awkward Revtion¨C2 I rolled my eyes but couldn¡¯t help smiling at my friends. As embarrassing as their teasing was, it came from a ce of love. ¡°You two are impossible,¡± I said, heading for the door. ¡°That¡¯s why you love us!¡± Lily called after me. Left alone in Reba¡¯s luxurious living room, my friends continued their gossipy spection without me. Through the partially open door, I could hear Lily¡¯s voice turn more serious. ¡°Speaking of rtionship disasters,¡± she was saying, ¡°did I ever tell you about that guy I dated in college? The one who turned out to be engaged?¡± I paused, my hand on the doorknob. I¡¯d never heard this story before. ¡°No way,¡± Reba gasped. ¡°What happened?¡± ¡°ssic story,¡± Lily sighed. ¡°Met him in a ss, he pursued me relentlessly. imed he was single, of course. We dated for three months before his fianc¨¦e showed up at my apartment.¡± ¡°Oh god, Reba murmured sympathetically. ¡°Yeah, it was awful. She had no idea about me either. We were both victims.¡± Lily¡¯s voice grew quieter. ¡°The worst part was everyone on campus knew before I did. The humiliation was¡­ intense.¡± I felt a pang of sympathy for my friend. I¡¯d known Lily since we were pups, but she¡¯d never shared this particr heartbreak with me. ¡°What did you do?¡± Reba asked. ¡°Well, after I finished crying for about a week, my half¨Cbrother Ethan Quinn got involved. You know how protective he is, despite being such a gossip himself.¡± I smiled slightly, remembering Ethan Quinn¡¯s reputation for being both the biggest source of pack gossip and fiercely protective of those he cared about. ¡°He confronted the guy in the middle of the campus cafeteria,¡± Lily continued, a hint of pride in her voice. ¡°Told him if he ever came near me again, he¡¯d regret it. I¡¯ve never seen Ethan so angry.¡± Not wanting to eavesdrop any longer, I quietly slipped out the front door. As I drove toward Moow Legal Services, I couldn¡¯t help but reflect on how lucky I was to have friends who cared so deeply, even if they showed it through relentless teasing. Twenty minutester, I pulled into the parking lot of Moow Legal Services. The modern ss building gleamed in the afternoon sunlight, a stark contrast to the emotional turmoil I was about to walk into. Inside, I found Jade Mitchell in the reception area, her arm around a young woman who couldn¡¯t have been more than twenty. The girl¡¯s shoulders were hunched protectively, her bodynguage screaming vulnerability and fear. Jade looked up with relief when she saw me. ¡°Ms. Winters, thank you foring so quickly.¡± I approached them slowly, my amber eyes filled with concern. All thoughts of my earlier embarrassment FREE O < * Chapter 56 An Awkward vanished as my professional instincts took over. ¡°Hello, I said gently to the young woman. ¡°I¡¯m Olivia Winters. Would you like to talk somewhere more private?¡± Checktest chapters at F?nd-Novel The girl looked up, her tear¨Cstained face revealing a fresh bruise blooming across her cheekbone. My wolf bristled protectively at the sight, though I kept my expression calm andpassionate. ¡°Yes, please,¡± she whispered, her voice barely audible. Jade gave her shoulder a reassuring squeeze. ¡°I¡¯ll bring you both some tea, okay?¡± I nodded gratefully to Jade, then guided the young woman toward my office. As we walked, I noticed how she flinched at sudden movements and kept her gaze downcast¨Cssic signs of ongoing abuse. My heart ached for her, but I also felt a surge of determination. This was why I became awyer¨Cto help those who couldn¡¯t help themselves. To be a voice for the voiceless. Comments Whisper 121 Chapter 67: A Tangled Web of Compassion and Betrayal¨C1 Chapter 67: A Tangled Web of Compassion and Betrayal (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°So what exactly is the situation with these siblings?¡± I asked Emma as we sat in my office at Moow Legal Services. Emma¡¯s usually cheerful face was drawn with concern. She twisted her hands nervously in herp ¡°Leah and Noah Pierce are orphaned siblings with absolutely no family support,¡± she exined. They live in that rundown apartmentplex near the industrial district.¡± I nodded, already feeling a tug of sympathy. Being without pack protection in our world was incredibly difficult. ¡°Noah¡¯s been working himself to death to support them both, Emma continued. ¡°He put Leah through school, made sure she had everything she needed. He¡¯s been her only family since their parents died.¡± ¡°How old are they?¡± I asked, making notes on my legal pad. ¡°Noah¡¯s twenty¨Cfour, Leah¡¯s seventeen. But¡­¡± Emma¡¯s voice caught. ¡°Leah was diagnosed with a rare form of leukemiast year.¡± My pen stilled. ¡°That¡¯s expensive to treat.¡± Emma nodded miserably. ¡°The treatments cost a fortune. Noah took dangerous overtime shifts at Northern Industrial Factory to cover the medical bills. He was working eighteen¨Chour days sometimes. I winced, imagining the exhaustion. ¡°And that¡¯s when the ident happened?¡± ¡°Yes. He was operating machinery during an overnight shift. The safety guards were missingpletely illegal, by the way¨Cand¡­¡± Emma swallowed hard. ¡°He lost his right hand when the machine malfunctioned My wolf bristled with anger. ¡°And let me guess, the factory isn¡¯t taking responsibility?¡± ¡°They paid him two months¡® sry and terminated him, Emma confirmed, her eyes shing with rare anger ¡°No disability benefits, nopensation for the injury, nothing for ongoing medical care.¡± I set my pen down with more force than necessary. ¡°That¡¯s not just hical, it¡¯s illegal.¡± ¡°They¡¯re exploiting the fact that he¡¯s an omega without pack protection, Emma said quietly. ¡°No one to stand up for him, no resources to fight back.¡± ¡°Until now,¡± I said firmly. ¡°Why did theye to me specifically?¡± Emma¡¯s expression softened slightly. ¡°Leah heard about you¨Cyour reputation as both awyer and someone with medical knowledge. She¡¯s desperate, Olivia. Noah¡¯s their only ie, and with his injury¡­¡± I didn¡¯t need her to finish the sentence. Without Noah¡¯s ability to work, they would lose everything¨Ctheir home, Leah¡¯s treatments, everything. ¡°I¡¯ll help them,¡± I said decisively, already mentally cataloging the legal precedents we could use. ¡°When can I meet them?¡± Emma¡¯s relief was palpable. ¡°Leah¡¯s at the hospital now for her treatment. Noah¡¯s there too, still recovering < Get full chapters from f¦É?dn¦Ïvel from surgery. We could go right away if you¡¯re free?¡± I checked my watch. I had a meeting with Connorter, but this couldn¡¯t wait. ¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± I said, grabbing my purse and car keys. ¡°I¡¯ll drive.¡± (Ethan¡¯s POV) The real estate agent¡¯s smile widened as I signed the final page of the contract for the second¨Chand apartment in Moonlight Gardens. + Plums > ¡°Congrattions, Mr. Grey,¡± she gushed, clearly thrilled to have closed such a quick sale. ¡°The apartment is now officially yours.¡± I couldn¡¯t suppress my satisfied smile as I handed her back the pen. After weeks of searching, I¡¯d finally found the perfect ce¨Cin the same building where Olivia lived. ¡°Thank you for expediting the process,¡± I said smoothly, sliding the cashier¡¯s check across the table. ¡°I appreciate your discretion as well.¡± The agent nodded eagerly. ¡°Of course, Mr. Grey. We pride ourselves on confidentiality.¡± I¡¯d paid a premium to keep this purchase quiet. Thest thing I needed was for Olivia to hear about it before ! was ready to tell her myself. As the agent gathered the paperwork, my mind drifted to Olivia. Our rtionship had beenplicatedtely, to say the least. After years together, I¡¯d made the mistake of letting her go when Cassandra returned. It was a decision I regretted more with each passing day. ¡°Will you be moving in immediately?¡± the agent asked, interrupting my thoughts. ¡°Within the week,¡± I confirmed. ¡°I have some renovations nned first.¡± Nothing major¨Cjust enough to make the space mine while ensuring it would appeal to Olivia¡¯s tastes when she eventually visited. I¡¯d chosen the apartment specifically for its proximity to hers, just two floors below. The agent handed me the keys with another bright smile. ¡°The building has excellent security, as I¡¯m sure you know. Your privacy will be well¨Cprotected.¡± I nodded, pocketing the keys. The security was another selling point¨CI wanted Olivia to feel safe when she visited. As I left the real estate office, my phone buzzed with a message from Natalie Hughes. She¡¯d been instrumental in securing the investment that had stabilized mypany¡¯s finances, though she remained unaware of my true intentions regarding Olivia. ¡°Dinner tonight to celebrate the sessful investment?¡± her message read. C Whisper 122 Chapter 67: A Tangled Web of Compassion and Betrayal 2 I typed a quick response, making an excuse about work. Natalie was useful, but my focus needed to be on Olivia now. Walking to my car, I allowed myself to imagine the future¨COlivia and I as neighbors, running into each other in the elevator, sharing coffee in the morning. Small moments that would give me the opportunity to rebuild what we once had, What I¡¯d foolishly thrown away. The apartment was a strategic move, but it was more than that. It was a statement of intent. I wasn¡¯t giving up on us, no matter howplicated things had be. (Olivia¡¯s POV) ¡°Are you sure this is okay?¡± Leah Pierce asked nervously from the backseat of my Bentley, her thin fingers fidgeting with the hem of her worn sweater. I nced at her in the rearview mirror. She couldn¡¯t have weighed more than ny pounds, her frame diminished by illness. The pink woolen beanie pulled low over her head couldn¡¯tpletely hide the effects of chemotherapy. ¡°What do you mean?¡± I asked gently. ???? ????s? ???????s ?? find{n}ovel ¡°This car¡­¡± she gestured around at the luxury interior. ¡°I don¡¯t want to get it dirty¡± I noticed her trying to clean her mud¨Cstained canvas shoes against the back of her legs, clearly worried about the pristine leather seats. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about that,¡± I assured her. ¡°It¡¯s just a car¡± Emma, sitting beside Leah, gave the girl¡¯s hand a reassuring squeeze. ¡°I told you Olivia¡¯s not like that. She doesn¡¯t care about stuff like that.¡± Leah didn¡¯t look convinced, but she stopped trying to clean her shoes, ¡°How are you feeling today?¡± I asked, changing the subject as we drove toward Harbor City Memorial Hospital. ¡°Better than yesterday,¡± Leah answered quietly. ¡°The new medication helps with the nausea,¡± I nodded, remembering my mother¡¯s battle with illness. The good days, the bad days, the days that blurred together in a haze of pain and medication. ¡°And your brother?¡± I asked. ¡°How¡¯s he handling everything?¡± Leah¡¯s face crumpled slightly. ¡°He mes himself. For getting hurt, for not being able to work. He doesn¡¯t understand that none of this is his fault.¡± My heart ached for them both. Two young people carrying burdens no one their age should have to bear. ¡°Well, that¡¯s why we¡¯re going to help him,¡± I said firmly. ¡°What happened to him wasn¡¯t just unfortunate¨Cit was illegal. And we¡¯re going to make sure the factory takes responsibility.¡± Leah¡¯s eyes, too old for her young face, met mine in the mirror. ¡°Why would you help us? You don¡¯t even know Q ||| Chapter 67 A Tangled We US,¡± The question was asked without self¨Cpity, just genuine curiosity. ¡°Because it¡¯s the right thing to do,¡± I answered simply. ¡°And because I can.¡± Emma smiled approvingly from the backseat. ¡°See? I told you she was one of the good ones.¡± *PORTS) As we pulled into the hospital parking lot, I felt my resolve strengthen. These siblings needed an advocate, and I was in a position to be that for them. It was a privilege I didn¡¯t take lightly. The antiseptic smell hit me as soon as we entered the hospital, bringing back unwee memories of my mother¡¯s final days. I pushed them aside, focusing instead on following Emma and Leah through the crowded corridors. Noah Pierce was in a general ward, sharing space with five other patients. The air was thick with the smells of unwashed bodies, medication, and despair. ¡°Noah,¡± Leah called softly as we approached his bed. ¡°I brought someone who can help us.¡± The young man lying on the narrow hospital bed looked up, his eyes immediately wary. Despite his obvious weakness, I could see the protective instinct re as he assessed me¨Ca stranger near his vulnerable sister. ¡°This is Olivia Winters,¡± Emma exined quickly. ¡°She¡¯s awyer, Noah. She wants to help with your case against the factory.¡± Noah¡¯s expression didn¡¯t change. ¡°We can¡¯t afford awyer,¡± he said tly. 1 stepped forward, keeping my voice low and professional. ¡°I¡¯d like to represent you on a contingency basis, Mr. Pierce. That means you don¡¯t pay unless we win.¡± His eyes narrowed suspiciously. ¡°Why would you do that? What¡¯s in it for you?¡± ¡°Thirty percent of any settlement if we win,¡± I answered honestly. ¡°Nothing if we lose. But based on what Emma¡¯s told me, I don¡¯t think we¡¯ll lose.¡± Noah nced at his sister, then back to me. The distrust in his eyes was painful to see¨Cclearly life had taught him to be suspicious of unexpected kindness. ¡°I don¡¯t want charity,¡± he said stiffly. ¡°It¡¯s not charity,¡± I countered. ¡°It¡¯s justice. What happened to you was wrong, and the factory should be held ountable.¡± He seemed to consider this, his gaze drifting to his heavily bandaged right arm. The absence of his hand was stark even beneath the wrappings. ¡°Leah,¡± Emma said gently, ¡°why don¡¯t we go back to your ward while they talk? It¡¯s almost time for your medication.¡± Leah hesitated, clearly reluctant to leave her brother. ¡°Go,¡± Noah encouraged her with a forced smile. ¡°I¡¯ll be fine.¡± O Q 13 FREE ||| O < Chapter 5 The tender¡¯s Whisper 123 Chapter 68: The Healer¡¯s Compassion¨C1 Chapter 68: The Healer¡¯s Compassion Th?s chapter is updated by fin?novel (Olivia¡¯s POV) After asking about the situation, Hosh sat up in bed, his bandaged right arm propped awkwardly on a pillow. The absence of his hand was jarring, even beneath the wrappings. He was hunched over his phone, struggling to navigate the screen with his left hand. Need some help with that?¡± I asked gently. Noah¡¯s head snapped up. I moved closer, noticing the frustration in his eyes. ¡°What are you trying to do?¡± He hesitated before answering. ¡°Just ordering some food. Hospital meals aren¡¯t exactly appetizing.¡± ¡°May 17¡± I gestured to his phone, After a moment¡¯s hesitation, he handed it over. The screen showed a food delivery app with a distinctive yellow icon. As I scrolled through his order history, my heart sank. Every single order was under $10, Instant noodles. The cheapest burgerbo. A small side of fries split between two people. Is this what you and Leah usually eat?¡± I asked, trying to keep my voice neutral. Noah¡¯s jaw tightened defensively, ¡°It¡¯s what we can afford.¡± I continued scrolling, noting the poor nutritional quality of everything listed. My wolf bristled protectively- this wasn¡¯t just about money. This was about health and healing. ¡°Noah,¡± I said carefully, ¡°your body needs proper nutrition to heal, especially after such a serious injury. And Leah needs quality food to help her through her treatments,¡± His eyes shed with a mixture of pride and shame. ¡°We manage.¡± I handed the phone back, making a quick decision. ¡°I¡¯m going to grab something from the restaurant downstairs. Would you mind if I brought back enough for you and Leah?¡± ¡°We don¡¯t need-¡± he began. ¡°Please, I interrupted gently, ¡°Consider it a working lunch. We have a lot to discuss about your case.¡± Before he could protest further, I slipped out of the room. In the hallway, I leaned against the wall for a moment,posing myself. The Budget Delivery App Order History had affected me more than I¡¯d expected. It was such a small thing, yet it spoke volumes about their struggle. * made my way to the hospital¡¯s restaurant, ordering three portions of a nutritious meal¨Cgrilled chicken with steamed vegetables and brown rice, Simple but nourishing food that would actually help their bodies heal. While waiting for the order, I made a few calls. By the time I returned to Noah¡¯s room with the food, I had arranged for two professional caregivers to assist the siblings. Leah had joined her brother, sitting in a chair beside his bed. Her thin frame seemed to disappear in the 0 ||| O < Chapter of The Hirsler¡¯s oversized hospital gown, and the pink woolen beanie on her head couldn¡¯t hide how pale and drawn her face WAS. ¡°Thope you¡¯re hungry.¡± I said, setting down the food containers. Leah¡¯s eyes widened at the sight. ¡°That smells amazing.¡± I distributed the meals, noticing how both siblings hesitated before taking their first bites. Once they started eating, though, it was clear they were starving for proper food. I¡¯ve made some arrangements I¡¯d like to discuss with you,¡± I said as they ate. ¡°I¡¯ve hired two caregivers to help you both during your recovery.¡± Noah¡¯s fork paused halfway to his mouth. ¡°We can¡¯t afford-¡± ¡°It¡¯s covered,¡± I said firmly. ¡°Daniel Foster will be assisting you, Noah. He¡¯s trained specifically in helping patients adapt to hand injuries. And Rachel Winters¨Cno rtion to me¨Cwill be helping Leah through her treatments.¡± Leah looked up, her eyes filling with tears. ¡°Why would you do this for us?¡± The vulnerability in her voice nearly broke my heart. ¡°Because you deserve proper care. Both of you.¡± Noah set down his fork, his expression troubled. ¡°The hospital bills are already more than we can handle. We can¡¯t ept more charity.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not charity,¡± I insisted. ¡°It¡¯s an advance on the settlement we¡¯re going to win from Northern Industrial Factory¡± J didn¡¯t mention that I¡¯d already paid their hospital deposit and treatment fees. That conversation could wait. ¡°Speaking of which,¡± I continued, pulling out my tablet, ¡°I¡¯ve been reviewing simr cases. We have strong precedent on our side.¡± As we discussed the legal strategy, I noticed Noah gradually rxing. Talking about the case gave him something to focus on besides his injury and their financial situation. After we finished eating, my phone pinged with a notification. Noah had sent me a digital money transfer¨Ca small amount, but clearly all he could spare. ¡°What¡¯s this?¡± I asked, though I knew exactly what it was. ¡°For the food and your time,¡± he said stiffly. ¡°I¡¯ll pay you back for everything else when we win the case.¡± I immediately declined the transfer, my amber eyes meeting his. ¡°That¡¯s not necessary, Noah.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want to be in debt,¡± he insisted. La Watch Ads (0/20) > E Vote 576 Whisper 124 < Chapter 68. The Healer¡¯s Compassion 2 He didnt look convinced, but he sign anyone bunso After promising to run the next day at the same time hallway As we headed toward the ent Emmasosovebed Ge whispered, Testis getting worse The Sociors some think she is much sme d syn Months Maybe wasks Same Telesmere the we I stopped walking my mind facing There has to be SAMAKING MESTO NA SA S The specialist in Chicago might be able to help Emme sa restantly. By the mating to s note bag T¡¯s necessary Icat in They do they care possible As were the single, Emma sunrised me with a trhetour Than and she t ever shown them this mechpassion horserker Back my rengthening Thea shines assis in antira be that for them pripara didn¡¯t take lighti The afarina nissan Sandeas. The medine fans tulione dance in the facing ichemos shoes already entry for the tiny isatter an my fast, syading on this case Mles. The more song in stands Faroys the more one ancora Meing some I was so absorbed in my work that Ipletely forgot about my dinner ns with Commer until my phone ¡°Hello!! sanowrar, orderby and gra This update is avable on ?ovelFind Bistro for half an hour I closed my eyes, quilt washing over me ¡®Conor, I¡¯m so sorry Ipletely lost track of time 0 , knowing that vulnerable clients couldn¡¯t afford to wait. Meanwhile, Noah needed specialized treatment for his injury, and Leah¡¯s condition was deteriorating rapidly. I made a decision then, reaching for my phone again. The Moonlight Charitable Foundation answered on the third ring. ¡°This is Olivia Winters,¡± I said. ¡°I¡¯d like to make a donation.¡± By the time I finished the call, I had transferred ten million dors to the foundation, with specific provisions. for the Pierce siblings¡® care. I structured it carefully to preserve their dignity¨Cthe foundation would cover their medical expenses as part of a broader program for injured workers, not as direct charity. I also sent Emma a separate transfer of $200,000 for daily expenses and to hire household help while she focused on supporting the siblings. Her response came almost immediately¨Ca voice message filled with tears and gratitude. ¡°Olivia,¡± Emma¡¯s voice cracked with emotion. ¡°I don¡¯t know what to say. You¡¯ve shown morepassion to these kids than anyone ever has. Thank you doesn¡¯t seem enough, but¡­ thank you.¡± I was still smiling at her message when my phone rang again. This time it was Jason Mitchell from the legal team I¡¯d assembled for Noah¡¯s case. ¡°We¡¯ve got the preliminary injunction,¡± he reported. ¡°The factory can¡¯t destroy any evidence rted to the ident.¡± ¡°That¡¯s excellent news,¡± I said, feeling a small victory. ¡°What about the safety inspection records?¡± ¡°Still working on getting those subpoenaed. Theirwyers are fighting us every step of the way.¡± C FREE 273 O < Chapter 68 The Healer¡¯s + Points > ¡°Keep pushing.¡± I urged. ¡°Those records will prove they knew about the safety issues long before Noah¡¯s ident.¡± After hanging up, I gathered my things, preparing to meet Connor. Despite the challenges ahead, I felt more purposeful than I had in months. This case mattered¨Cthese siblings mattered¨Cand I was determined to help them. (Connor¡¯s POV) The evening traffic parted before my Cullinan SUV as I made my way toward Moow Legal Services. Olivia¡¯s voice had sounded tired on the phone, and I found myself pressing the elerator a little harder, eager to see her. My wolf was restless, concerned about our mate working too hard and not taking care of herself. The protective instinct had only grown stronger since our engagement became official. I was just turning onto Fifth Street when my phone rang through the car¡¯s speaker system. Frank Langley¡¯s name appeared on the dashboard disy. ¡°Rivers,¡± I answered, keeping my eyes on the road. ¡°Sir,¡± Frank¡¯s voice was tense,cking its usual calm efficiency. ¡°Something bad has happened to Vanessa Reed!¡± My hand tightened on the steering wheel, instantly alert. ¡°Exin.¡± S MEROTA Watch Ads (0/20) > Vote 576 OO FREE ||| O < Whisper 125 Chapter 69: Poisonous Wh Chapter 69: Poisonous Whispers¨C1 Chapter 69: Poisonous Whispers (Olivia¡¯s POV) I gathered the files on Noah¡¯s case, tucking them neatly into my leather portfolio. The office had emptied hours ago, leaving me alone with the soft hum of the air conditioning and the asional ping of though I knew he wouldn¡¯t arrive. His call about Vanessa¡¯s poisoning had changed our ns entirely. ¡°Silver poisoning,¡± I murmured to myself, zipping my portfolio closed. The implications were troubling. Silver poisoning was rarely idental¨Csomeone had deliberately targeted Connor¡¯s foster sister. Despite ourplicated history, I wouldn¡¯t wish that on anyone. My phone buzzed with a text from Connor: ¡°I¡¯m sorry about tonight. I¡¯ll make it up to you. Stay safe.¡± I smiled despite my disappointment, typing back: ¡°Don¡¯t worry. Take care of Vanessa. Call me when you can.¡± Gathering my things, I headed out of the building. The night air was cool against my skin as I locked the office door behind me. ¡°Dinner for one it is,¡± I sighed, walking toward a small diner across the street. The ce was nearly empty, just a couple of truckers nursing coffee at the counter. I slid into a booth by the window, ordered a sandwich, and tried not to think about how I¡¯d rather be having dinner with Connor. After eating quickly, I drove back to my apartment at Riverdale Terrace. The parking lot was poorly lit, shadows stretching between the few workingmps. I parked as close to the entrance as possible, scanning the darkness before getting out. Connor¡¯s warnings about staying vignt had taken root in my mind. The elevator ride to my floor was uneventful, but as I approached my apartment door, a familiar scent made my steps falter. Ethan. tensed, my keys clutched tightly in my hand. His distinctive cologne¨Cexpensive and subtle¨Creached me before I saw him emerge from the shadows near my door. ¡°Workingte again, Olivia?¡± His voice was smooth as he stepped into the dim hallway light. I kept my expression neutral, though my wolf bristled defensively. ¡°What are you doing here, Ethan?¡± His blue eyes gleamed as he looked me over, concern painted across his features so perfectly it might have fooled someone who didn¡¯t know him as well as I did. ¡°I was worried about you,¡± he said, moving closer. ¡°It¡¯s not safe for you to be out alone sote.¡± Linserted my key into the lock, determined to end this conversation quickly. ¡°I¡¯m perfectly capable of taking care of myself.¡± ¡°Are you?¡± He raised an eyebrow. ¡°There have been reports of omega attacks in this area. I thought I should ||| Chapter 69. Poisonous Wh. check on you.¡± ¡°How thoughtful,¡± I replied coldly, turning the key. ¡°But unnecessary. Goodnight, Ethan. I pushed the door open, ready to step inside and shut him out, but Ethan moved with surprising speed. His frame blocked the doorway, preventing me from closing it. ¡°Don¡¯t you want to know where your precious Alpha is right now?¡± he asked, his tone dripping with false Innocence. I froze, my hand still on the doorknob. ¡°Connor is dealing with a family emergency. Not that it¡¯s any of your business.¡± Ethan¡¯s lips curved into a smile that didn¡¯t reach his eyes. ¡°Is that what he told you? While you¡¯re here alone, Connor Rivers is with Jessica Sullivan.¡± My heart skipped a beat, but I kept my expression carefully nk. ¡°I don¡¯t know who that is, and I don¡¯t care for your games.¡± ¡°No games,¡± Ethan said, pulling out his phone. ¡°Just truth you deserve to hear.¡± Before I could protest, he pressed y on an audio recording. A woman¡¯s voice, broken with sobs, filled the hallway. ¡°I can¡¯t take it anymore,¡± she cried. ¡°After what they did to me¡­ the kidnapping¡­ I just need you, Connor. You¡¯re the only one who understands.¡± My blood ran cold as the recording continued, the woman¡¯s desperate pleas punctuated by what sounded like Connor¡¯s deep, soothing responses in the background. ¡°Who is she?¡± I asked, hating how my voice wavered slightly. Ethan¡¯s eyes gleamed with triumph at my reaction. ¡°Jessica Sullivan. She was arrested for stalking me a few months ago, but then she disappeared. Turns out she was kidnapped.¡± I shook my head, confusion and disbelief warring within me. ¡°What does this have to do with Connor?¡± ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? FindN()vel ¡°He¡¯s been helping her recover,¡± Ethan said, his voice dropping to a conspiratorial whisper. ¡°Quite intimately, from what I hear. Did he tell you about her? About how he visits her almost daily?¡± My mind raced, trying to make sense of this information. Connor had been busytely, often canceling our ns with vague exnations about pack business. ¡°You¡¯re lying,¡± I said, but uncertainty had crept into my voice. 3 Comments Watch Ads (0/20) Whisper 126 Chapter 69: Poisonous Whispers¨C2 Ethan stepped closer, his expression a perfect mask of sympathy. ¡°I wish I were. But there¡¯s more, Olivia. Something he definitely hasn¡¯t told you.¡± I shouldn¡¯t have asked. I should have shut the door in his face. But the words escaped before I could stop them: ¡°What?¡± \N ¡°She¡¯s pregnant,¡± Ethan said softly, watching my face carefully. ¡°And the timing¡­ well, it makes one wonder, doesn¡¯t it?¡± The implication hit me like a physical blow. I felt the color drain from my face, my grip tightening on the doorknob for support. ¡°That¡¯s not possible,¡± I whispered. ¡°Isn¡¯t it?¡± Ethan pressed. ¡°How well do you really know him, Olivia? He¡¯s an Alpha wolf with needs. And you¡¯ve been so busy with your casestely¡­¡± For a moment, doubt clouded my mind. Connor had been distant recently, canceling ns, being vague about his whereabouts. Could there be truth to Ethan¡¯s ims? Then rity washed over me like a cold shower. This was Ethan¨Cmaster maniptor, expert at twisting truths and nting seeds of doubt. Fury reced shock as I straightened my spine and met his gaze directly. ¡°You¡¯re lying,¡± I said firmly, my voice dropping to a dangerous tone. ¡°Olivia-¡± he began, but I cut him off. ¡°Connor would never betray me like that. He¡¯s not like you, Ethan.¡± The words came out sharp and clear. ¡°He doesn¡¯t y games or manipte people for his own amusement.¡± Ethan¡¯s expression hardened slightly. ¡°You think I¡¯m making this up? Call him. Ask him where he is right now.¡± ¡°I know exactly where he is,¡± I countered. ¡°He¡¯s at Shadow Den because Vanessa was poisoned. He called to cancel our dinner ns himself.¡± A flicker of surprise crossed Ethan¡¯s face before he recovered. ¡°Vanessa? How convenient. Another woman requiring his immediate attention.¡± ¡°His foster sister,¡± I corrected coldly. ¡°And unlike you, Connor doesn¡¯t lie to me. He respects me enough to tell me the truth, even when it¡¯s inconvenient.¡± Ethan¡¯s blue eyes glittered with malice thinly veiled as concern. ¡°I¡¯m just trying to protect you, Olivia. You deserve to know what kind of man you¡¯re engaged to.¡± ¡°I know exactly what kind of man Connor is,¡± I said, my confidence growing with each word. ¡°And I know exactly what kind of man you are too, Ethan. The kind who woulde to my door with fabricated evidence and twisted truths to try to destroy my rtionship.¡± I moved to close the door, but Ethan¡¯s patience finally snapped. He moved with werewolf speed, grabb wrist and pulling me toward him. The sudden movement caught me off guard. Before I could react, his arms were around me, holding me ?????? ???? find(?)ovel ny ||| O Chapter 69 Poisonous Wh tightly against his chest. ¡°Ethan, let go of me,¡± I demanded, pushing against him. He ignored my protest, burying his face in my hair and inhaling deeply. ¡°You still smell the same,¡± he murmured, his voice dropping to a husky whisper against my I struggled against his grip, but he held firm, his lips brushing my ear as he spoke. ¡°Olivia, leave him, Come back to me.¡± The desperation in his voice was real, but it only strengthened my resolve to break free. His embrace felt wrong¨Cpossessive rather than protective, demanding rather than giving. ¡°Let. Me. Go.¡± Each word was amand as I pushed against his chest with all my strength. His arms tightened momentarily before he finally released me, stepping back with reluctance written across his features. ¡°You¡¯re making a mistake,¡± he said, his eyes intense. ¡°Connor Rivers isn¡¯t who you think he is.¡± I straightened my blouse, my amber eyes shing with anger. ¡°Neither are you, Ethan. I used to think you were someone who cared about me, who respected me. Now I see you¡¯re just someone who wants to possess me.¡± His expression darkened. ¡°I love you, Olivia. I always have.¡± ¡°No,¡± I shook my head firmly. ¡°You love the idea of me¨Csomeone you can control, someone who will always put you first no matter how you treat them. That¡¯s not love, Ethan. That¡¯s obsession.¡± I stepped back into my apartment, my hand on the door. ¡°Don¡¯te here again. And don¡¯t try to contact me.¡± As I moved to close the door, Ethan¡¯s patience snapped. He moved quickly, grabbing my wrist and pulling me toward him. He embraced me tightly, inhaling my scent with desperate hunger, his voice dropping to a husky whisper against my ear. ¡°Olivia, leave him. Come back to me.¡± 3 Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 127 Chapter 70: Hidden Truths and Emerging Dangers¨C1 Chapter 70: Hidden Truths and Emerging Dangers (Olivia¡¯s POV) I reacted on pure instinct. My knee shot up, connecting solidly with Ethan¡¯s stomach. As he doubled over, gasping, I pped him hard across the face, the sound echoing in the empty hallway. ¡°Stay away from me!¡± I snarled, backing away from him. Ethan straightened slowly, his hand touching his reddening cheek. The shock in his blue eyes quickly morphed into hurt. ¡°Olivia-¡± he started, reaching for me. ¡°Don¡¯t!¡± I held up my hand, my entire body trembling with rage. ¡°You¡¯re tainted! Corrupted!¡± My voice broke on thest word, emotion threatening to overwhelm me. Inside, my wolf howled in agreement, rejecting his scentpletely. ¡°We can never go back to what we were,¡± I said, my voice dropping to a whisper. ¡°Never.¡± Ethan staggered back as if I¡¯d struck him again. The physical blow had hurt him, but my words had wounded him far deeper. ¡°You don¡¯t mean that,¡± he said, his voice hoarse. ¡°I do.¡± I stepped back into my apartment. ¡°Don¡¯te here again.¡± I mmed the door shut, locking it immediately. Through the wood, I heard Ethan¡¯s ragged breathing, then his slow, defeated footsteps retreating down the hallway. Only when I was sure he was gone did I allow myself to slide down against the door, my legs suddenly too weak to support me. My phone buzzed in my pocket. For a wild moment, I thought it might be Ethan, but the screen showed a message from Emma: ¡°Noah¡¯s asking for you, Says he has questions about the case. Can you visit tomorrow?¡± I texted back a quick confirmation, grateful for the distraction. Work was something I could focus on, something that made sense when everything else seemed to be falling apart. Rising to my feet, I moved through my apartment, checking that all the windows were locked. Ethan¡¯s visit had left me feeling vited, unsafe in my own home. Sleep was impossible. I paced restlessly across my living room, my mind racing with questions. That recording of Jessica Sullivan and Connor¨Cwhat was I supposed to make of it? I remembered Jessica¡¯s attack on me months ago, how Connor had protected me without hesitation. The woman had been obsessed with Ethan, not Connor. It made no sense. sitya ¡°Ethan is manipting the situation, I muttered to myself. ¡°He¡¯s twisting things, like he alway Still, doubt nagged at me. Connor had been canceling ns more frequentlytely, offering vague exnations about pack business.
  1. es.
||| O This text is hosted at FindN()vel Chapter 70: Hidden Truths. I reached for my phone and called Connor¡¯s number. It rang several times before going to voicemail ¡°Hey, it¡¯s me,¡± I started, then stopped, unsure what to say. I hung up without leaving a message. After a moment¡¯s hesitation, I typed out a text instead: ¡°Everything¡¯s fine. Take your time with your pack business. I trust you.¡± I hit send, feeling slightly better for having expressed my confidence in him, despite the seeds of doubt Ethan had tried to nt. Setting my phone aside, I moved to the window, gazing out at the lights of Riverdale. Somewhere out there, Connor was dealing with Vanessa¡¯s poisoning¨Cor at least, that¡¯s what he¡¯d told me. ¡°I trust him,¡± I whispered to myself, trying to silence the doubts whispering in the back of my mind. (Ethan¡¯s POV) I barely made it back to my secondary apartment in Moonlight Gardens before my legs gave out. Copsing onto the cold tile of the entryway, I pressed my palm against my cheek where Olivia had pped me. The physical pain was nothingpared to the agony of her words. ¡°You¡¯re tainted! Corrupted!¡± Her voice echoed in my mind, each repetition like a knife twisting in my chest. My wolf whined pitifully, sensing my distress. I dragged myself to the bathroom, turning the shower on full st. Stripping off my clothes, I stepped under the scalding water, as if it could somehow wash away her usation. ¡°I¡¯m not tainted,¡± I whispered, grabbing the soap and scrubbing my skin. ¡°I¡¯m not.¡± The words became a desperate mantra as I scrubbed harder, my skin turning red and sensitive. Tears streamed down my face, mixing with the shower water. ¡°I¡¯m not tainted,¡± I repeated, my voice breaking. ¡°I¡¯m not.¡± The water ran cold, but I continued to stand there, scrubbing at my skin long after it had turned raw. My wolf¡¯s distress mirrored my own, a continuous whine that seemed toe from the depths of my soul. Finally, I shut off the water and stepped out, wrapping a towel around my waist. My reflection in the mirror showed a broken man¨Ceyes red¨Crimmed, skin blotchy, expression haunted. I had lost her. Truly lost her this time. The realization hit me with crushing force. I stumbled to my bedroom, copsing onto the bed without bothering to dry off or dress. Comments W Watch Ads (0/20) > 690 H Whisper 128 Chapter 70 Hidden Truths. Chapter 70: Hidden Truths and Emerging Dangers¨C2 ¡°Olivia,¡± I whispered into the darkness, her name a prayer on my lips. 2) But there would be no answer. She had made her choice, and it wasn¡¯t me. It would never be me again. The pain of that knowledge was unbearable. I curled into myself, my body shaking with silent sobs as the night stretched endlessly before me. (Connor¡¯s POV) The metallic scent of blood filled the secure room at Shadow Den. I stood rigid, staring at Jessica Sullivan¡¯s lifeless body sprawled across the floor. Her throat had been cut with surgical precision, her eyes still open in frozen terror. Beside hery Gregory Steele, one of our security guards. The silver dagger he¡¯d used on Jessica was now embedded in his own chest, his final act of self¨Cdestruction afterpleting his deadly task. ¡°Alpha,¡± Dominic Reeves, my security chief, spoke quietly beside me. ¡°I take full responsibility for this breach.¡± I didn¡¯t respond immediately, my ice¨Cblue eyes narrowing as I surveyed the scene. Jessica had been our key witness¨Cthe only person who could testify about Ethan Grey¡¯s involvement in her k********g and subsequent maniption. ¡°Someone ordered this murder to silence her,¡± I said finally, my voice controlled despite the rage building inside me. ¡°And we have a traitor in our midst.¡± Dominic¡¯s face paled slightly. ¡°Gregory Steele had been with us for three years. Impable record, no signs of disloyalty.¡± ¡°Until today,¡± I said coldly. ¡°I want everything about him investigated¨Chis background, his finances, his family, his contacts. Everything.¡± Readplete version only at find?novel ¡°Yes, Alpha,¡± Dominic nodded sharply. ¡°I¡¯ve already started gathering information. He has an elderly mother in poor health living on the outskirts of Riverdale.¡± Understanding dawned immediately. ¡°He was coerced,¡± I concluded, my voice hardening. ¡°Someone found his weakness and exploited it.¡± My wolf snarled with fury at the thought. This wasn¡¯t just a security breach¨Cit was a calcted attack. against my pack, against my investigation into Ethan Grey¡¯s activities. Brian Mitchell, the second guard who had witnessed the attack but failed to prevent it, stood trembling in the corner. His hulking frame seemed diminished by his obvious distress. ¡°Mitchell,¡± I addressed him directly. ¡°Tell me exactly what happened.¡± Brian swallowed hard before speaking. ¡°We were doing the regr check, Alpha. Everything was normal. Jessica was sitting on her bed, reading. Then Greg just¡­ changed. He pulled out the dagger and moved so fast. I tried to stop him, but¡­¡± His voice trailed off, his eyes fixed on his fallen colleague. ¡°Did Gregory say anything?¡± I pressed. ¡°Anything at all before or during the attack?¡± L
She treated this like just another role. At the elevator, she asked what I nned to do next. ¡°Your former fianc¨¦e looked deeply hurt by our performance.¡± There was no malice in her observation, just clinical assessment. ¡°Are you satisfied with the results?¡± I did not reply, my jaw tight and my fists clenched as my wolf raged against what we had just done. Olivia¡¯s wounded expression haunted me. The elevator doors opened with a soft chime. The sound felt unnaturally loud in the tense silence. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Inside the suite, after the men left, the room fell silent except for the distant sounds of New Year¡¯s celebrations. Both human and werewolf territories sparkled below us through the floor¨Cto¨Cceiling windows. The festive atmosphere outside felt like a mockery of my broken heart. My wolf Cora remained withdrawn, hiding deep within our shared consciousness. Lily took out two bottles of moonberry wine from the suite¡¯s premium collection. Her beta wolf still bristled with protective anger. ¡°Olivia, don¡¯t be sad for that scumbag Alpha; he¡¯s not worth it.¡± For more chapters visit find?novel She opened the first bottle with more force than necessary. ¡°We¡¯ll have a drink tonight, and you¡¯re so beautiful and from such a prestigious bloodline, you¡¯ll find another mate!¡± Her words were meant tofort, but they felt hollow. How could I exin that Conr to me? wasn¡¯t just any Alpha Lily dered that there was no shortage of worthy Alphas in our territory. ¡°The Rivers pack heir thinks he¡¯s so special, but there are plenty of better options!¡± I sat on the sofa, my amber eyes filled with pain as my wolf remained withdrawn. I couldn¡¯t find anyfort in my friends¡® words. The wine sses clinked as Lily poured generous amounts. The deep red liquid looked like liquid gas in the crystal. After a few sses of the potent moonberry wine, I felt dizzy. My werewolf metabolism struggled with the alcohol since it was my first time drinking anything stronger than ceremonial pack wine. The room seemed to sway gently around me. Colors appeared more vivid, but my emotional pain remained sharp. Lily showed me photos of handsome Alphas from our social circle on her phone. She suggested with forced cheer that she could introduce me to any of them. < Chapter 105: Goodbye, Con ¡°Look at this one ¨C Alexander from the Northern Pack. He¡¯s been asking about you for months!¡± FB Promts Her enthusiasm felt desperate, like she was trying to convince herself as much as me. Each photo blurred together in my wine¨Chazed vision. I managed only a faint smile, my heart too broken to consider anyone else. The thought of another Alpha¡¯s touch made my wolf recoil further. The three friends drank and chatted as the night wore on. The alcohol helped to numb some of the pain, creating a buffer between my consciousness and the raw agony. Reba shared stories from our childhood, trying to distract me from the evening¡¯s trauma. Her voice was gentle and soothing. As midnight approached, the New Year¡¯s countdown began echoing from the celebrations below. Voices from both territories joined in the traditional ritual. ¡°Nine, eight, seven¡­¡± The three of us counted down together, our voices mixing with the distant sounds. The numbers felt significant, like marking the end of one life and the beginning of another. ¡°Three, two, one, Happy New Year!¡± Fireworks bloomed in the night sky over Harbor City, reflecting off the windows of our high¨Crise suite. The explosions of color painted the darkness in brilliant hues. The beauty was breathtaking, even through my pain. For a moment, wonder pierced through my heartbreak. 1 sat barefoot on the carpet, my honey¨Cbrown hair falling around my shoulders as I gazed at the fireworks with blurred amber eyes. My wolf finally stirred slightly at the beauty of the disy. The soft carpet felt grounding beneath me. The wine had loosened my carefully maintainedposure. ¡°A new year has begun. Connor, I should say goodbye to you too.¡± My voice was barely a whisper, but my friends heard every word. The admission felt like releasing a breath I¡¯d been holding. ¡°New Year, I hope you find happiness with your chosen mate. Goodbye, Connor¡­¡± 9 H 479 Whisper 177 Chapter 106: New Year¡¯s Chapter 106: New Year¡¯s Gifts and Hidden Arrangements Chapter 106: New Year¡¯s Gifts and Hidden Arrangements (Olivia¡¯s POV) The next day was New Year¡¯s Day. I returned to the Winters Family Estate, still nursing a mild hangover from the moonberry wine. My head throbbed with each step, and my wolf Cora remained withdrawn deep within our shared consciousness. Natalie Winters and Richard Winters were both home when I arrived. As soon as I entered through the front door, Natalie greeted me with a warm smile, her amber eyes genuinely weing. ¡°Livvy is back. Dinner will be served soon. Go wash your hands first.¡± Her voice carried maternal warmth that I hadn¡¯t expected. Despite ourplicated rtionship, she seemed genuinely pleased to see me. Having woken upte from my hangover, Thad quickly showered at my apartment before returning to the Winters residence just in time for the New Year¡¯s lunch. The hot water had helped clear some of the fog from my mind, but my heart still felt heavy. Grace Winters excitedly ran over, embracing my legs and calling out ¡°Sister!¡± with pure joy. Her innocent enthusiasm was like a ray of sunshine piercing through my emotional darkness. I managed a genuine smile despite my emotional exhaustion. I handed Grace a thick red envelope from my bag, wishing her a happy New Year. The little girl sweetly smiled, took the envelope, and kissed me on the cheek with innocent affection. Her simple gesture of love made my chest tighten with unexpected emotion. Richard then handed me an elegant gift bag, his weathered face showing paternal care. ¡°This is a New Year¡¯s gift for you.¡± Inside, I found a set of keys and a property ownership certificate. My amber eyes widened in surprise as I examined the documents. Richard exined that it was a luxury apartment close to Moow Legal Services for my convenience. ¡°Natalie personally selected a car for you, which is waiting in the garage.¡± My heart warmed despite my recent heartbreak. I sincerely thanked both Richard and Natalie, epting their thoughtful gifts with genuine gratitude, ¡°Thank you both. This means more than you know.¡± After the family meal, I idly scrolled through my phone while sitting in the living room. The familiar routine feltforting after the chaos of recent events. I noticed a new contact request notification. My heart tightened involuntarily, a foolish hope rising that it might be Connor Rivers reaching out. Bitter disappointment washed over me when I realized it was from Ethan Grey. My wolf recoiled at seeing his name, memories of his betrayal flooding back. Ethan, having been blocked and deleted from my contacts, had created a new ount to contact me. His O ¤¯ Chapter 106 New Year¡¯s. desperate messages asked if Connor and I had truly broken our engagement, urgently pleading for me to return to him. Disgusted by his persistence and unwillingness to ept my decision, I immediately rejected the friend request and blocked the new ount without hesitation. Some bridges were meant to stay burned Richard¡¯s generous gift was a pristine white Rolls¨CRoyce Phantom, a vehicle befitting my status as a Winters pack daughter. The elegant car gleamed in the afternoon sunlight, its luxury unmistakable. I¡¯made the decision to leave Connor¡¯s cier blue Bentley Continental GT to gather dust in the Winters family garage. I couldn¡¯t bear the painful memories it carried of our time together. I took possession of the new car, appreciating my father¡¯s thoughtfulness. The leather interior smelled of new beginnings rather than broken promises. The apartment was located in an upscale neighborhood mere minutes from Moow Legal Services. The spacious, fully furnished residence was decorated in cream¨Ccolored tones that perfectly matched my refined tastes. Settling into my new space, I called Dorothy Jenkins, the housekeeper who had been caring for my belongings at Whisperbrook Gardens. ¡°Dorothy, I need you to dispose of all my personal items that remain there.¡± My voice was steady, but the words felt like closing a chapter of my life forever. (Dorothy¡¯s POV) I hesitated after receiving Olivia¡¯s call, my eyes nervously ncing at Connor Rivers who was sitting motionless on the sofa in the main living area. His ice¨Cblue eyes stared nkly ahead, lost in thoughts I couldn¡¯t fathom. After hanging up the phone, I cautiously approached Connor. The Alpha looked like a statue, frozen in his grief. ¡°Mr. Rivers, Miss Winters has requested all her belongings be thrown away.¡± Connor¡¯s voice was hollow and tired when he responded. ¡°Don¡¯t discard anything. Keep Olivia¡¯s room spotlessly clean because she will return someday.¡± His tone carried a desperate hope that even he didn¡¯t quite believe. The pain in his voice made my heart ache for both of them. He then asked with forced casualness, ¡°Is Olivia adjusting well to the cooking from her new living arrangements?¡± Fifteen minutester, I called Olivia back with Connor¡¯s unspoken n. ¡°Miss Winters, Mr. Rivers has dismissed me from service. Do you need a personal cook?¡± I could hear the hesitation in her voice through the phone. She was probably remembering Connor¡¯s previous efforts to find a cook whose food/would suit her refined pte. Though she initially hesitated, knowing this was likely another of Connor¡¯s indirect ways of caring fr Olivia couldn¡¯t bring herself to refuse me. ¡°I suppose I could use the help, Dorothy.¡± er She gave me her new apartment address, her voice softening with genuine concern for my employment situation. C 2/4 call, I returned to Connor and informed him that Olivia had epted my services. Hist ice¨Cblue eyes flickered with the first sign of life I¡¯d seen all day. Connor then quietly instructed me with careful precision. ¡°Prepare and deliver meals to Olivia during weekday lunches. Don¡¯t reveal that these arrangementse from me.¡± His voice carried the weight of a man trying to care for someone he could no longer openly protect. (Connor¡¯s POV) After New Year¡¯s Day, I threw myself into work at Rivers Pack Headquarters with obsessive intensity. I refused to allow myself any moments of rest, because whenever I stopped working, Olivia¡¯s wounded amber eyes from that night would flood my mind. The guilt was overwhelming. The memory of her pain haunted every quiet moment. In the Alpha¡¯s office, I sat rigidly at myputer, forcing myself to focus on pack business and corporate affairs. Numbers and contracts became my refuge from emotional torment. Ethan Quinn lounged on the leather sofa, observing me with aplex expression. ¡°Con, there¡¯s something I don¡¯t know if I should mention.¡± I didn¡¯t even lift my ice¨Cblue eyes from the screen, responding with cold indifference, ¡°Then don¡¯t mention it.¡± Ethan opened and closed his mouth uncertainly. ¡°It¡¯s rted to Olivia¡­ are you sure you don¡¯t want to hear this?¡± My typing immediately ceased. I looked up sharply from theputer screen, my Alpha instincts alert. ¡°What is it?¡± Ethan thought to himself with knowing satisfaction. As long as it concerned Olivia, I couldn¡¯t pretend not to care. Ethan coughed strategically. ¡°Lily keeps saying she wants to introduce eligible bachelor wolves to Olivia¡­¡± As he spoke these words, he nced up to observe my reaction. My expression immediately darkened with possessive fury. My jaw clenched, my voice dangerously low. ¡°Bachelor wolves?¡± ¡°Yeah,¡± Ethan swallowed nervously, considering how to phrase this more tactfully. My thin lips pressed into a hard line, my ice¨Cblue eyes showing a cold, predatory glint. ¡°What bachelor wolves?¡± ¡°There are several candidates¨Csomething about six¨Cpack abs, a 6¡¯3¡± athletic beta wolf, and various descriptions like ¡®pure young wolves,/wild dominant types,¡¯ a whole collection of ridiculous options¡­¡± My expression grew increasingly thunderous. Ethan didn¡¯t dare continue his report. The office fell into heavy silence. Ethan grew so nervous he didn¡¯t know what to do with his hands, taking a sip of water to calm himself. ¡°You know Lily¨Cshe¡¯s always dramatic like this, loves these shy schemes. I already scolded h behalf.¡± ¡°What did she say?¡± I asked with deadly calm. your < 3/4 For original chapters go to F¦ÉndNovel Chapter 106 New Year¡¯s ¡°Ah? What do you mean?¡± Ethan looked confused. ¡°Your sister wants to introduce other males to Olivia¨Cwhat was Olivia¡¯s response?¡± Ethan¡¯s expression turned distinctly ufortable. He hesitated before speaking. ¡°You¡­ do you really want to know the answer?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± ¡°Then promise you won¡¯t lose control when I tell you.¡± Ethan said nervously. ¡°ording to Lily, that night after your¡­ performance¡­ Olivia agreed to the introductions.¡± ¡°Agreed to what exactly?¡± My voice was dangerously quiet. Ethan¡¯s mouth moved faster than his brain. ¡°Agreed to let Lily introduce her to other potential mates.¡± As soon as the words left his mouth, my ceramic coffee mug crashed to the floor, shattering into pieces that reflected my own breakingposure. Whisper 178 Chapter 107 The Alpha¡¯s Chapter 107: The Alpha¡¯s Desperate Gambit Chapter 107: The Alpha¡¯s Desperate Gambit (Connor¡¯s POV) Tea spilled from my shattered cup, soaking into the wolfsbane¨Cstained Persian rug and leaving another water mark. The ceramic fragments scattered across the floor like my brokenposure. Ethan Quinn stared at the broken pieces, clicking his tongue in disapproval. ¡°Alpha Connor, don¡¯t worry too much. Livvy isn¡¯t that casual about potential mates.¡± His words offered littlefort. My wolf Adam wed at my chest, desperate to im what was ours. I sat dazed in my office chair, my ice¨Cblue eyes unfocused as the weight of his revtion crushed down on me. ¡°She really agreed to the introductions?¡± My voice came out hoarse, barely recognizable even to myself. The thought of other males pursuing Olivia made my Alpha instincts rage. Ethan paused, choosing his words carefully. ¡°You know what happened on New Year¡¯s Eve¨Cshe saw you with that little cousin of yours, and La even mentioned getting separate rooms.¡± He shifted ufortably in his seat. ¡°If I were her, I wouldn¡¯t be able to handle it either.¡± ¡°I think Livvy agreed on purpose to provoke you, or she was just talking nonsense when she was drunk with moonberry wine, so it doesn¡¯t count.¡± My voice tightened with desperate hope. ¡°I didn¡¯t¡­ I didn¡¯t say anything about separate rooms.¡± The memory of that night burned in my mind. Every cruel word I¡¯d spoken to protect her felt like poison in my mouth. Ethan sighed heavily. ¡°Your fake girlfriend La Lawrence said it, which pretty much meant the same thing to Olivia.¡± His observation hit like a physical blow. Of course Olivia would interpret La¡¯s words as my intentions. After a moment of tense silence, Iposed myself and turned to Ethan with renewed determination. My Alpha authority bled through my desperation. ¡°Help me with something.¡± Ethan straightened, recognizing themand in my tone. ¡°What do you need?¡± ¡°I need you to approach Olivia. Find out about these potential suitors Lily mentioned.¡± My jaw clenched as I forced out the words. ¡°And give her something from me, but don¡¯t reveal it¡¯s from me.¡± Ethan¡¯s eyebrows shot up. ¡°Connor, are you sure that¡¯s wise? She¡¯s trying to move on.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t care.¡± My voice turned cold and possessive. ¡°I need to know who these males are.¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) As I exited Moow Legal Services after work, I spotted a cier white McLaren P1 hypercar parked not far away. The expensive vehicle gleamed under the afternoon sun, drawing curious stares from passersby. Ethan Quinn leaned against the hypercar, scrolling through his phone and seemingly waiting for som His casual posture contrasted sharply with the luxury surrounding him. When he recognized me, he approached with a warm greeting. ¡°Olivia! Perfect timing.¡± His smile seemed genuine, but something in his eyes made me cautious. ¡°What are you doing here, Ethant ¡°I wanted to apologize profusely for what happened on New Year¡¯s Eve.¡± His voice carried sincere regret. The whole situation with Connor and La was incredibly awkward.¡± I tensed at the mention of Connor¡¯s name. ¡°It¡¯s fine. These things happen.¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s not fine.¡± Ethan shook his head emphatically. ¡°I should have warned you they wereing. Let me take you to dinner as an apology.¡± I politely refused, my amber eyes guarded. ¡°Thank you, but I already have evening ns.¡± Ethan¡¯s curiosity sparked immediately. ¡°Oh? What kind of ns?¡± His sudden interest made me ufortable. ¡°Just meeting some friends.¡± ¡°Male and female friends?¡± he pressed, his tone bing more intense. I hesitated, then fabricated an excuse. ¡°Yes, both. We¡¯re having dinner together.¡± Ethan¡¯s mind seemed to race. ¡°These male friends¨Cwhat are their names? What do they do for work?¡± His questions grew increasingly invasive. ¡°How old are they? What do they look like? Do you have photos?¡± Growing annoyed by his excessive questioning, I confronted him with sharp suspicion. ¡°Did Connor send you to spy on me?¡± Mywyer instincts told me he was hiding something. His bodynguage screamed deception. Ethan quickly denied any connection. ¡°No! Connor has nothing to do with this. I¡¯m here on my own.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t believe you.¡± My voice turned cold. ¡°This interrogation feels very deliberate.¡± Ethan then produced a McLaren P1 key, holding it out like a peace offering. ¡°Look, I brought you something to make up for New Year¡¯s Eve.¡± I stared at the key in disbelief. ¡°A hypercar? For a minor social incident?¡± The cier white McLaren P1 was worth over $1.2 million. Such extravagance seemedpletely unnecessary. ¡°It¡¯s just a small token of apology,¡± Ethan insisted. ¡°Lily¡¯s been nagging me constantly about making amends.¡± He gestured toward the passenger seat. ¡°There are also several limited edition Herm¨¨s Luna Collection handbags waiting inside.¡± My amber eyes narrowed with suspicion. ¡°This is excessive, even for you.¡± ¡°Please, just ept it as a personal favor to me.¡± His tone became increasingly desperate. ¡°I feel terrible about what happened.¡± I could see through his borate charade. ¡°Was this car actually purchased by Connor Rivers?¡± My voice carried a note of finality. ¡°I don¡¯t want anything from him. I want a clean break from the Rivers pack.¡± Ethan¡¯s face flushed with guilt, confirming my suspicions. ¡°I¡­ no, it¡¯s really from me.¡± 213 THI < Chapter 107: The Alpha¡¯s. ¡°Call Lily,¡± I demanded. ¡°Put her on speaker. Let her confirm this story. ( ?? Ethan reluctantly dialed his sister¡¯s number. The phone rang twice before Lily¡¯s cheerful voice filled the air. ¡°Ethan! Did you find Olivia yet?¡± ¡°I¡¯m here with her now,¡± Ethan replied carefully. ¡°Can you tell her about the gift?¡± ¡°Oh yes!¡± Lily¡¯s enthusiasm bubbled through the speaker. ¡°The hypercar is definitely from Ethan to apologize for New Year¡¯s Eve.¡± Her voice carried apparent sincerity. ¡°Olivia, you should absolutely ept it without guilt. He feels terrible about the whole mess.¡± Newest update provided by find?novel Despite Lily¡¯s confirmation, doubt still lingered in my mind. The gift seemed too borate for the situation. Reluctantly, I epted the McLaren P1 key and thanked Ethan with reserved politeness. ¡°Thank you. This is very generous.¡± My amber eyes still held traces of suspicion, but I couldn¡¯t prove my theory about Connor¡¯s involvement. Ethan secretly felt guilty for deceiving me, but he hoped I¡¯d eventually understand his motivations. More importantly, he hoped I¡¯d understand Connor¡¯s desperate attempt to maintain some connection. Before departing, I opened the hypercar¡¯s passenger door and discovered several Herm¨¨s Luna Collection handbags artfully arranged on the seat. The luxury items were worth tens of thousands of dors. I took a photo and immediately sent it to Lily and Reba Frost. Their responses came quickly, confirming they¡¯d purchased the handbags specifically to cheer me up. My expression softened with genuine gratitude. ¡°Thank you both. This means so much during this difficult time.¡± Their thoughtful gesture touched my heart more than any expensive car could. Seeing his mission aplished, Ethan made a strategic excuse to leave. ¡°I need to buy moonlight tea for Lily. My driver will arrive shortly to pick me up.¡± When I offered him a ride in the new hypercar, he politely declined. ¡°Thanks, but I¡¯ll wait for my driver.¡± With no lingering suspicions, I waved goodbye to Ethan. ¡°I¡¯ll be going now, bye¨Cbye.¡± I settled into the driver¡¯s seat of the cier white McLaren P1, adjusting the mirrors and familiarizing myself with the controls. Ethan wished me farewell, watching as I drove away in the hypercar. The powerful engine purred beneath me as I navigated through Harbor City¡¯s evening traffic. 2 Comments- Vote Whisper 179 charter 100 The Deshe Chapter 108: The Desperate Gambit Chapter 108: The Desperate Gambit (Connor¡¯s POV) In the underground parking garage, Ethan Quinn opened the passenger door of my Cullinan SUV and slid in bringing the winter chill with him. The cold air made me shiver slightly. ¡°Alpha Connor, everything you asked me to do isplete. Olivia has epted the handbags and the hypercar.¡± My fingers gripped the steering wheel tighter, my ice¨Cblue eyes distant as my Adam¡¯s apple bobbed with tension. The leather felt cold beneath my palms. ¡°Did she suspect anything?¡± Ethan answered honestly, his voice carrying a note of concern. ¡°She did indeed suspect something¨Cshe directly asked if you had purchased the McLaren P1.¡± He shifted in his seat, exining how he coborated with Lily to deceive Olivia. ¡°Since Olivia trusts Lilypletely, she shouldn¡¯t think too deeply about it.¡± I responded with a heavy ¡°Mm.¡± The sound came out rougher than intended. For a moment, Ethan didn¡¯t know what to say. I stared nkly into the void, the SUV so quiet we could hear the heater¡¯s gentle whirring. My wolf whined softly within me, missing his intended mate. The ache in my chest felt like a physical wound that wouldn¡¯t heal. Recognizing that I was lost in thoughts of Olivia again, Ethan wisely remained silent. He didn¡¯t want to disturb my brooding. After a long while, I finally spoke, my voice rough with longing. ¡°I really want to see her.¡± The admission felt like tearing open my chest. Every fiber of my being screamed to go to her. Ethan felt speechless at my obvious pain, then pulled out his phone with renewed determination. ¡°Alpha Connor, let me help you find a way.¡± He immediately called Lily. The phone rang twice before she picked up. (Ethan Quinn¡¯s POV) ¡°Lily, it¡¯s me,¡± I said into the phone, trying to sound casual. ¡°When I delivered the hypercar to Olivia, her mood seemed terrible.¡± I nced at Connor, whose jaw was clenched tight. ¡°She looked like a frost¨Cbeaten flower, and I¡¯m worried she might make herself sick keeping everything bottled up inside.¡± ¡°Could you bring Olivia out to cheer her up?¡± Lily¡¯s voice came through the speaker, filled with indignation. ¡°¡°Olivia loved Connor so much, how could she get over their separation so quickly?¡± Official source is ?ovelFind She ranted about how heartless it was. ¡°While Olivia suffers, Connor appears to be casually involved with ¨C Chapter 108 The Desperat celebrity La Lawrence as if nothing happened!! Alphas are cold, heartless creatures,¡± she dered with venom. I nced subconsciously at Connor, who had visibly lost weight. Faint dark circles shadowed his ice blus eyes, clearly having slept poorly for several nights. I knew Connor¡¯s true feelings for Olivia all too well. In all our years of friendship, I¡¯d never seen the Alpha care so deeply about anyone. This normallyposed, self¨Cpossessed leader was on the verge of depression after their separation. I continued persuading Lily, who finally agreed to take Olivia out for drinks. ¡°Which bar will you visit?¡± I asked casually. ¡°I¡¯m offering to pick Olivia upter for safety.¡± Lily didn¡¯t think much of it and easily revealed their destination. ¡°We¡¯re going to Nightshade Bar.¡± I agreed and told her to take good care of Olivia tonight. ¡°Don¡¯t let her drink too much or she¡¯ll suffer from headaches and stomach pain again.¡± After hanging up, I shrugged at Connor. ¡°It¡¯s done. We leave for Nightshade Bar in twenty minutes.¡± (Olivia¡¯s POV) Originally, I had no evening ns. I intended to stay home, watch some legal dramas after dinner, then sleep. Just after finishing my meal, I received a call from Lily asking me to go out for drinks. During the day, I worked hard, trying to keep myself busy. I wouldn¡¯t have time to think about Connor Rivers. But once night fell, the longing grew wild. My heart felt so ufortable and suppressed I could barely breathe. A severed mate bond felt like a serious illness¨Cincurable. I could only use alcohol to numb myself. I needed to vent my emotions. My wolf was restless and aching within me. The cier white McLaren P1 traveled through the winter night mist like a ghost. The open¨Cair parking lot outside Nightshade Bar was filled with luxury vehicles. I tossed the hypercar keys to the valet, stepped carefully in my leather heels. The cold air bit at my exposed skin as I walked up the steps toward the bar. It was eleven o¡¯clock at night, and the nightlife had just begun. The bar was crowded, lights shing, music pounding. Humans and werewolves danced wildly on the central dance floor, reveling in pleasure. This was a breeding ground for ambiguity and debauchery. As I entered the bar, the noisy voices and music made me frown. I didn¡¯t really like this kind of ce, my wolf instincts preferring quieter environments. ¡°Olivia, over here!¡± Lily waved to me, with Reba Frost standing nearby.
I walked over, and Lily led me to the bar with practiced ease. She settled onto a high stool beside me. ¡°Leo, three Moonberry Mojitos.¡± The bartender responded with a charming smile, skillfully beginning to mix Chapter 108 The Despera the werewolf¨Cfriendly cocktails. Lily leaned over and whispered in my ear. ¡°This bartender Leo Matthews is twenty¨Csix years old and the ¡®signature¡® attraction of this bar.¡± ¡°What do you think? He¡¯s very handsome, right?¡± I raised my amber eyes to study the man before me. He wasn¡¯t particrly tall, about 5¡¯7¡°, with delicate features. His handsome face and slightly tousled hair gave him an almost ethereal appeal. I calmly withdrew my gaze and replied, ¡°He¡¯s alright.¡± Lily grinned mischievously. ¡°Do you like this type? This is the charming beta I told you about¨Clots of fernale werewolvese to this bar specifically for him.¡± As we were talking, a female werewolf approached to flirt with Leo Matthews. She pulled out a thick stack of bills, waving them seductively. I shook my head. ¡°Too many admirers around him, not suitable.¡± ¡°What are you afraid of? It¡¯s just for fun, not marking,¡± Lily raised her eyebrows. ¡°Why should only Alphas get to y around?¡± ¡°Can¡¯t she¨Cwolves have fun too? Connor Rivers is seen publicly with that celebrity¨Care you really going to remain celibate for him?¡± ¡°y! Let loose and have some fun!¡± I frowned. ¡°I¡­ I¡¯m not interested¡­¡± ¡°That¡¯s because you haven¡¯t experienced the thrill of ying the field.¡± The bartender ced three Moonberry Mojitos before us. The drinks sparkled with an otherworldly shimmer. Lily said with a smile, ¡°Thanks, handsome.¡± Leo met Lily¡¯s gaze, smiling seductively. ¡°No need to thank me, beautiful.¡± Their eyes met, and attraction sparked silently. I could practically feel the chemistry crackling between them. Reba and I exchanged nces, both wearing dazed expressions. Our eyes were wide with shock. Did they just connect that easily? After drinking one cocktail, my depression didn¡¯t decrease but intensified. As the saying goes, drowning sorrows with alcohol only makes the sorrow greater. Under alcohol¡¯s influence, I seemed to miss Connor even more. My wolf howled mournfully within me. Lily tried to cheer me up. ¡°It¡¯s okay, sister. If you don¡¯t like this one, I¡¯ll introduce you to others.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you mention wanting to see some male entertainersst time? This bar has plenty of good¨Clooking ones.¡± ¡°Wait here, I¡¯ll call their manager over. Whatever catches your eye, tell your sister, and I¡¯ll arrange it fo I had already consumed three cocktails and felt dizzy. I mumbled in a slurred voice, ¡°Don¡¯t¡­¡± Lily was also drunk, and with the bar¡¯s noise, she didn¡¯t hear clearly. ¡°What? You want to?¡± u.¡± < Chapter 108: The Despera I shook my head. ¡°I don¡¯t like messy situations¡­¡± Lily misunderstood. ¡°What? You just want to look at those eight¨Cpack abs?¡± amber eyes blurred. What on earth was she talking about? My cheeks flushed with intoxication, my Ten minutester, five male entertainers¨Call over six feet tall with impressive eight¨Cpack abs¨Cstood in a row before me. They said in unison, ¡°Hello~~~¡± I hupped andughed foolishly. ¡°Hello everyone.¡± These were ke Sterling and other beta werewolves who worked as entertainers at Nightshade Bar. They used their physical attributes to attract wealthy female patrons. (Connor¡¯s POV). ¡°I have to admit, they¡¯re really good¨Clooking.¡± Meanwhile, in a dimly lit booth across the bar, I stared at the payment notification on my phone. My face darkened with displeasure. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with Lily? She used my emergency card to hire male entertainers for Olivia?¡± Watch Ads (0/20) > Whisper 180 Chapter 109: Jealousy and Heartbreak at Nightshade Bar Chapter 109: Jealousy and Heartbreak at Nightshade Bar (Connor¡¯s POV) Ethan Quinn¡¯s face darkened with anger as he watched the scene unfold before us. His teeth ground audibly In the dim booth where we sat hidden. ¡°I¡¯m so pissed off! Lily actually dared to hire male entertainers for Olivia!¡± My ice¨Cblue eyes remained fixed on the bar area. Olivia held a ss of Moonfire Tequ with Silver Lime in one hand while her other hand explored ke Sterling¡¯s sculpted chest muscles. The burning sensation from my own tequ seemed to spread through the air around us. Everything tasted bitter and sour. My Alpha instincts roared at the sight of other males entertaining my intended mate. My wolf Adam wed at my chest, demanding I im what was ours. Olivia¡¯s amber eyes were zed with alcohol. Her honey¨Cbrown hair fell in disheveled waves around her shoulders. She giggled as ke flexed his muscles for her entertainment. The sound cut through me like silver. ¡°Look at those abs,¡± she slurred, tracing patterns on his chest. ¡°So different from¡­¡± She didn¡¯t finish the sentence. But I knew she was thinking of me. My hands clenched into fists on the table. The leather booth creaked under my tension. Ethan noticed my rigid posture. ¡°Connor, don¡¯t do anything stupid.¡± But watching other males touch what belonged to me was torture. Every fiber of my being screamed to intervene. ke Sterling leaned closer to Olivia. His predatory smile made my vision sh red. ¡°You¡¯re so beautiful,¡± he murmured in her ear. ¡°Much too good for whoever broke your heart.¡± Olivia¡¯s face crumpled slightly. Fresh tears gathered in her amber eyes. ¡°He doesn¡¯t want me anymore,¡± she whispered. ¡°He chose someone else.¡± The pain in her voice nearly broke my resolve. I started to rise from the booth. Ethan¡¯s hand shot out to restrain me. ¡°Connor, think about what you¡¯re doing.¡± I abruptly stood up from our booth anyway. My powerful frame radiated tension and barely contained fury. Ethan startled at the sudden movement. ¡°What are you doing?¡± ¡°I¡¯m taking Olivia home immediately.¡± My voice came out as a growl. ¡°This ends now.¡± My wolf snarled beneath the surface at the perceived threat to our mate bond. Every instinct demanded I eliminate thepetition. Ethan quickly gripped my arm. ¡°Your presence would expose our carefully constructed ruse to Frederick Chapter 109 Jealou y an Wamers spies. His words hit like cold water. ¡°They might be watching. This would render all your sacrifice pointless acknowledged the risk with a tense nod. But my eyes remained fixed on Olivia, surrounded by the male entertainers vying for her attention. Lily continued encouraging her reckless behavior. ¡°Come on, Liv! Live a little!¡± My jaw clenched so hard I thought my teeth might c***k. The sight of other males near my mate was unbearable. ¡°I can¡¯t watch this,¡± I muttered through gritted teeth. Ethan¡¯s grip tightened on my arm. ¡°You have to. For her safety.¡± Just as I was preparing to do something rash that would blow our cover, Ethan suddenly dashed forward. He created a gust of wind as he moved with supernatural speed toward the bar area. Lily was thoroughly intoxicated, her inhibitionspletely gone. She leaned against ke Sterling¡¯s muscr chest, her face flushed with alcohol and infatuation. Before Lily could realize what was happening, Ethan punched ke squarely in the jaw. His protective instincts for his stepsister overrode his usual caution. The sound of impact echoed through the bar. ke stumbled backward from the unexpected blow. His colleagues from the entertainment staff held him back as he tried to retaliate. ¡°What the hell, man?¡± ke¡¯s lip was split and bleeding. His perfect features were marred by the violence. Lily was half¨Csobered by the sudden violence. Her amber eyes widened in shock as she eximed, ¡°Ethan! What are you doing?¡± She rushed to check if ke was injured. ¡°Oh my god, are you okay?¡± Lily immediately began apologizing profusely to the entertainer. She pulled out a thick stack of Crimson Pack Currency Bills from her purse. ¡°Here, take this for medical expenses,¡± she said frantically. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry about my stepbrother.¡± For original chapters go to find[?]ovel However, Ethan roughly grabbed her arm and pulled her away from the group of entertainers. His face was dark with fury. ¡°Have you lost all sense of shame?¡± he scolded harshly. ¡°What would our parents think if they saw you behaving like this?¡± Meanwhile, Olivia was somewhat sobered by the suddenmotion. She stared at Ethan with confused recognition. Her honey¨Cbrown hair was disheveled and her amber eyes struggled to focus. ¡°Ethan? What are you doing here?¡± My heart lurched as I watched from the shadows. This was too close forfort. Olivia¡¯s heart lurched as she recognized Ethan Quinn. She immediately asked with desperate hope, ¡°Is he here too?¡± She was referring to me. The longing in her voice was unmistakable. Chapter 109 Jealousy an Ethan shook his head firmly, lying to protect our cover. ¡°No, I came alone to get Lily! Disappointment crashed over Olivia like a cold wave. Her wolf whimpered with renewed pain. She had foolishly hoped that I might be there. But instead I was probably with that celebrity La Lawrence The crushing reality of our separation hit her again. She reached for the wine bottle with shaking hands. She took another long drink directly from it to numb the ache in her chest. The alcohol burned down her throat. ¡°Of course he¡¯s not here,¡± she muttered bitterly. ¡°Why would he be?¡± Her amber eyes filled with fresh tears. The sight made my chest constrict painfully. Ethan and Lily began quarreling loudly over the Incident. Their voices carried across the crowded bar. ¡°You had no right to hit him!¡± Lily shouted angrily. ¡°ke didn¡¯t do anything wrong!¡± Ethan was furious that Lily had been leaning against other men so intimately. ¡°You were practically throwing yourself at him!¡± ¡°So what if I was?¡± Lily defended her actions. ¡°I¡¯m a grown woman!¡± She berated him for hitting ke without provocation. ¡°You can¡¯t just punch people because you don¡¯t like what I¡¯m doing!¡± Their heated argument was interrupted by Vincent Crawford¡¯s arrival. The bar manager approached with nervous diplomacy. Vincent was clearly worried about potential trouble with the influential Quinn family. ¡°Is everything alright here?¡± Lily helped defuse the situation quickly. ¡°It¡¯s just a misunderstanding, Vincent. My stepbrother overreacted.¡± She exined that Ethan had protective instincts that sometimes got the better of him. ¡°He didn¡¯t mean any real harm.¡± Lily then handed over additional Crimson Pack Currency Bills to Vincent. ¡°This should cover ke¡¯s medical expenses andpensate for the disruption.¡± Vincent epted the money gratefully. ¡°Thank you, Miss Quinn. We appreciate your understanding.¡± The tension in the air began to dissipate as the situation was resolved. But the damage was already done. Ethan Quinn stormed off in frustration. His protective anger still simmered beneath the surface. He pushed through the crowd toward the exit without looking back. His jaw was set in a hard line. Lily apologized once more to Vincent Crawford and the entertainment staff. ¡°Again, I¡¯m really sorry about all this.¡± She ensured there would be nosting problems from the incident. ¡°ke, are you sure you¡¯re okay?¡± As she turned around, she noticed Olivia sitting alone with a flushed face. Tearful amber eyes stared into the distance. Olivia was drinking directly from the wine bottle with desperate abandon. Her movements were u reckless. ady and get you home right now.¡± Through her tears, Olivia cried out, ¡°Connor Rivers is such a bastard¡­¡± Her broken voice carried across the bar. My heart clenched painfully as I heard her anguished words. I clenched my fists to restrain myself from rushing to her side. I couldn¡¯t be impulsive and blow our cover. But hearing her pain was torture. Every instinct screamed to as overwhelming emotion crashed over her. The pain was too much to bear. She suddenly cried out loudly enough for the entire bar to hear, ¡°Connor Rivers, you¡¯re here, aren¡¯t you? Pleasee out!¡± 6 Comments ¨C Ads (0/20) > Vote Whisper 181 Chapter 110 The Broken. Chapter 110: The Broken Wolf¡¯s Lament Chapter 110: The Broken Wolf¡¯s Lament (Third person¡¯s POV) Sitting in the corner booth, Connor pressed his lips tightly together. His ice¨Cblue eyes darkened like an endless abyss as he watched his mate call out for him with heartbreaking desperation. In a shadowy corner that no one paid attention to, someone raised their phone and secretly recorded this scene. The sh was barely visible in the dim lighting. Olivia¡¯s voice trembled with soul¨Ccrushing you¡¯re here, why don¡¯t you dare to see me?¡± dness as she cried out, ¡°Connor Rivers, you coward! Now that Her words cut through Connor like silver des. Every fiber of Connor being screamed to go to her, but he remained frozen in ce. Ne His wolf Adam wed at his chest, demanding he im what was theirs.. But he couldn¡¯t move. Not without exposing everything they¡¯d worked to protect. Seeing Olivia in such a broken state, Reba Frost felt her heart ache for her friend. She helped Olivia navigate through the crowd toward the exit. ¡°Come on, Liv,¡± Reba said gently. ¡°You¡¯re drunk and need to go home to rest.¡± Two of the Frost family¡¯s beta werewolf bodyguards followed closely behind. Their protective instincts were alert as they escorted the distressed she¨Cwolf through the packed nightclub. Olivia stumbled against Reba, her amber eyes zed with tears and alcohol. ¡°He¡¯s here, Ba. I know he¡¯s here.¡± ¡°You¡¯re imagining things,¡± Reba soothed. ¡°Let¡¯s get you home.¡± When Maxwell Cooper received the video footage, Frederick Warner was in his American estate¡¯s private suite. He was seducing a newly acquired hum¨¢n lover and sharing wine with her. The atmosphere in the room was thick with lust and indulgence. The air was heavy with alcohol, smoke, and the musky scent of desire. On the leather sofa, a woman¡¯s torn ck stockings and ckce lingeriey scattered in disarray. Evidence of their passionate encounter littered the expensive furniture. After Frederick finished the shared wine, he wrapped one arm around the woman¡¯s waist. His other hand explored beneath her skirt, causing her breathing to be more rapid and desperate. Maxwell quietly stood in the corner/suppressing his presence. He yed the role of an invisible, silent observer. Frederick demandedplete privacy when he indulged in his pleasures. Maxwell had learned to be effectively nonexistent during these moments. The woman moaned softly as Frederick¡¯s hands roamed her body. Her back arched against the leather cushions. 1/5 Chapter 110 The Broken Frederick¡¯s control remained absolute even in passion. His movements were calcted and deliberate. Two hours from their intense activities. Frederick, however, remained fully clothed. His control was absolute even in passion. The man leanedzily against the sofa, extracting a cigarette from an ornate case. He lit it with practiced ease. White smoke curled upward, obscuring his sharp, aristocratic features. It lent him an air of dangerous sophistication. Maxwell waited until Frederick was clearly finished before approaching. He needed to deliver his operational report. The woman, understanding her dismissal, gathered her scattered clothes. She left the private suite without a word. Maxwell informed Frederick that their shipment operations in California had been sessfullypleted. Frederick hummed casually in acknowledgment. ¡°What about our activities in Nation C?¡± Frederick inquired, taking a long drag from his cigarette. Maxwell¡¯s throat worked nervously. ¡°Complications arose with our contact Pa Shan. During a meeting with Jin Min, they encounteredw enforcement interference.¡± ¡°They were forced to abort the transaction,¡± Maxwell continued fearfully. ¡°While our operatives escaped capture, the valuable cargo was confiscated.¡± Frederick¡¯s eyes shed with predatory violence. He snarled, ¡°A group of ipetent fools lost the merchandise and still have the audacity to return.¡± Maxwell remained silent, recognizing the dangerous shift in his employer¡¯s mood. The temperature in the room seemed to drop several degrees. Frederick then demanded an update on their business project with Mesa Corporation in Nation A. Maxwell¡¯s throat worked nervously as he prepared to deliver more bad news. Âà ¡°After our project termination, both parties suffered massive financial losses,¡± Maxwell reported fearfully. ¡°Connor Rivers seized the opportunity to acquire Mesa Corporation.¡± ¡°The legal paperwork is currently being processed,¡± he added quietly. With a thunderous crash, Frederick kicked over the mahogany table in front of him. Crystal sses and documents went flying across the expensive carpet. ¡°Connor Rivers, one day I will make you pay double for everything!¡± he roared. His wolf¡¯s rage was barely contained beneath his human facade. Maxwell stood silently nearby, watching his expression carefully. He knew better than to speak when Frederick was in this state. Only when Frederick had vented most of his fury did Maxwell dare to speak again. ¡°Alpha, there¡¯s the intelligence about Olivia Winters.¡± Frederickposed himself, his voice returning to its usual controlled tone. The transformation was 2/5 Chapter 110 The Broken unsettling in its swiftness. ¡°What is it?¡± he asked, straightening his expensive suit jacket. Maxwell opened the video file and handed over his phone. ¡°Our surveince team followed Olivia Winters to the bar and captured this scene.¡± ¡°She and Connor Rivers appear to be genuinely separated,¡± Maxwell exined. The source of th?s content is find?novel Frederick took the phone and examined the footage. His eyes shed with contempt and disdain as he watched Olivia¡¯s breakdown. The man chuckled sarcastically. ¡°Hah, foolish she¨Cwolf who believes in true mate bonds.¡± ¡°Then should we¡­¡± Maxwell began hesitantly. ¡°No need to continue monitoring her,¡± Frederick interrupted with a dismissive wave. ¡°She¡¯s just a discarded piece of clothing that Connor Rivers has thrown away. ¡°A worn¨Cout toy he¡¯s tired of ying with,¡± he added cruelly. ¡°Right now I need all avable manpower and don¡¯t have time to waste on her.¡± ¡°Understood, Alpha,¡± Maxwell replied with relief. ¡°By the way, Alpha, Ethan Grey called requesting a meeting with you,¡± Maxwell added. Frederick¡¯s brow furrowed in confusion. ¡°Who?¡± Maxwell rified, ¡°Olivia Winters¡® former boyfriend.¡± Frederick¡¯s lips curled with disdain as he spat out three words. ¡°Never heard of him.¡± Maxwell exined carefully, ¡°He offered Connor Rivers¡® whereabouts and internal intelligence about the Rivers pack in exchange for our investment funding.¡± ¡°That investment waster channeled to the Grey pack,¡± Maxwell continued. ¡°The Grey pack is now developing very sessfully and is considered a prominent enterprise in the Northern Territory.¡± ¡°The Grey family still holds value for our operations,¡± he concluded. Frederick¡¯s eyes shed with contempt. ¡°What use could some pathetic wolf that Vanessa Reed dug up possibly be? He¡¯s nothing but a desperatepdog.¡± ¡°Then Alpha, do you want to meet with him?¡± Maxwell asked cautiously. Frederick considered for a moment, then smirked coldly. ¡°A dog that¡¯s eager to curry favor with me can be taken out for a walk when I¡¯m in a good mood.¡± (Connor¡¯s POV) Reba safely escorted Olivia home to her luxury apartment. She didn¡¯t realize that I was following them at a careful distance. My Cullinan moved silently through the night streets. I kept far enough back to avoid detection. After Reba left, I went to Olivia¡¯s home. My heart pounded as I approached her door. Dorothy opened the door, slightly startled. ¡°Alpha Connor, why are you here?¡± ¡°How is she?¡± I asked urgently, my voice rough with concern. < Chapter 110 The Broken ¡°Miss Winters is severely intoxicated,¡± Dorothy replied with worry. ¡°I was just preparing to brew her a sobering remedy.¡± I opened my wallet and extracted several bills. ¡°Tonight, stay elsewhere. I¡¯ll take care of her here.¡± Dorothy took the money without question. ¡°Of course, Alpha Connor, please wait a moment while I quickly pack some clothes.¡± The housekeeper stepped aside to allow me entry into the apartment. I entered, bringing with me the scent of alcohol and the crisp night air. My ice¨Cblue eyes surveyed the space with a carefully controlled expression, Richard Winters had provided well for Olivia, and this residence was quite respectable. Dorothy brought a cup of hot healing tea and ced it on the coffee table. ¡°Alpha Connor, please sit and rest for a moment. I¡¯ll be right back.¡± I couldn¡¯t focus on resting. My wolf was too agitated, too desperate to see our mate. ¡°Where is her bedroom?¡± I asked urgently. Dorothy pointed toward the corridor. ¡°Miss Winters¡® room is the first door on the left.¡± I couldn¡¯t wait any longer and strode toward Olivia¡¯s bedroom. My heart hammered against my ribs with each step. The door was unlocked, and I pushed it open carefully. Just in time to hear the she¨Cwolf talking in her sleep. ¡°Connor, Connor Rivers¡­¡± her voice was barely a whisper. ¡°Why don¡¯t you want me¡­ sob sob sob¡­¡± The faint crying that followed made my heart clench violently with pain. I approached the bed in quick strides. Olivia continued murmuring intermittently in her sleep. Her wolf¡¯s distress was bleeding through into her human form. The sight broke something inside me. ¡°Connor Rivers is a bad Alpha¡­ I don¡¯t want you¡­ Go away¡­¡± she mumbled, her face scrunched with pain. I lowered my gaze, my eyshes trembling as I reached out. I gently stroked Olivia¡¯s face, wiping away the she¨Cwolf¡¯s tears. My tone was as gentle as spring water that couldn¡¯t be melted. ¡°Yes, I¡¯m a terrible Alpha.¡± The she¨Cwolf in her sleep seemed to sense my presence. She moved closer to me instinctively, seeking ¡°Alpha Connor¡­¡± se breathed, her voice filled with longing. Her emotions fluctuated wildly in the dream state. One moment she was like a wolf with bristled fur, angrily telling me to leave. The next moment she was like a clingy pup, gently nuzzling her face against my hand. ¡°Con, don¡¯t go, d leave me, Livvy is very good¡­¡± My heart was about to melt. ¡°I¡¯m here, I won¡¯t leave.¡± My expression softened, and the love in my ice¨Cblue eyes was about to overflow. The warmth and softness came from my palm as the she¨Cwolf¡¯s face nuzzled against my hand again and again. < Chapter 110: The Broken. A long¨Clost sense of happiness welled up in my heart. Like stolen moments, my chest filled with both sweetness and bitter pain. I sat by the bedside, greedily gazing at Olivia for a long time. I couldn¡¯t get enough of looking at her. Dorothy finished packing her belongings and was about to bid farewell to me before leaving. When she reached the bedroom door and glimpsed this tender scene through the c***k, she didn¡¯t make a sound to disturb us. She quietly departed, understanding the sacred nature of what she witnessed: I couldn¡¯t resist leaning down to press a reverent kiss to Olivia¡¯s flushed cheek. Pious and pure, without any lustful intent. The she¨Cwolf seemed to sense something, groaning softly. Suddenly she reached out to wrap her arms around my neck, murmuring, ¡°Con¡­¡± The ending sound was drawn out with spoiled sweetness. My back stiffened suddenly, and a tingling sensation instantly spread throughout my entire body as my wolf responded to his mate¡¯s unconscious call. H 3.1K LUCK D Whisper 182 Chapter 111: Irresistible Chapter 111: Irresistible (Connor¡¯s POV) The next moment, Olivia¡¯s chin was gently lifted by my palm. A tender, affectionate kiss fell upon her lips. Her soft mouth tasted of moonberry wine and something uniquely her. My wolf Adam stirred with barely contained desire for his mate. The cold winter air outside contrasted sharply with the heated emotions within the room. As my kiss deepened, every nerve in my body came alive. Olivia responded instinctively, even in her intoxicated state. Her arms tightened around my neck, pulling me closer. ¡°Connor,¡± she whispered against my lips. Her voice was thick with wine and longing. My ice¨Cblue eyes darkened with emotion as I gazed down at her flushed face. The love I felt threatened to overwhelm mepletely. ¡°I¡¯m here, Livvy,¡± I murmured, pressing gentle kisses along her jawline. ¡°I¡¯m right here.¡± Lost in the moment, Olivia questioned my earlier coldness through the haze of alcohol. ¡°Why were you so distant? Why did you push me away?¡± Her amber eyes were ssy but filled with hurt. The pain in her voice made my chest constrict. ¡°I never wanted to push you away,¡± I responded with tender words. ¡°Every moment apart from you has been torture.¡± I showered her with gentle kisses, expressing my love and longing. My hands trembled as they cupped her face. ¡°You¡¯re everything to me, Olivia. My wolf, my heart, my soul ¨C they all belong to you.¡± She melted against me, her body responding to my touch. The mate bond hummed between us, electric and undeniable. I was careful not to leave any iming marks on her neck. My Alpha instincts reminded me to protect her even in passion. Her consent needed to be clear despite the wine¡¯s influence. I wouldn¡¯t take advantage of her vulnerable state. ¡°Connor, please,¡± she whispered, her hands fisting in my shirt. ¡°Don¡¯t leave me again.¡± ¡°Never,¡± I promised, my voice rough with emotion. ¡°I¡¯ll never leave you willingly.¡± I stopped before crossing the final line. My wolf howled in protest, but I held firm. She deserved better than a drunken encounter she might regret. When we came together again, it would we with full awareness and choice. choic After Olivia fell into peaceful sleep, I ensured herfort by adjusting the nkets. I checked the room temperature, making sure she wouldn¡¯t be cold. 1:3 Chapter 111. Irresistible I settled in the chair beside her bed, still holding onto her delicate hand. My gaze filled with overwhelming love and protective tenderness. My wolf was content to simply guard his sleeping mate. This was enough for now. The hours passed slowly as I watched her sleep. Every breath she took was precious to me. (Ethan Quinn¡¯s POV) Meanwhile, at my private vi, I dragged a protesting Lily inside. Sheined about the hour and my aggressive behavior. ¡°Ethan, what¡¯s gotten into you?¡± she demanded, stumbling slightly. ¡°It¡¯s past midnight!¡± I ignored her protests, pushing her against the ornate door. My beta wolf finally imed what I had desired for weeks. her a sedlo my I kissed her fiercely, months of suppressed longing exploding into action. Lily was shocked and struggled to push me away. ¡°Stop it!¡± she gasped against my mouth. ¡°You¡¯re my stepbrother!¡± But my strength as a werewolf overwhelmed her smaller frame. I was consumed by long¨Csuppressed desire and jealousy. ¡°You were deliberately tempting me,¡± I used, my voice rough. ¡°Flirting with those entertainers, letting them touch you.¡± ¡°I wasn¡¯t-¡± she began, but I silenced her with another kiss. Her protests grew weaker as her own wolf responded to my dominant presence. The chemistry between us was undeniable. As we moved to the leather sofa, Lily eventually stopped resisting. Her body betrayed her protests, melting against mine. ¡°This is wrong,¡± she whispered, but her hands clutched at my shoulders. ¡°Nothing about this feels wrong,¡± I growled against her neck. ¡°This feels inevitable.¡± My voice was husky with desire as I made my demand. ¡°Call me brother when I kiss you.¡± She hesitated, her amber eyes wide with confusion and arousal. ¡°Ethan, I can¡¯t-¡± ¡°Say it,¡± Imanded, my beta dominance asserting itself. ¡°Brother,¡± she whispered finally, her submission stirring my possessive instincts further. The word sent fire through my veins. had waited so long to hear it in this context. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Waking up with a terrible headache, I groaned and pressed my palms against my temples. The morning light felt like daggers in my skull. I remembered little of the night before. Only fragments of seeing Connor Rivers and Lily Chen being taken away by Ethan Quinn from Nightshade Bar. Everything else was a blur of alcohol and heartbreak. My wolf felt strangely content despite my physical. n < Chapter 111. Irresistible difort. Dorothy Jenkins appeared in the doorway with a concerned expression. ¡°Miss Winters, how are you feeling?¡± ¡°Like I was trampled by a pack of rogues,¡± I muttered. ¡°How did I get back to Moonlight Haven?¡± The rightful source is Find1Novel Dorothy smiled gently. ¡°It was Reba Frost who brought you home safely. She was very worried about you.¡± I noticed I was wearing my silk pajamas instead of the dress fromst night. ¡°Did Reba help change my clothes too?¡± ¡°Yes, she made sure you werefortable before she left,¡± Dorothy confirmed. I remained unaware that Connor had actually taken care of me throughout the entire night. That he had stayed by my bedside like a devoted mate. I felt sore and exhausted, simr to how I felt after intimate moments with Connor. My body was responding to phantom sensations. ¡°I was having that kind of dream,¡± I realized with embarrassment. My wolf had responded to something even in sleep. Heat flooded my cheeks as fragmented memories surfaced. Gentle touches, whispered words, the scent of pine and winter air. But it had to be a dream. Connor was with that celebrity now, not caring for his discarded mate. ¡°I need to rest before eating,¡± I told Dorothy, dismissing the intense emotions. ¡°Too much moonberry winest night.¡± Dorothy nodded understandingly. ¡°I¡¯ll prepare some healing broth for when you¡¯re ready.¡± As she left, I buried my face in my pillow. The lingering scent of Connor¡¯s cologne made my heart ache with fresh longing. 5 LUCK DRAW > Vote 3.1K Whisper 183 Chapter 112: Hidden Desires and Unexpected Encounters Chapter 112: Hidden Desires and Unexpected Encounters (Ethan Quinn¡¯s POV) The shrill ringing of my phone pierced through the peaceful morning silence. I groaned, my voice rough with sleep as I fumbled for the device. ¡°Hello,¡± I mumbled, barely conscious. ¡°Quinn? Why are you answering the phone? Where¡¯s Lily?¡± Olivia¡¯s surprised voice jolted me awake like ice water. My ice¨Cblue eyes snapped open as panic shot through my system. I sat up in bed with a jolt, clearing my throat. ¡°Lily is still sleeping in the upstairs bedroom. Her phone was left on the living room sofa. I saw your call and answered it.¡± My hand shot out to cover Lily¡¯s mouth before she could make any sound. This rtionship wasn¡¯t ready to be made public within our werewolf social circles. I didn¡¯t need to worry about gossip affecting my reputation as a beta wolf. People would only say I was a yboy. But it was different for a female werewolf. Pack members would gossip behind her back, calling her shameless for having an affair with her stepbrother. They wouldbel her immoral. The rumors would drown her. Lily stirred beneath the silk sheets, her naked form shifting against me. ¡°Mm¡­ who is it¡­¡± she mumbled sleepily. Her wolf was still drowsy from our passionate night together. She waspletely unaware of the phone conversation happening above her. ¡°Oh, okay then. Have her call me back when she wakes up,¡± Olivia said, relief evident in her voice. She seemed satisfied that Lily was safe and unharmed after the previous night¡¯s events at the bar. ¡°Alright,¡± I breathed a sigh of relief as I responded. After hanging up, I looked down at Lily beside me. My gaze darkened with renewed desire. ¡°Awake?¡± I asked softly. Lily gave a half¨Chearted ¡°hmm.¡°. Because she had just woken up, her voice was soft and delicate. The sound instantly ignited my wolf¡¯s desire. I leaned down and kissed her lips, my voice husky. ¡°Baby, one more time?¡± Lily instantly woke up upon hearing this. Her wolf suddenly became alert. She grabbed the quilt and covered herself, looking wary. ¡°You, get away!¡± she stammered. My eyes were gentle, and a doting smile appeared on my lips. My wolf purred with satisfaction. ?
  • Chapter 112 Hidden Desir.
Baby, do you know how alluring you look?¡± Lily clutched the quilt tightly, her voice nervous. ¡°Quirin, Quinn¡­ don¡¯t mess around. We were both drunk (234 night¡­ we¡¯re adults, I can pretend It didn¡¯t happen.¡± This update is avable on F¦ÉndNovel She took a shaky breath. ¡°In the future¡­ we¡¯ll still be step¨Csiblings.¡± 1 in amusement, raising an eyebrow. ¡°I wasn¡¯t drunkst night. I waspletely sober.¡± Lily¡¯s amber eyes widened in shock. I slowly continued, ¡°Baby, I was very clear¨Cheaded. I knew exactly what I was doing. Actually, I had already noticed my feelings for you, but I was restraining myself.¡± My voice grew rougher with emotion. ¡°Last night, when you ordered that male entertainer and leaned into his arms, I couldn¡¯t take it anymore.¡± Lily was incredulous. ¡°You, you¡­ you liked me all along?¡± I gave a confirming ¡°hmm.¡± ¡°Since when?¡± she whispered. ¡°I don¡¯t know exactly when, maybe it was inevitable.¡± Lily bit her lip. ¡°But I¡­ I¡¯m not ready yet.¡± I gently stroked her face, my wolf¡¯s protective instincts surfacing. ¡°Baby, do you have feelings for me?¡± ¡°No!¡± she protested quickly. I chuckled softly, leaning down to kiss her again. This time, Lily did not push me away. Passion ignited once more between us. At the height of our intimate connection, Lily no longer suppressed herself. She called out without restraint as our wolves responded to each other. I panted in her ear, my voice hoarse with satisfaction. ¡°You¡¯re lying,¡± I whispered with a satisfied smile. (Olivia¡¯s POV) Days passed in Riverdale¡¯s winter snow. It was mid¨CJanuary in a blink of an eye. On this day, I received a call from Thomas Wilson, thew firm director. ¡°Olivia, I heard you y golf?¡± he asked cheerfully. I was still wondering who had told him when I remembered filling out an application form. I had listed golf among my interests and hobbies when I first joined the firm. ¡°Yes, Director Wilson, what¡¯s the matter?¡± The director chuckled. ¡°I have a big client here, Harrison of Apex Industries. He¡¯s passionate about golf. I¡¯ve made an appointment with him to y at Southmere Royal Golf Course on the eighteenth.¡± He paused. ¡°I¡¯d like you toe with me.¡± I thought that apanying thew firm director wouldn¡¯t cause any trouble. ¡°Okay, Director.¡± ? < Chapter 112 Hidden Desir. ¡°This Harrison has several cases he could sign with us. If it works out, you¡¯ll get twenty percent of the His tone became more serious. ¡°Olivia, I know your family is well¨Cestablished and you don¡¯t need the money, but wewyers need experience and must train our negotiating skills.¡± The fact that I was from the prestigious Winters pack had spread throughout thew firm. The director had certainly heard about it. ¡°I understand, Director.¡± ¡°Alright, prepare well. I¡¯ll have my assistant Marcus Thompson book the flights.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± After hanging up, I looked at the calendar on my desk. It was January thirteenth. Year¡¯s Eve. I hadn¡¯t seen Connor Rivers for half a month. It had been thirteen days since New During this time, I had been working hard, trying not to let myself be idle. Once I was idle, I couldn¡¯t help but think of Connor. And my heart would ache terribly. Entertainment news about Connor and actress La Lawrence¡¯s supposed rtionship was everywhere. I didn¡¯t deliberately pay attention, but I would always hear my colleagues gossiping about them. ¡°Have you seen the trending news? La Lawrence and the Rivers pack heir went on vacation to a tropical ind.¡± ¡°They look so good together ¨C such a handsome Alpha and beautiful actress are really pleasing to the eye! So cute!¡± ¡°My goddess¡¯s looks are beyond words. She¡¯s the undisputed top celebrity in the entertainment industry! No one else is worthy of the Rivers heir except her.¡± ¡°Hey, I heard that Olivia from ourw firm is from the Winters pack? Did you know she almost got engaged to that Rivers family member before?¡± ¡°Yes, yes, I know about this. It¡¯s true. The Rivers heir used to be Olivia¡¯s boyfriend. I¡¯ve even seen him at thew firm entrance. He¡¯s really incredibly handsome!¡± ¡°Ah? Really? Olivia and the Rivers heir¨Cused to have a thing?¡± ¡°Shhh¡­ keep it down, don¡¯t let Olivia hear you¡­¡± I stood at the break room door, holding a water cup. I heard the conversation inside, paused, and sighed helplessly. I said nothing and turned away. Sometimes, when I saw La¡¯s huge poster on the LED screen in the mall, I would stop involuntarily. My heart filled with mixed emotions. So that¡¯s the type of woman he likes. Bea alluring. Added to the library iling with charm, enchanting and Soon it was time for the business trip. I followed Director Wilson onto the flight to Southmere Territory.